9097 lines
575 KiB
Plaintext
9097 lines
575 KiB
Plaintext
TRAVELS INTO SEVERAL REMOTE NATIONS OF THE WORLD
|
||
|
||
BY LEMUEL GULLIVER, FIRST A SURGEON,
|
||
THEN A CAPTAIN OF SEVERAL SHIPS.
|
||
|
||
LONDON: PRINTED FOR BENJ. MOTTE,
|
||
AT THE MIDDLE TEMPLE-GATE IN FLEET-STREET.
|
||
M,DCC,XXVI.
|
||
|
||
A LETTER from Capt. Gulliver, to his Cousin Sympson
|
||
|
||
I HOPE you will be ready to own publickly, whenever you shall be called
|
||
to it, that by your great and frequent Urgency you prevailed on me to
|
||
publish a very loose and uncorrect Account of my Travels; with Direction
|
||
to hire some young Gentlemen of either University to put them in Order,
|
||
and correct the Style, as my Cousin Dampier did by my Advice, in his
|
||
Book calledA Voyage round the World. But I do not remember I gave you
|
||
Power to consent that any thing should be omitted, and much less that any
|
||
thing should be inserted: therefore, as to the latter, I do here renounce
|
||
every thing of that Kind; particularly a Paragraph about her Majesty the
|
||
late Queen Anne, of most pious and glorious Memory; although I did
|
||
reverence and esteem her more than any of human Species. But you, or
|
||
your Interpolator, ought to have considered, that as it was not my
|
||
Inclination, so was it not decent to praise any Animal of our Composition
|
||
before my Master Houyhnhnm: And besides the Fact was altogether false;
|
||
for to my Knowledge, being in England during some Part of her Majesty's
|
||
Reign, she did govern by a chief Minister; nay, even by two successively;
|
||
the first whereof was the Lord of Godolphin, and the second the Lord of
|
||
Oxford; so that you have made me say the thing that was not. Likewise, in
|
||
the Account of the Academy of Projectors, and several Passages of my
|
||
Discourse to my Master Houyhnhnm, you have either omitted some
|
||
material Circumstances, or minced or changed them in such a Manner, that
|
||
I do hardly know mine own Work. When I formerly hinted to you
|
||
something of this in a Letter, you were pleased to answer that you were
|
||
afraid of giving Offense; that People in Power were very watchful over the
|
||
Press, and apt not only to interpret, but to punish every thing which looked
|
||
like an Innuendo (as I think you called it.) But pray, how could that which
|
||
I spoke so many Years ago, and at about five Thousand leagues distance, in
|
||
another Reign, be applied to any of the Yahoos who now are said to govern
|
||
the Herd; especially at a time when I little thought on or feared the
|
||
Unhappiness of living under them. Have not I the most reason to complain,
|
||
when I see these very Yahoos carried by Houyhnhnms in a Vehicle, as if
|
||
these were Brutes, and those the rational Creatures? And indeed, to avoid
|
||
so monstrous and detestable a Sight was one principal Motive of my
|
||
Retirement hither.
|
||
|
||
Thus much I thought proper to tell you in Relation to yourself, and to the
|
||
Trust I reposed in you.
|
||
|
||
I do in the next Place complain of my own great Want of Judgement, in
|
||
being prevailed upon by the Intreaties and false Reasonings of you and
|
||
some others, very much against mine own Opinion, to suffer my Travels to
|
||
be published. Pray bring to your Mind how often I desired you to consider,
|
||
when you insisted on the Motive of publick good; that the Yahoos were a
|
||
species of Animals utterly incapable of Amendment by Precepts or
|
||
Examples: And so it hath proved; for instead of seeing a full Stop put to all
|
||
Abuses and Corruptions, at least in this little Island, as I had Reason to
|
||
expect: Behold, after above six Months Warning, I cannot learn that my
|
||
Book hath produced one single Effect according to mine Intentions: I
|
||
desired you would let me know by a Letter, when Party and Faction were
|
||
extinguished; Judges learned and upright; Pleaders honest and modest, with
|
||
some Tincture of common Sense; and Smithfield blazing with Pyramids of
|
||
Law-Books; the young Nobility's Education entirely changed; the
|
||
Physicians banished; the female Yahoos abounding in Virtue, Honour,
|
||
Truth and good Sense; Courts and Levees of great Ministers thoroughly
|
||
weeded and swept; Wit, Merit and Learning rewarded; all Disgracers of
|
||
the Press in Prose and Verse condemned to eat nothing but their own
|
||
Cotten, and quench their Thirst with their own Ink. These, and a Thousand
|
||
other Reformations, I firmly counted upon by your Encouragement; as
|
||
indeed they were plainly deducible from the Precepts delivered in my
|
||
Book. And, it must be owned that seven Months were a sufficient Time to
|
||
correct every Vice and Folly to which Yahoos are subject, if their Natures
|
||
had been capable of the least Disposition to Virtue or Wisdom: Yet so far
|
||
have you been from answering mine Expectation in any of your Letters;
|
||
that on the contrary you are loading our Carrier every Week with Libels,
|
||
and Keys, and Reflections, and Memoirs, and Second Parts; wherein I see
|
||
myself accused of reflecting upon great States-Folk, of degrading human
|
||
Nature (for so they have still the Confidence to stile it), and of abusing the
|
||
Female Sex. I find likewise that the Writers of those Bundles are not
|
||
agreed among themselves; for some of them will not allow me to be
|
||
Author of my own Travels; and others make me Author of Books to which
|
||
I am wholly a Stranger.
|
||
|
||
I find likewise that your Printer hath been so careless as to confound the
|
||
Times, and mistake the Dates of my several Voyages and Returns; neither
|
||
assigning the true Year, or the true Month, or Day of the Month: And I
|
||
hear the original Manuscript is all destroyed, since the Publication of my
|
||
Book. Neither have I any Copy left; however, I have sent you some
|
||
Corrections, which you may insert, if ever there should be a second
|
||
Edition: And yet I cannot stand to them, but shall leave that Matter to my
|
||
judicious and candid Readers, to adjust it as they please.
|
||
|
||
I hear some of our Sea-Yahoos find Fault with my Sea-Language, as not
|
||
proper in many Parts, nor now in use. I cannot help it. In my first
|
||
Voyages, while I was young, I was instructed by the oldest Mariners, and
|
||
learned to speak as they did. But I have since found that the Sea-Yahoos are
|
||
apt, like the Land ones, to become new fangled in their Words, which the
|
||
latter change every Year, insomuch as I remember upon each Return to
|
||
mine own Country their old Dialect was so altered that I could hardly
|
||
understand the new. And I observe, when any Yahoo comes from London
|
||
out of Curiosity visit me at mine own House, we neither of us are able to
|
||
deliver our Conceptions in a Manner intelligible to the other.
|
||
|
||
If the Censure of Yahoos could any Way affect me, I should have great
|
||
Reason to complain that some of them are so bold as to think my Book of
|
||
Travels a mere Fiction out of mine own brain; and have gone so far as to
|
||
drop Hints, that the Houyhnhnms and Yahoos have no more Existence than
|
||
the Inhabitants of Utopia.
|
||
|
||
Indeed I must confess, that as to the People of Lilliput, Brobdingrag (for so
|
||
the Word should have been spelt, and not erroneously Brobdingnag), and
|
||
Laputa; I have never yet heard of any Yahoo so presumptuous as to dispute
|
||
their being, or the Facts I have related concerning them; because the Truth
|
||
immediately strikes every Reader with Conviction. And is there less
|
||
Probability in my Account of the Houyhnhnms or Yahoos, when it is
|
||
manifest as to the latter, there are so many Thousands even in this City,
|
||
who only differ from their Brother Brutes in Houyhnhnmland, because
|
||
they use a Sort of a Jabber, and do not go naked? I wrote for their
|
||
Amendment, and not their Approbation. The united Praise of the whole
|
||
Race would be of less Consequence to me than the neighing of those two
|
||
degenerate Houyhnhnms I keep in my stable; because from these,
|
||
degenerate as they are, I still improve in some Virtues, without any
|
||
Mixture of Vice.
|
||
|
||
Do these miserable Animals presume to think that I am so far degenerated
|
||
as to defend my veracity? Yahoo as I am, it is well known through all
|
||
Houyhnhnmland, that by the Instructions and Example of my illustrious
|
||
Master I was able in the Compass of two Years (although I confess with the
|
||
utmost Difficulty) to remove that infernal Habit of Lying, Shuffling,
|
||
Deceiving, and Equivocating, so deeply rooted in the very Souls of all my
|
||
Species, especially the Europeans.
|
||
|
||
I have other Complaints to make upon this vexatious Occasion; but I
|
||
forbear troubling myself or you any further. I must freely confess, that
|
||
since my last Return, some Corruptions of my Yahoo Nature have revived
|
||
in me by conversing with a few of your Species, and particularly those of
|
||
mine own Family, by an unavoidable Necessity; else I should never have
|
||
attempted so absurd a Project as that of reforming the Yahoo Race in this
|
||
Kingdom; but I have now done with all visionary Schemes for ever.
|
||
|
||
April 2, 1727.
|
||
|
||
THE PUBLISHER TO THE READER
|
||
|
||
THE AUTHOR of these Travels, Mr. Lemuel Gulliver, is my antient and
|
||
intimate Friend; there is likewise some Relation between us by the Mother's
|
||
Side. About three Years ago Mr. Gulliver, growing weary of the
|
||
Concourse of curious People coming to him at his House in Redriff, made a
|
||
small purchase of land, with a convenient house, near Newark in
|
||
Nottinghamshire, his native Country; where he now lives retired, yet in
|
||
good Esteem among his Neighbors.
|
||
|
||
Although Mr. Gulliver was born in Nottinghamshire, where his Father
|
||
dwelt, yet I have heard him say his Family came from Oxfordshire; to
|
||
confirm which, I have observed in the Church-Yard at Banbury, in that
|
||
County, several Tombs and Monuments of the Gullivers.
|
||
|
||
Before he quitted Redriff, he left the Custody of the following Papers in
|
||
my Hands, with the Liberty to dispose of them as I should think fit. I have
|
||
carefully perused them three Times. The style is very plain and simple; and
|
||
the only Fault I find is, that the Author, after the Manner of Travelers, is a
|
||
little too circumstantial. There is an Air of Truth apparent through the
|
||
whole; and indeed the Author was so distinguished for his Veracity, that it
|
||
became a Sort of Proverb among his Neighbors at Redriff, when any one
|
||
affirmed a Thing, to say it was as true as if Mr. Gulliver had spoke it.
|
||
|
||
By the Advice of several worthy Persons, to whom, with the Author's
|
||
Permission, I communicated these Papers, I now venture to send them into
|
||
the World, hoping they may be at least, for some time, a better
|
||
Entertainment to our young Noblemen than the common Scribbles of
|
||
Politicks and Party.
|
||
|
||
This Volume would have been at least twice as large, if I had not made
|
||
bold to strike out innumerable Passages relating to the Winds and Tides, as
|
||
well as to the Variations and Bearings in the several Voyages; together with
|
||
the minute Descriptions of the Management of the Ship in Storms, in the
|
||
Style of Sailors. Likewise the Account of the Longitudes and Latitudes;
|
||
wherein I have Reason to apprehend that Mr. Gulliver may be a little
|
||
dissatisfied. But I was resolved to fit the Work as much as possible to the
|
||
general Capacity of Readers. However, if my own Ignorance in Sea-Affairs
|
||
shall have led me to commit some Mistakes, I alone am answerable for
|
||
them. And if any Traveller hath a Curiosity to see the whole Work at
|
||
large, as it came from the Hand of the Author, I shall be ready to gratify
|
||
him.
|
||
|
||
As for any further Particulars relating to the Author, the Reader will
|
||
receive Satisfaction from the first Pages of the Book.
|
||
|
||
Richard Sympson.
|
||
|
||
PART I: A VOYAGE TO LILLIPUT
|
||
|
||
[Plate 1: Lilliput]
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The Author gives some Account of himself and Family: His first
|
||
Inducements to travel. He is shipwreck'd, and swims for his Life: Gets
|
||
safe on shoar in the Country of Lilliput: Is made a Prisoner, and carry'd
|
||
up the Country.
|
||
|
||
MY FATHER had a small Estate in Nottinghamshire; I was the Third of
|
||
five Sons. He sent me to Emanuel-College in Cambridge, at Fourteen Years
|
||
old, where I resided three Years, and applyed my self close to my Studies:
|
||
But the Charge of maintaining me (although I had a very scanty
|
||
Allowance) being too great for a narrow Fortune; I was bound Apprentice
|
||
to Mr. James Bates, an eminent Surgeon in London, with whom I continued
|
||
four Years; and my Father now and then sending me small Sums of Money,
|
||
I laid them out in learning Navigation, and other parts of the
|
||
Mathematicks, useful to those who intend to travel, as I always believed it
|
||
would be some time or other my Fortune to do. When I left Mr. Bates, I
|
||
went down to my Father; where, by the Assistance of him and my Uncle
|
||
John, and some other Relations, I got Forty Pounds, and a Promise of
|
||
Thirty Pounds a Year to maintain me at Leyden: There I studied Physick
|
||
two Years and seven Months, knowing it would be useful in long Voyages.
|
||
|
||
Soon after my Return from Leyden, I was recommended, by my good
|
||
Master Mr. Bates, to be Surgeon to the Swallow, Captain Abraham Pannell
|
||
Commander; with whom I continued three Years and a half, making a
|
||
Voyage or two into the Levant, and some other Parts. When I came back, I
|
||
resolved to settle in London, to which Mr. Bates, my Master, encouraged
|
||
me, and by him I was recommended to several Patients. I took Part of a
|
||
small House in the Old Jury; and being advised to alter my Condition, I
|
||
married Mrs. Mary Burton, second Daughter to Mr. Edmund Burton,
|
||
Hosier, in Newgate-street, with whom I received four Hundred Pounds for
|
||
a Portion.
|
||
|
||
But, my good Master Bates dying in two Years after, and I having few
|
||
Friends, my Business began to fail; for my Conscience would not suffer me
|
||
to imitate the bad Practice of too many among my Brethren. Having
|
||
therefore consulted with my Wife, and some of my Acquaintance, I
|
||
determined to go again to Sea. I was Surgeon successively in two Ships, and
|
||
made several Voyages, for six Years, to the East and West-Indies, by which
|
||
I got some Addition to my Fortune. My Hours of Leisure I spent in reading
|
||
the best Authors, antient and modern, being always provided with a good
|
||
Number of Books ; and when I was ashore, in observing the Manners and
|
||
Dispositions of the People, well as learning their Language, wherein I had
|
||
a great Facility by the Strength of my Memory.
|
||
|
||
The last of these Voyages not proving very fortunate, I grew weary of the
|
||
Sea, and intended to stay at home with my Wife and Family. I removed
|
||
from the Old Jury to Fetter-Lane, and from thence to Wapping hoping to
|
||
get business among the sailors; but it would not turn to account. After three
|
||
Years Expectation that things would mend, I accepted an advantageous
|
||
Offer from Captain William Prichard, Master of the Antelope, who was
|
||
making a Voyage to the South-Sea. We set sail from Bristol May 4th, 1699
|
||
and our Voyage at first was very prosperous.
|
||
|
||
It would not be proper, for some Reasons, to trouble the Reader with the
|
||
Particulars of our Adventures in those Seas: Let it suffice to inform him,
|
||
that in our Passage from thence to the East-Indies, we were driven by a
|
||
violent Storm to the North-west of Van Diemen's Land. By an
|
||
Observation, we found ourselves in the Latitude of 30 Degrees 2 Minutes
|
||
South. Twelve of our Crew were dead by immoderate Labour and ill Food,
|
||
the rest were in a very weak Condition. On the fifth of November, which
|
||
was the beginning of Summer in those Parts, the Weather being very hazy,
|
||
the Seamen spied a Rock, within half a Cable's length of the Ship; but the
|
||
Wind was so strong, that we were driven directly upon it, and immediately
|
||
split. Six of the Crew, of whom I was one, having let down the Boat into
|
||
the Sea, made a Shift to get clear of the Ship, and the Rock. We rowed by
|
||
my Computation about three Leagues, till we were able to work no longer,
|
||
being already spent with Labour while we were in the Ship. We therefore
|
||
trusted ourselves to the Mercy of the Waves, and in about half an Hour the
|
||
Boat was overset by a sudden Flurry from the North. What became of my
|
||
Companions in the Boat, as well as of those who escaped on the Rock, or
|
||
were left in the Vessel, I cannot tell; but conclude they were all lost. For
|
||
my own Part, I swam as Fortune directed me, and was pushed forward by
|
||
Wind and Tide. I often let my Legs drop, and could feel no Bottom: but
|
||
when I was almost gone, and able to struggle no longer, I found myself
|
||
within my Depth; and by this Time the Storm was much abated. The
|
||
Declivity was so small, that I walked near a Mile before I got to the Shore,
|
||
which I conjectur'd was about eight a-clock in the Evening. I then advanced
|
||
forward near half a Mile, but could not discover any sign of Houses or
|
||
Inhabitants; at least I was in so weak a Condition, that I did not observe
|
||
them. I was extremely tired, and with that, and the Heat of the Weather,
|
||
and about half a Pint of Brandy that I drank as I left the Ship, I found
|
||
myself much inclined to sleep. I lay down on the Grass, which was very
|
||
short and soft, where I slept sounder than ever I remember to have done in
|
||
my Life, and, as I reckoned, above Nine Hours; for when I awakened, it
|
||
was just Day-light. I attempted to rise, but was not able to stir: For as I
|
||
happen'd to lye on my Back, I found my Arms and Legs were strongly
|
||
fastened on each Side to the Ground; and my Hair, which was long and
|
||
thick, tied down in the same Manner. I likewise felt several slender
|
||
Ligatures across my Body, from my Armpits to my Thighs. I could only
|
||
look upwards; the Sun began to grow hot, and the Light offended my Eyes.
|
||
I heard a confused Noise about me, but in the Posture I lay, could see
|
||
nothing except the Sky. In a little time I felt something alive moving on my
|
||
left Leg, which advancing gently forward over my Breast, came almost up
|
||
to my Chin; when bending my Eyes downwards as much as I could, I
|
||
perceived it to be a human Creature not six Inches high, with a Bow and
|
||
Arrow in his hands, and a Quiver at his Back. In the meantime, I felt at
|
||
least Forty more of the same Kind (as I conjectured) following the first. I
|
||
was in the utmost Astonishment, and roared so loud, that they all ran back
|
||
in a Fright; and some of them, as I was afterwards told, were hurt with the
|
||
Falls they got by leaping from my Sides upon the Ground. However, they
|
||
soon returned, and one of them, who ventured so far as to get a full Sight
|
||
of my Face, lifting up his Hands and Eyes by way of Admiration, cried out
|
||
in a shrill but distinct Voice, Hekinah Degul: the others repeated the same
|
||
Words several times, but I then knew not what they meant. I lay all this
|
||
while, as the Reader may believe, in great Uneasiness; At length, struggling
|
||
to get loose, I had the Fortune to break the Strings, and wrench out the
|
||
Pegs that fastened my left Arm to the Ground; for, by lifting it up to my
|
||
Face, I discovered the Methods they had taken to bind me, and at the same
|
||
time, with a violent Pull, which gave me excessive Pain, I a little loosened
|
||
the Strings that tied down my Hair on the left Side, so that I was just able to
|
||
turn my Head about two Inches. But the creatures ran off a second time,
|
||
before I could seize them; Whereupon there was a great Shout in a very
|
||
shrill Accent, and after it ceased, I heard one of them cry aloud, Tolgo
|
||
Phonac; when in an Instant I felt above a Hundred Arrows discharged on
|
||
my left Hand, which pricked me like so many Needles; and besides they
|
||
shot another Flight into the Air, as we do Bombs in Europe, whereof
|
||
many, I suppose, fell on my Body (though I felt them not) and some on my
|
||
Face, which I immediately covered with my left Hand. When this Shower
|
||
of Arrows was over, I fell a groaning with Grief and Pain, and then
|
||
striving again to get loose, they discharged another Volly larger than the
|
||
first, and some of them attempted with Spears to stick me in the Sides; but,
|
||
by good Luck, I had on me a Buff Jerkin, which they could not pierce. I
|
||
thought it the most prudent Method to lie still, and my Design was to
|
||
continue so till Night, when, my left Hand being already loose, I could
|
||
easily free myself: And as for the Inhabitants, I had Reason to believe I
|
||
might be a Match for the greatest Armies they could bring against me, if
|
||
they were all of the same Size with him that I saw. But Fortune disposed
|
||
otherwise of me. When the People observed I was quiet, they discharged no
|
||
more Arrows: But, by the Noise increasing, I knew their Numbers were
|
||
greater; and about four Yards from me, over against my right Ear, I heard
|
||
a Knocking for above an Hour, like People at work; when turning my Head
|
||
that Way, as well as the Pegs and Strings would permit me, I saw a Stage
|
||
erected about a Foot and a half from the Ground, capable of holding four
|
||
of the Inhabitants, with two or three Ladders to mount it: From whence
|
||
one of them, who seemed to be a Person of Quality, made me a long
|
||
Speech, whereof I understood not one Syllable. But I should have
|
||
mentioned, that before the principal Person began his Oration, he cryed out
|
||
three times, Langro Dehul san: (these Words and the former were
|
||
afterwards repeated and explained to me). Whereupon immediately about
|
||
fifty of the Inhabitants came, and cut the Strings that fastened the left side
|
||
of my Head, which gave me the Liberty of turning it to the right, and of
|
||
observing the Person and Gesture of him that was to speak. He appeared to
|
||
be of a middle age, and taller than any of the other three who attended him,
|
||
whereof one was a Page that held up his Train, and seemed to be somewhat
|
||
longer than my middle Finger; the other two stood one on each side to
|
||
support him. He acted every part of an Orator, and I could observe many
|
||
periods of Threatnings, and others of Promises, Pity and Kindness. I
|
||
answered in a few Words, but in the most submissive Manner, lifting up
|
||
my left Hand and both my eyes to the Sun, as calling him for a Witness;
|
||
and being almost famished with Hunger, having not eaten a Morsel for
|
||
some Hours before I left the Ship, I found the Demands of Nature so strong
|
||
upon me, that I could not forbear showing my Impatience (perhaps against
|
||
the strict Rules of Decency) by putting my Finger frequently on my Mouth,
|
||
to signify that I wanted Food. The Hurgo (for so they call a great Lord, as
|
||
I afterwards learned) understood me very well: He descended from the
|
||
Stage, and commanded that several Ladders should be applied to my Sides,
|
||
on which above a Hundred of the Inhabitants mounted, and walked towards
|
||
my Mouth, laden with Baskets full of Meat, which had been provided, and
|
||
sent thither by the King's Orders, upon the first Intelligence he received of
|
||
me. I observed there was the Flesh of several Animals, but could not
|
||
distinguish them by the Taste. There were Shoulders, Legs, and Loins,
|
||
shaped like those of Mutton, and very well dressed, but smaller than the
|
||
Wings of a Lark. I eat them by two or three at a Mouthful, and took three
|
||
Loaves at a time, about the bigness of Musket Bullets. They supplied me as
|
||
fast as they could, shewing a thousand Marks of Wonder and Astonishment
|
||
at my Bulk and Appetite. I then made another Sign that I wanted Drink.
|
||
They found by my eating that a small Quantity would not suffice me, and
|
||
being a most ingenious People, they slung up with great Dexterity one of
|
||
their largest Hogsheads, then rolled it toward my Hand, and beat out the
|
||
Top; I drank it off at a Draught, which I might well do, for it hardly held
|
||
half a Pint, and tasted like a small Wine of Burgundy, but much more
|
||
delicious. They brought me a second Hogshead, which I drank in the same
|
||
Manner, and made Signs for more, but they had none to give me. When I
|
||
had performed these Wonders, they shouted for Joy, and danced upon my
|
||
Breast, repeating several times as they did at first, Hekinah Degul. They
|
||
made me a Sign that I should throw down the two Hogsheads, but first
|
||
warning the People below to stand out of the Way, crying aloud, Borach
|
||
Mivola, and when they saw the Vessels in the Air, there was a universal
|
||
Shout of Hekinah Degul. I confess I was often tempted, while they were
|
||
passing backwards and forwards on my Body, to seize Forty or Fifty of the
|
||
first that came in my Reach, and dash them against the Ground. But the
|
||
Remembrance of what I had felt, which probably might not be the worst
|
||
they could do; and the Promise of Honour I made them, for so I
|
||
interpreted my submissive Behaviour, soon drove out these Imaginations.
|
||
Besides, I now considered myself as bound by the Laws of Hospitality to a
|
||
People who had treated me with so much Expense and Magnificence.
|
||
However, in my Thoughts I could not sufficiently wonder at the Intrepidity
|
||
of these diminutive Mortals, who dare venture to mount and walk upon my
|
||
Body, while one of my Hands was at Liberty, without trembling at the very
|
||
Sight of so prodigious a Creature as I must appear to them. After some
|
||
time, when they observed that I made no more Demands for Meat, there
|
||
appeared before me a Person of high Rank from his Imperial Majesty. His
|
||
Excellency having mounted on the small of my right Leg, advanced
|
||
forwards up to my Face, with about a Dozen of his Retinue; And producing
|
||
his Credentials under the Signet Royal, which he applied close to my Eyes,
|
||
spoke about ten Minutes, without any Signs of Anger, but with a kind of
|
||
determinate Resolution; often pointing forwards, which, as I afterwards
|
||
found, was towards the Capital City, about half a Mile distant, whither it
|
||
was agreed by his Majesty in Council that I must be conveyed. I answered
|
||
in few Words, but to no Purpose, and made a Sign with my Hand that was
|
||
loose, putting it to the other (but over his Excellency's Head, for fear of
|
||
hurting him or his Train) and then to my own Head and Body, to signify
|
||
that I desired my Liberty. It appeared that he understood me well enough,
|
||
for he shook his Head by way of Disapprobation , and held his Hand in a
|
||
Posture to show that I must be carried as a Prisoner. However, he made
|
||
other Signs to let me understand that I should have Meat and Drink enough,
|
||
and very good Treatment. Whereupon I once more thought of attempting
|
||
to break my Bonds, but again, when I felt the Smart of their Arrows upon
|
||
my Face and Hands, which were all in Blisters, and many of the Darts still
|
||
sticking in them, and observing likewise that the Number of my Enemies
|
||
encreased, I gave Tokens to let them know that they might do with me what
|
||
they pleased. Upon this the Hurgo and his Train withdrew with much
|
||
Civility and chearful Countenances. Soon after I heard a general Shout,
|
||
with frequent repetitions of the words, Peplom Selan, and I felt great
|
||
Numbers of the People on my Left Side relaxing the Cords to such a
|
||
Degree, that I was able to turn upon my Right, and to ease myself with
|
||
making Water; which I very plentifully did, to the great Astonishment of
|
||
the People, who conjecturing by my Motions what I was going to do,
|
||
immediately opened to the right and left on that Side, to avoid the Torrent
|
||
which fell with such Noise and Violence from me. But before this, they had
|
||
daubed my Face and both my Hands with a sort of Ointment very pleasant
|
||
to the Smell, which in a few Minutes removed all the Smart of their
|
||
Arrows. These Circumstances, added to the Refreshment I had received by
|
||
their Victuals and Drink, which were very nourishing , disposed me to
|
||
sleep. I slept about eight Hours, as I was afterwards assured; and it was no
|
||
Wonder, for the Physicians, by the Emperor's Order, had mingled a
|
||
sleeping Potion in the Hogsheads of Wine.
|
||
|
||
It seems that upon the first Moment I was discovered sleeping on the
|
||
Ground after my Landing, the Emperor had early Notice of it by an
|
||
Express, and determined in Council that I should be tyed in the Manner I
|
||
have related (which was done in the Night while I slept), that plenty of
|
||
Meat and Drink should be sent me, and a Machine prepared to carry me to
|
||
the Capital City.
|
||
|
||
This Resolution perhaps may appear very bold and dangerous, and I am
|
||
confident would not be imitated by any Prince in Europe on the like
|
||
Occasion; however, in my Opinion, it was extremely Prudent, as well as
|
||
Generous. For supposing these People had endeavored to kill me with their
|
||
Spears and Arrows while I was asleep, I should certainly have awakened
|
||
with the first Sense of Smart, which might so far have roused my Rage and
|
||
Strength, as to have enabled me to break the Strings wherewith I was tyed;
|
||
after which, as they were not able to make Resistance, so they could expect
|
||
no Mercy.
|
||
|
||
These People are most excellent Mathematicians, and arrived to great
|
||
perfection in Mechanicks by the Countenance and Encouragement of the
|
||
Emperor, who is a renowned Patron of Learning. This Prince has several
|
||
Machines fixed on Wheels for the Carriage of Trees and other great
|
||
Weights. He often builds his largest Men of War, whereof some are Nine
|
||
Foot long, in the Woods where the Timber grows, and has them carried on
|
||
these Engines three or four Hundred Yards to the sea. Five Hundred
|
||
Carpenters and Engineers were immediately set at work to prepare the
|
||
greatest Engine they had. It was a Frame of Wood raised three Inches from
|
||
the Ground, about seven Foot long and four wide, moving upon twenty-
|
||
two Wheels. The Shout I heard was upon the Arrival of this Engine, which
|
||
it seems set out in four Hours after my Landing. It was brought parallel to
|
||
me as I lay. But the principal Difficulty was to raise and place me in this
|
||
Vehicle. Eighty Poles, each of one Foot high, were erected for this
|
||
Purpose, and very strong Cords of the bigness of Pack thread were
|
||
fastened by Hooks to many Bandages, which the Workmen had girt round
|
||
my Neck, my Hands, my Body, and my Legs. Nine Hundred of the
|
||
strongest Men were employed to draw up these Cords by many Pulleys
|
||
fastned on the Poles, and thus, in less than three Hours, I was raised and
|
||
slung into the Engine, and there tyed fast. All this I was told, for while the
|
||
whole Operation was performing, I lay in a profound Sleep, by the Force
|
||
of that soporiferous Medicine infused into my Liquor. Fifteen Hundred of
|
||
the Emperor's largest Horses, each about four Inches and a half high, were
|
||
employed to draw me towards the Metropolis, which, as I said, was half a
|
||
Mile distant.
|
||
|
||
About four Hours after we began our Journey, I awaked by a very
|
||
ridiculous Accident; for the Carriage being stopt a while to adjust
|
||
something that was out of Order, two or three of the young Natives had the
|
||
Curiosity to see how I looked when I was asleep; they climbed up into the
|
||
Engine, and advancing very softly to my Face, one of them, an Officer in
|
||
the Guards, put the sharp End of his Half-Pike a good way up into my left
|
||
Nostril, which tickled my Nose like a Straw, and made me sneeze violently:
|
||
Whereupon they stole off unperceived, and it was three Weeks before I
|
||
knew the Cause of my awaking so suddenly. We made a long March the
|
||
remaining Part of that Day, and rested at Night with Five Hundred Guards
|
||
on each Side of me, half with Torches, and half with Bows and Arrows,
|
||
ready to shoot me if I should offer to stir. The next Morning at Sunrise we
|
||
continued our March, and arrived within two Hundred Yards of the City-
|
||
Gates about Noon. The Emperor, and all his Court, came out to meet us;
|
||
but his great Officers would by no means suffer his Majesty to endanger
|
||
his Person by mounting on my Body.
|
||
|
||
At the Place where the Carriage stopt, there stood an antient Temple,
|
||
esteemed to be the largest in the whole Kingdom, which having been
|
||
polluted some Years before by an unnatural Murder, was, according to the
|
||
Zeal of those People, looked on as prophane, and therefore had been
|
||
applied to common Use, and all the Ornaments and Furniture carried away.
|
||
In this Edifice it was determined I should lodge. The great Gate fronting to
|
||
the North was about four feet high, and almost two feet wide, through
|
||
which I could easily creep. On each Side of the Gate was a small Window
|
||
not above six Inches from the Ground: Into that on the Left Side, the
|
||
King's Smiths conveyed fourscore and eleven Chains, like those that hang
|
||
to a Lady's Watch in Europe, and almost as large, which were locked to
|
||
my Left Leg with six and thirty Padlocks. Over against this Temple, on the
|
||
other Side of the great highway, at twenty Foot Distance, there was a
|
||
Turret at least Five Foot high. Here the Emperor ascended with many
|
||
principal Lords of his Court, to have an opportunity of viewing me, as I
|
||
was told, for I could not see them. It was reckoned that above a hundred
|
||
thousand Inhabitants came out of the Town upon the same Errand; and in
|
||
spite of my Guards, I believe there could not be fewer than ten thousand, at
|
||
several Times, who mounted upon my Body by the Help of Ladders. But a
|
||
Proclamation was soon issued to forbid it upon Pain of Death. When the
|
||
Workmen found it was impossible for me to break loose, they cut all the
|
||
Strings that bound me; whereupon I rose up with as melancholy a
|
||
Disposition as ever I had in my Life. But the Noise and Astonishment of
|
||
the People at seeing me rise and walk, are not to be expressed. The Chains
|
||
that held my left Leg were about two Yards long, and gave me not only the
|
||
Liberty of walking backwards and forwards in a Semicircle; but, being
|
||
fixed within four Inches of the Gate, allowed me to creep in, and lie at my
|
||
full Length in the Temple.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The Emperor of Lilliput, attended by several of the Nobility, comes to see
|
||
the Author in his Confinement. The Emperor's Person and Habit describ'd.
|
||
Learned Men appointed to teach the Author their Language. He gains
|
||
Favour by his mild Disposition. His Pockets Are searched, and his Sword
|
||
and Pistols taken from him.
|
||
|
||
WHEN I found myself on my Feet, I looked about me, and must confess I
|
||
never beheld a more entertaining Prospect. The Country round appeared
|
||
like a continued Garden, and the inclosed Fields, which were generally
|
||
Forty Foot square, resembled so many Beds of Flowers. These Fields were
|
||
intermingled with Woods of half a Stang, and the tallest Trees, as I could
|
||
judge, appeared to be seven Foot high. I viewed the Town on my left Hand,
|
||
which looked like the painted Scene of a City in a Theatre.
|
||
|
||
I had been for some Hours extremely pressed by the Necessities of Nature;
|
||
which was no Wonder, it being almost two Days since I had last
|
||
disburthened myself. I was under great Difficulties between Urgency and
|
||
Shame. The best Expedient I could think on, was to creep into my House,
|
||
which I accordingly did; and shutting the Gate after me, I went as far as the
|
||
Length of my Chain would suffer, and discharged my Body of that uneasy
|
||
Load. But this was the only Time I was ever guilty of so uncleanly an
|
||
Action; for which I cannot but hope the candid Reader will give some
|
||
Allowance, after he has maturely and impartially considered my Case, and
|
||
the Distress I was in. From this Time my constant Practice was, as soon as
|
||
I rose, to perform that Business in open Air, at the full Extent of my
|
||
Chain, and due Care was taken every Morning before Company came, that
|
||
the offensive Matter should be carried off in Wheel-barrows, by two
|
||
Servants appointed for that Purpose. I would not have dwelt so long upon a
|
||
Circumstance, that perhaps at first sight may appear not very momentous,
|
||
if I had not thought it necessary to justify my Character in point of
|
||
Cleanliness to the world; which I am told some of my Maligners have been
|
||
pleased, upon this and other Occasions, to call in question.
|
||
|
||
When this Adventure was at an end, I came back out of my House, having
|
||
occasion for fresh Air. The Emperor was already descended from the
|
||
Tower, and advancing on Horse-back towards me, which had like to have
|
||
cost him dear; for the Beast, though very well trained, yet wholly unused
|
||
to such a Sight, which appeared as if a Mountain moved before him, he
|
||
reared up on his hinder Feet: But that Prince, who is an excellent Horse-
|
||
man, kept his Seat, till his Attendants ran in, and held the Bridle, while his
|
||
Majesty had time to dismount. When he alighted, he surveyed me round
|
||
with great Admiration, but kept without the length of my Chain. He
|
||
ordered his Cooks and Butlers, who were already prepared, to give me
|
||
Victuals and Drink, which they pushed forward in a sort of Vehicles upon
|
||
Wheels till I could reach them. I took these Vehicles, and soon emptied
|
||
them all; twenty of them were filled with Meat, and ten with Liquor; each
|
||
of the former afforded me two or three good Mouthfuls, and I emptied the
|
||
Liquor of ten Vessels, which was contained in earthen Vials, into one
|
||
Vehicle, drinking it off at a Draught; and so I did with the rest. The
|
||
Empress, and young Princes of the Blood, of both Sexes, attended by many
|
||
Ladies, sat at some distance in their Chairs; but upon the Accident that
|
||
happened to the Emperor's Horse, they alighted, and came near his Person,
|
||
which I am now going to describe. He is taller by almost the breadth of my
|
||
Nail, than any of his Court, which alone is enough to strike an Awe into the
|
||
Beholders. His Features are strong and masculine, with an Austrian lip and
|
||
arched Nose, his Complexion olive, his Countenance erect, his Body and
|
||
Limbs well proportioned, all his motions graceful, and his Deportment
|
||
majestic. He was then past his Prime, being twenty-eight Years and three
|
||
Quarters old, of which he had reigned about seven, in great Felicity, and
|
||
generally victorious. For the better convenience of beholding him, I lay on
|
||
my Side, so that my Face was parallel to his, and he stood but three Yards
|
||
off: However, I have had him since many Times in my Hand, and therefore
|
||
cannot be deceived in the Description. His Dress was very plain and simple,
|
||
and the Fashion of it between the Asiatick and the European; but he had on
|
||
his Head a light Helmet of Gold, adorned with Jewels, and a Plume on the
|
||
Crest. He held his Sword drawn in his Hand, to defend himself, if I should
|
||
happen to break loose; it was almost three Inches long, the Hilt and
|
||
Scabbard were Gold, enriched with Diamonds. His Voice was shrill, but
|
||
very clear and articulate, and I could distinctly hear it when I stood up.
|
||
The Ladies and Courtiers were all most magnificently clad, so that the Spot
|
||
they stood upon seemed to resemble a Petticoat spread on the Ground,
|
||
embroidered with Figures of Gold and Silver. His Imperial Majesty spoke
|
||
often to me, and I returned Answers, but neither of us could understand a
|
||
Syllable. There were several of his Priests and Lawyers present (as I
|
||
conjectured by their Habits) who were commanded to address themselves to
|
||
me, and I spoke to them in as many Languages as I had the least smattering
|
||
of, which were High and Low Dutch, Latin, French, Spanish, Italian, and
|
||
Lingua Franca ; but all to no Purpose. After about two Hours the Court
|
||
retired, and I was left with a strong Guard, to prevent the Impertinence,
|
||
and probably the Malice of the Rabble, who were very impatient to croud
|
||
about me as near as they durst, and some of them had the impudence to
|
||
shoot their Arrows at me as I sate on the Ground by the Door of my
|
||
House, whereof one very narrowly missed my left Eye. But the Colonel
|
||
ordered six of the Ringleaders to be seized, and thought no Punishment so
|
||
proper as to deliver them bound into my Hands, which some of his Soldiers
|
||
accordingly did, pushing them forwards with the But-Ends of their Pikes
|
||
into my Reach; I took them all in my right Hand, put five of them into my
|
||
Coat-Pocket, and as to the sixth, I made a Countenance as if I would eat
|
||
him alive. The poor Man squalled terribly, and the Colonel and his
|
||
Officers were in much Pain, especially when they saw me take out my
|
||
Penknife: But I soon put them out of fear; for, looking mildly and
|
||
immediately cutting the Strings he was bound with, I set him gently on the
|
||
Ground, and away he ran; I treated the rest in the same manner, taking
|
||
them one by one out of my Pocket, and I observed both the Soldiers and
|
||
People were highly obliged at this Mark of my Clemency, which was
|
||
represented very much to my Advantage at Court.
|
||
|
||
Towards Night I with some Difficulty got into my House, where I lay on
|
||
the Ground, and continued to do so about a Fortnight; during which Time
|
||
the Emperor gave Orders to have a Bed prepared for me. Six hundred
|
||
Beds of the common Measure were brought in Carriages, and worked up in
|
||
my House; a hundred and fifty of their Beds sewn together made up the
|
||
Breadth and Length, and these were four double, which however kept me
|
||
but very indifferently from the Hardness of the Floor, that was of smooth
|
||
Stone. By the same Computation they provided me with Sheets, Blankets,
|
||
and Coverlets, tolerable enough for one who had been so long enured to
|
||
Hardships as I.
|
||
|
||
As the News of my Arrival spread through the Kingdom, it brought
|
||
prodigious Numbers of rich, idle, and curious People to see me; so that the
|
||
Villages were almost emptied, and great Neglect of Tillage and Household
|
||
Affairs must have ensued, if his Imperial Majesty had not provided, by
|
||
several Proclamations and Orders of State, against this Inconveniency. He
|
||
directed that those who had already beheld me should return Home, and not
|
||
presume to come within fifty Yards of my House without Licence from
|
||
Court; whereby the Secretarys of State got considerable Fees.
|
||
|
||
In the mean time, the Emperor held frequent Councils to debate what
|
||
Course should be taken with me; and I was afterwards assured by a
|
||
particular Friend, a Person of great Quality, who was looked upon to be as
|
||
much in the Secret as any, that the Court was under many Difficulties
|
||
concerning me. They apprehended my breaking loose, that my Diet would
|
||
be very expensive, and might cause a Famine. Sometimes they determined
|
||
to starve me, or at least to shoot me in the Face and Hands with poisoned
|
||
Arrows, which would soon dispatch me: But again they considered, that the
|
||
Stench of so large a Carcass might produce a Plague in the Metropolis, and
|
||
probably spread through the whole Kingdom. In the midst of these
|
||
Consultations, several Officers of the army went to the Door of the great
|
||
Council Chamber; and two of them being admitted, gave an account of my
|
||
Behavior to the six Criminals above-mentioned, which made so favorable
|
||
an Impression in the Breast of his Majesty and the whole Board in my
|
||
behalf, that an Imperial Commission was issued out, obliging all the
|
||
Villages nine hundred Yards round the City, to deliver in every Morning
|
||
six Beeves, forty Sheep, and other Victuals for my Sustenance; together
|
||
with a proportionable Quantity of Bread, and Wine, and other Liquors: for
|
||
the due Payment of which, his Majesty gave assignments upon his
|
||
Treasury. For this Prince lives chiefly upon his own Demesnes, seldom,
|
||
except upon great Occasions, raising any Subsidies upon his Subjects, who
|
||
are bound to attend him in his Wars at their own Expense. An
|
||
Establishment was also made of six hundred Persons to be my Domesticks,
|
||
who had Board-Wages allowed for their Maintenance, and Tents built for
|
||
them very conveniently on each side of my Door. It was likewise ordered,
|
||
that three hundred Taylors should make me a Suit of Cloaths after the
|
||
Fashion of the Country: That six of his Majesty's greatest Scholars should
|
||
be employ'd to instruct me in their Language: And, lastly, that the
|
||
Emperor's Horses, and those of the Nobility, and Troops of Guards, should
|
||
be frequently exercised in my sight, to accustom themselves to me. All
|
||
these Orders were duly put in Execution, and in about three Weeks I made
|
||
a great progress in learning their Language; during which time, the
|
||
Emperor frequently honored me with his Visits, and was pleased to assist
|
||
my Masters in teaching me. We began already to converse together in some
|
||
sort; and the first Words I learnt were to express my Desire that he would
|
||
please give me my Liberty, which I every day repeated on my Knees. His
|
||
Answer, as I could apprehend it, was, that this must be a Work of Time,
|
||
not to be thought on without the Advice of Council, and that first I must
|
||
Lumos Kelmin pesso desmar lon Emposo; that is, swear a Peace with him
|
||
and his Kingdom. However, that I should be used with all Kindness; and he
|
||
advised me to acquire, by my Patience and discreet Behaviour, the good
|
||
Opinion of himself and his Subjects. He desired I would not take it ill, if he
|
||
gave Orders to certain proper Officers to search me; for probably I might
|
||
carry about me several Weapons, which must needs be dangerous things, if
|
||
they answered the Bulk of so prodigious a Person. I said, his Majesty
|
||
should be satisfied, for I was ready to strip myself, and turn out my
|
||
Pockets before him. This I delivered part in Words, and part in Signs. He
|
||
replied, that by the Laws of the Kingdom I must be searched by two of his
|
||
Officers; that he knew this could not be done without my Consent and
|
||
Assistance; that he had so good an Opinion of my Generosity and Justice, as
|
||
to trust their Persons in my Hands: That whatever they took from me
|
||
should be returned when I left the Country, or paid for at the Rate which I
|
||
would set upon them. I took up the two Officers in my Hands, put them
|
||
first into my Coat-Pockets, and then into every other Pocket about me,
|
||
except my two Fobs, and another secret Pocket I had no mind should be
|
||
searched, wherein I had some little Necessaries that were of no
|
||
consequence to any but myself. In one of my Fobs there was a silver
|
||
Watch, and in the other a small Quantity of Gold in a Purse. These
|
||
Gentlemen, having Pen Ink, and Paper about them, made an exact
|
||
Inventory of everything they saw; and when they had done, desired I would
|
||
set them down, that they might deliver it to the Emperor. This Inventory I
|
||
afterwards translated into English, and is word for word as follows.
|
||
|
||
IMPRIMIS, In the right coat Pocket of the Great Man Mountain (for
|
||
so I interpret the Words quinbus Flestrin) after the strictest
|
||
search, we found only one great Piece of coarse Cloath, large
|
||
enough to be a Foot-Cloth for your Majesty's chief Room of State.
|
||
In the left Pocket we saw a huge Silver Chest, with a Cover of the
|
||
same Metal, which we the Searchers were not able to lift. We
|
||
desired it should be opened, and one of us stepping into it, found
|
||
himself up to the mid Leg in a sort of Dust, some part whereof
|
||
flying up to our Faces, set us both sneezing for several times
|
||
together. In his right Waistcoat-Pocket we found a prodigious
|
||
Bundle of white thin Substances, folded one over another, about
|
||
the Bigness of three Men, tied with a strong cable, and marked
|
||
with black Figures; which we humbly conceive to be Writings, every
|
||
Letter almost half as large as the Palm of our Hands. In the left
|
||
there was a sort of Engine, from the back of which were extended
|
||
twenty long poles, resembling the palisades before your Majesty's
|
||
Court; wherewith we conjecture the Man Mountain combs his Head,
|
||
for we did not always trouble him with Questions, because we found
|
||
it a great Difficulty to make him understand us. In the large
|
||
Pocket on the right side of his middle Cover (so I translate the
|
||
Word Ranfu-Lo, by which they meant my Breeches) we saw a hollow
|
||
Pillar of Iron, about the length of a Man, fastened to a strong
|
||
piece of Timber, larger than the Pillar; and upon one side of the
|
||
Pillar were huge Pieces of Iron sticking out, cut into strange
|
||
Figures, which we know not what to make of. In the left Pocket,
|
||
another Engine of the same kind. In the smaller Pocket on the
|
||
right side, were several round flat Pieces of white and red Metal,
|
||
of different Bulk; some of the white, which seemed to be silver,
|
||
were so large and heavy, that my Comrade and I could hardly lift
|
||
them. In the left Pocket were two black Pillars irregularly
|
||
shaped: we could not, without Difficulty, reach the Top of them as
|
||
we stood at the Bottom of his Pocket. One of them was covered, and
|
||
seemed all of a Piece: but at the upper End of the other, there
|
||
appeared a white round Substance, about twice the bigness of our
|
||
heads. Within each of these was inclosed a prodigious Plate of
|
||
Steel; which, by our Orders, we obliged him to shew us, because we
|
||
apprehended they might be dangerous Engines. He took them out of
|
||
their Cases, and told us, that in his own Country his Practice was
|
||
to shave his Beard with one of these, and to cut his Meat with the
|
||
other. There were two Pockets which we could not enter: These he
|
||
called his Fobs; they were two large Slits cut into the top of his
|
||
middle Cover, but squeez'd close by the pressure of his Belly. Out
|
||
of the right Fob hung a great silver Chain, with a wonderful kind
|
||
of Engine at the bottom. We directed him to draw out whatever was
|
||
fastened to that Chain; which appeared to be a Globe, half Silver,
|
||
and half of some transparent Metal: for on the transparent side we
|
||
saw certain strange Figures circularly drawn, and thought we could
|
||
touch them, till we found our Fingers stopped by that lucid
|
||
Substance. He put this Engine to our Ears, which made an incessant
|
||
Noise like that of a Water-Mill. And we conjecture it is either
|
||
some unknown Animal, or the God that he worships: But we are more
|
||
inclined to the latter Opinion, because he assured us (if we
|
||
understood him right, for he expressed himself very imperfectly)
|
||
that he seldom did anything without consulting it: he called it
|
||
his Oracle, and said it pointed out the Time for every Action of
|
||
his Life. From the left Fob he took out a Net almost large enough
|
||
for a Fisherman, but contrived to open and shut like a Purse, and
|
||
serve him for the same use: we found therein several massy Pieces
|
||
of yellow Metal, which, if they be real Gold, must be of immense
|
||
Value.
|
||
|
||
Having thus, in obedience to your Majesty's Commands, diligently
|
||
searched all his Pockets, we observed a Girdle about his Waist
|
||
made of the Hide of some prodigious Animal; from which, on the
|
||
left side, hung a Sword of the length of five Men; and on the
|
||
right, a Bag or Pouch divided into two Cells, each Cell capable of
|
||
holding three of your Majesty's Subjects. In one of these Cells
|
||
were several Globes or Balls of a most ponderous Metal, about the
|
||
bigness of our Heads, and requiring a strong Hand to lift them:
|
||
the other Cell contained a Heap of certain black Grains, but of no
|
||
great Bulk or Weight, for we could hold above fifty of them in the
|
||
Palms of our Hands.
|
||
|
||
This is an exact Inventory of what we found about the Body of the
|
||
Man-Mountain, who used us with great Civility, and due Respect to
|
||
your Majesty's Commission.
|
||
|
||
Signed and Sealed on the fourth Day of the eighty ninth Moon of
|
||
your Majesty's auspicious Reign.
|
||
|
||
Clefren Frelock, Marsi Frelock.
|
||
|
||
When this Inventory was read over to the Emperor, he directed me,
|
||
although in very gentle Terms, to deliver up the several Particulars. He
|
||
first called for my Scymiter, which I took out, Scabbard and all. In the
|
||
meantime he ordered three thousand of his choicest Troops (who then
|
||
attended him) to surround me at a distance, with their Bows and Arrows
|
||
just ready to discharge: but I did not observe it, for mine Eyes were wholly
|
||
fixed upon his Majesty. He then desired me to draw my Scymiter, which,
|
||
although it had got some Rust by the Sea-Water, was in most parts
|
||
exceeding bright. I did so, and immediately all the Troops gave a Shout
|
||
between Terror and Surprise; for the Sun shone clear, and the Reflection
|
||
dazzled their Eyes as I waved the Scymiter to and fro in my Hand. His
|
||
Majesty, who is a most magnanimous Prince, was less danted than I could
|
||
expect; he ordered me to return it into the Scabbard, and cast it on the
|
||
Ground as gently as I could, about six Foot from the end of my Chain. The
|
||
next thing he demanded was one of the hollow iron pillars, by which he
|
||
meant my Pocket-Pistols. I drew it out, and at his desire, as well as I could,
|
||
expressed to him the Use of it; and charging it only with Powder, which by
|
||
the closeness of my Pouch happened to escape wetting in the Sea (an
|
||
Inconvenience against which all prudent mariners take special Care to
|
||
provide) I first cautioned the Emperor not to be afraid, and then I let it off
|
||
in the Air. The Astonishment here was much greater than at the sight of
|
||
my Scymiter. Hundreds fell down as if they had been struck dead; and even
|
||
the Emperor, although he stood his ground, could not recover himself in
|
||
some time. I delivered up both my Pistols in the same Manner as I had
|
||
done my Scymiter, and then my Pouch of Powder and Bullets; begging him
|
||
that the former might be kept from the Fire, for it would kindle with the
|
||
smallest Spark, and blow up his Imperial Palace into the Air. I likewise
|
||
delivered up my Watch, which the Emperor was very curious to see, and
|
||
commanded two of his tallest Yeomen of the Guards to bear it on a Pole
|
||
upon their shoulders, as Draymen in England do a Barrel of Ale. He was
|
||
amazed at the continual Noise it made, and the Motion of the Minute-Hand,
|
||
which he could easily discern; for their Sight is much more acute than
|
||
ours; and asked the Opinions of his learned Men about him, which were
|
||
various and remote, as the Reader may well imagine without my repeating;
|
||
although indeed I could not very perfectly understand them. I then gave up
|
||
my Silver and Copper money, my Purse with nine large Pieces of Gold,
|
||
and some smaller ones; my Knife and Razor, my Comb and Silver Snuff-
|
||
Box, my Handkerchief and Journal Book. My Scymiter, Pistols, and Pouch,
|
||
were conveyed in Carriages to his Majesty's Stores; but the rest of my
|
||
Goods were returned me.
|
||
|
||
I had, as I before observed, one private Pocket which escaped their Search,
|
||
wherein there was a pair of Spectacles (which I sometimes use for the
|
||
weakness of mine Eyes), a Pocket Perspective, and several other little
|
||
Conveniences; which, being of no consequence to the Emperor, I did not
|
||
think myself bound in Honour to discover, and I apprehended they might
|
||
be lost or spoiled if I ventured them out of my Possession.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The Author diverts the Emperor and his Nobility of both Sexes in a very
|
||
uncommon Manner. The Diversions of the Court of Lilliput described. The
|
||
Author has his Liberty granted him upon certain Conditions.
|
||
|
||
MY GENTLENESS and good Behaviour had gained so far on the Emperor
|
||
and his Court, and indeed upon the Army and People in general, that I
|
||
began to conceive Hopes of getting my Liberty in a short time. I took all
|
||
possible Methods to cultivate this favorable Disposition. The Natives came
|
||
by degrees to be less apprehensive of any Danger from me. I would
|
||
sometimes lie down, and let five or six of them dance on my Hand. And
|
||
last the Boys and Girls would venture to come and play at Hide and Seek in
|
||
my Hair. I had now made good Progress in understanding and speaking
|
||
their Language. The Emperor had a mind one day to entertain me with
|
||
several of the Country Shows, wherein they exceeded all Nations I have
|
||
known, both for Dexterity and Magnificence. I was diverted with none so
|
||
much as that of the Rope-Dancers, performed upon a slender white Thread,
|
||
extended about two Foot and twelve Inches from the Ground. Upon which
|
||
I shall desire liberty, with the Reader's Patience, to enlarge a little.
|
||
|
||
This Diversion is only practiced by those Persons who are Candidates for
|
||
great Employments, and high Favour, at Court. They are trained in this
|
||
Art from their Youth, and are not always of noble Birth, or liberal
|
||
Education. When a great Office is vacant either by Death or disgrace
|
||
(which often happens) five or six of those Candidates petition the Emperor
|
||
to entertain his Majesty and the Court with a Dance on the Rope, and
|
||
whoever jumps the highest without falling, succeeds in the Office. Very
|
||
often the Chief Ministers themselves are commanded to show their Skill,
|
||
and to convince the Emperor that they have not lost their Faculty. Flimnap,
|
||
the Treasurer, is allowed to cut a Caper on the strait Rope, at least an Inch
|
||
higher than any other Lord in the whole Empire. I have seen him do the
|
||
Summerset several times together upon a Trencher fixed on the Rope,
|
||
which is no thicker than a common packthread in England. My friend
|
||
Reldresal, principal Secretary for private Affairs, is, in my Opinion, if I
|
||
am not partial, the second after the Treasurer; the rest of the great Officers
|
||
are much upon a par.
|
||
|
||
These Diversions are often attended with fatal Accidents, whereof great
|
||
Numbers are on Record. I my self have seen two or three Candidates break
|
||
a Limb. But the Danger is much greater when the Ministers themselves are
|
||
commanded to shew their Dexterity; for by contending to excel themselves
|
||
and their Fellows, they strain so far, that there is hardly one of them who
|
||
has not received a Fall, and some of them two or three. I was assured that a
|
||
Year or two before my Arrival, Flimnap would have infallibly broken his
|
||
Neck, if one of the King's Cushions, that accidentally lay on the Ground,
|
||
had not weakened the Force of his Fall.
|
||
|
||
There is likewise another Diversion, which is only shewn before the
|
||
Emperor and Empress, and first Minister, upon particular Occasions. The
|
||
Emperor lays on the Table three fine silken Threads of six Inches long.
|
||
One is Blue, the other Red, and the third Green. These Threads are
|
||
proposed as Prizes for those Persons whom the Emperor has a mind to
|
||
distinguish by a peculiar Mark of his Favor. The Ceremony is performed
|
||
in his Majesty's great Chamber of State, where the Candidates are to
|
||
undergo a Tryal of Dexterity very different from the former, and such as I
|
||
have not observed the least Resemblance of in any other Country of the old
|
||
or the new World. The Emperor holds a Stick in his Hands, both ends
|
||
parallel to the Horizon, while the Candidates, advancing one by one,
|
||
sometimes leap over the Stick, sometimes creep under it backwards and
|
||
forwards several times, according as the Stick is advanced or depressed.
|
||
Sometimes the Emperor holds one end of the Stick, and his first Minister
|
||
the other; sometimes the Minister has it entirely to himself. Whoever
|
||
performs his Part with most Agility, and holds out the longest in leaping
|
||
and creeping, is rewarded with the Blue-colored Silk; the Red is given to
|
||
the next, and the Green to the third, which they all wear girt twice round
|
||
about the middle; and you see few great Persons about this Court who are
|
||
not adorned with one of these Girdles.
|
||
|
||
The Horses of the Army, and those of the royal Stables, having been daily
|
||
led before me, were no longer shy, but would come up to my very Feet
|
||
without starting. The Riders would leap them over my Hand as I held it on
|
||
the Ground, and one of the Emperor's Huntsmen, upon a large Courser,
|
||
took my Foot, Shoe and all; which was indeed a prodigious Leap. I had the
|
||
good fortune to divert the Emperor one Day after a very extraordinary
|
||
manner. I desired he would order several Sticks of two Foot high, and the
|
||
thickness of an ordinary cane, to be brought me; whereupon his Majesty
|
||
commanded the Master of his Woods to give Directions accordingly; and
|
||
the next Morning six Wood-men arrived with as many Carriages, drawn by
|
||
eight Horses to each. I took nine of these Sticks, and fixing them firmly in
|
||
the Ground in a Quadrangular Figure, two Foot and a half Square, I took
|
||
four other Sticks, and tied them parallel at each Corner, about two feet
|
||
from the Ground; then I fastened my Handkerchief to the nine Sticks that
|
||
stood erect, and extended it on all Sides till it was as tight as the top of a
|
||
Drum; and the four parallel Sticks rising about five Inches higher than the
|
||
Handkerchief served as Ledges on each side. When I had finished my
|
||
Work, I desired the Emperor to let a Troop of his best Horse, twenty four
|
||
in number, come and exercise upon this Plain. His Majesty approved of the
|
||
Proposal, and I took them up one by one in my Hands, ready mounted and
|
||
armed, with the proper Officers to exercise them. As soon as they got into
|
||
order, they divided into two Parties, performed mock Skirmishes,
|
||
discharged blunt Arrows, drew their Swords, fled and pursued, attacked
|
||
and retired, and in short discovered the best Military Discipline I ever
|
||
beheld. The parallel Sticks secured them and their Horses from falling over
|
||
the Stage; and the Emperor was so much delighted, that he ordered this
|
||
Entertainment to be repeated several days, and once was pleased to be lifted
|
||
up and give the Word of Command; and, with great difficulty, persuaded
|
||
even the Empress herself to let me hold her in her close Chair within two
|
||
Yards of the Stage, from whence she was able to take a full View of the
|
||
whole Performance. It was my good fortune that no ill Accident happened
|
||
in these Entertainments, only once a fiery Horse that belonged to one of the
|
||
Captains pawing with his Hoof struck a Hole in my Handkerchief, and his
|
||
Foot slipping, he overthrew his Rider and himself; but I immediately
|
||
relieved them both, and covering the Hole with one Hand, I set down the
|
||
Troop with the other, in the same manner as I took them up. The Horse
|
||
that fell was strained in the left Shoulder, but the Rider got no hurt, and I
|
||
repaired my Handkerchief as well as I could: however I would not trust to
|
||
the Strength of it any more in such dangerous Enterprizes.
|
||
|
||
About two or three days before I was set at liberty, as I was entertaining
|
||
the Court with these kind of Feats, there arrived an express to inform his
|
||
Majesty that some of his Subjects riding near the Place where I was first
|
||
taken up, had seen a great black Substance lying on the Ground, very oddly
|
||
shaped, extending its Edges round as wide as his Majesty's Bedchamber,
|
||
and rising up in the middle as high as a Man; that it was no living Creature,
|
||
as they at first apprehended, for it lay on the Grass without Motion, and
|
||
some of them had walked round it several tunes: That by mounting upon
|
||
each other's Shoulders, they had got to the top, which was flat and even,
|
||
and stamping upon it they found it was hollow within; that they humbly
|
||
conceived it might be something belonging to the Man-Mountain, and if his
|
||
Majesty pleased, they would undertake to bring it with only five Horses. I
|
||
presently knew what they meant, and was glad at heart to receive this
|
||
Intelligence. It seems upon my first reaching the Shore after our
|
||
Shipwreck, I was in such confusion, that before I came to the Place where I
|
||
went to sleep, my Hat, which I had fastned with a String to my Head while
|
||
I was rowing, and had stuck on all the time I was swimming, fell off after I
|
||
came to Land; the String, as I conjecture, breaking by some Accident
|
||
which I never observed, but thought my Hat had been lost at Sea. I
|
||
entreated his Imperial Majesty to give Orders it might be brought to me as
|
||
soon as possible, describing to him the Use and the Nature of it: And the
|
||
next Day the Waggoners arrived with it, but not in a very good condition;
|
||
they had bored two Holes in the Brim, within an Inch and a half of the
|
||
Edge, and fastened two Hooks in the Holes; these Hooks were tyed by a
|
||
long Cord to the Harness, and thus my Hat was dragged along for above
|
||
half an English Mile: but the Ground in that Country being extremely
|
||
smooth and level, it receiv'd less Damage than I expected.
|
||
|
||
Two Days after this Adventure, the Emperor having ordered that part of
|
||
his Army which quarters in and about his Metropolis to be in a readiness,
|
||
took a fancy of diverting himself in a very singular manner. He desired I
|
||
would stand like a Colossus, with my Legs as far asunder as I conveniently
|
||
could. He then commanded his General (who was an old experienced
|
||
Leader, and a great Patron of mine) to draw up the Troops in close Order,
|
||
and march them under me, the Foot by Twenty-four in a Breast, and the
|
||
Horse by Sixteen, with Drums beating, Colours flying, and Pikes advanced.
|
||
This Body consisted of three thousand Foot, and a thousand Horse. His
|
||
Majesty gave Orders, upon pain of Death, that every Soldier in his March
|
||
should observe the strictest Decency with regard to my Person; which,
|
||
however, could not prevent some of the younger Officers from turning up
|
||
their Eyes as they passed under me. And, to confess the Truth, my
|
||
Breeches were at that time in so ill a Condition, that they afforded some
|
||
Opportunities for Laughter and Admiration.
|
||
|
||
I had sent so many Memorials and Petitions for my Liberty, that his
|
||
Majesty at length mentioned the Matter, first in the Cabinet, and then in a
|
||
full Council ; where it was opposed by none, except Skyresh Bolgolam,
|
||
who was pleased, without any Provocation, to be my mortal Enemy. But it
|
||
was carried against him by the whole Board, and confirmed by the
|
||
Emperor. That Minister was Galbet, or Admiral of the Realm, very much
|
||
in his Master's confidence, and a Person well versed in Affairs, but of a
|
||
morose and sour Complection. However, he was at length persuaded to
|
||
comply; but prevailed that the Articles and Conditions upon which I should
|
||
be set free, and to which I must swear, should be drawn up by himself.
|
||
These Articles were brought to me by Skyresh Bolgolam in Person,
|
||
attended by two Under-Secretarys, and several Persons of Distinction.
|
||
After they were read, I was demanded to swear to the Performance of
|
||
them; first in the manner of my own Country, and afterwards in the
|
||
method prescribed by their Laws; which was to hold my right Foot in my
|
||
left Hand, to place the middle Finger of my right Hand on the Crown of
|
||
my Head, and my Thumb on the Tip of my right Ear. But because the
|
||
Reader may perhaps be curious to have some Idea of the Style and Manner
|
||
of Expression peculiar to that People, as well as to know the Articles upon
|
||
which I recovered my Liberty, I have made a Translation of the whole
|
||
Instrument word for word, as near as I was able, which I here offer to the
|
||
Publick.
|
||
|
||
GOLBASTO MOMAREN EVLAME GURDILO SHEFIN MULLY ULLY
|
||
GUE, most Mighty Emperor of Lilliput, Delight and Terror of the
|
||
Universe, whose Dominions extend five thousand Blustrugs (about twelve
|
||
miles in circumference) to the Extremitys of the Globe; Monarch of all
|
||
Monarchs, taller than the Sons of Men; whose Feet press down to the
|
||
Center, and whose Head strikes against the Sun: At whose Nod the Princes
|
||
of the Earth shake their Knees; pleasant as the Spring, comfortable as the
|
||
Summer, fruitful as Autumn, dreadful as Winter. His most sublime Majesty
|
||
proposeth to the Man-Mountain, lately arrived to our Celestial Dominions,
|
||
the following Articles, which by a solemn Oath he shall be obliged to
|
||
perform.
|
||
|
||
First, The Man-Mountain shall not depart from our Dominions, without
|
||
our License under our Great Seal.
|
||
|
||
2nd, He shall not presume to come into our Metropolis, without our
|
||
express Order; at which time the Inhabitants shall have two hours
|
||
warning to keep within their Doors.
|
||
|
||
3rd, The said Man-Mountain shall confine his Walks to our principal
|
||
High Roads, and not offer to walk or lie down in a Meadow or Field of
|
||
Corn.
|
||
|
||
4th, As he walks the said Roads, he shall take the utmost care not to
|
||
trample upon the Bodies of any of our loving Subjects, their Horses, or
|
||
Carriages, nor take any of our said Subjects into his Hands, without
|
||
their own Consent.
|
||
|
||
5th, If an Express requires extraordinary Dispatch, the Man-Mountain
|
||
shall be obliged to carry in his Pocket the Messenger and Horse a Six
|
||
Days Journey once in every Moon, and return the said Messenger back (if
|
||
so required) safe to our Imperial Presence.
|
||
|
||
6th, He shall be our Ally against our enemies in the Island of
|
||
Blefuscu, and do his utmost to destroy their Fleet, which is now
|
||
preparing to invade Us.
|
||
|
||
7th, That the said Man-Mountain shall, at his times of leisure, be
|
||
aiding and assisting to our Workmen, in helping to raise certain great
|
||
Stones, towards covering the Wall of the principal Park, and other of
|
||
our Royal Buildings.
|
||
|
||
8th, That the said Man-Mountain shall, in two Moons time, deliver in an
|
||
exact Survey of the Circumference of our Dominions by a Computation of
|
||
his own Paces round the Coast.
|
||
|
||
Lastly, That upon his solemn Oath to observe all the above Articles,
|
||
the said Man-Mountain shall have a daily Allowance of Meat and Drink
|
||
sufficient for the support of 1728 of our Subjects, with free Access to
|
||
our Royal Person, and other Marks of our Favour. Given at our Palace at
|
||
Belfaborac the twelfth Day of the Ninety-first Moon of our Reign.
|
||
|
||
I swore and subscribed to these Articles with great Chearfulness and
|
||
Content, although some of them were not so honorable as I could have
|
||
wished; which proceeded wholly from the Malice of Skyresh Bolgolam the
|
||
High Admiral: whereupon my Chains were immediately unlocked, and I
|
||
was at full liberty; the Emperor himself in Person did me the Honour to be
|
||
by at the whole Ceremony. I made my Acknowledgments by prostrating
|
||
myself at his Majesty's Feet: But he commanded me to rise; and after many
|
||
gracious Expressions, which, to avoid the Censure of Vanity, I shall not
|
||
repeat, he added, that he hoped I should prove a useful Servant, and well
|
||
deserve all the Favours he had already conferred upon me, or might do for
|
||
the future.
|
||
|
||
The Reader may please to observe, that in the last Article for the Recovery
|
||
of my Liberty the Emperor stipulates to allow me a Quantity of Meat and
|
||
Drink sufficient for the support of 1728 Lilliputians. Some time after,
|
||
asking a Friend at Court how they came to fix on that determinate Number;
|
||
he told me that his Majesty's Mathematicians, having taken the Height of
|
||
my body by the help of a Quadrant, and finding it to exceed theirs in the
|
||
Proportion of Twelve to One, they concluded from the Similarity of their
|
||
Bodies, that mine must contain at least 1728 of theirs, and consequently
|
||
would require as much Food as was necessary to support that number of
|
||
Lilliputians. By which the Reader may conceive an Idea of the Ingenuity of
|
||
that People, as well as the prudent and exact Oeconomy of so great a
|
||
Prince.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
Milendo, the Metropolis of Lilliput, described, together with the
|
||
Emperor's Palace. A Conversation between the Author and a Principal
|
||
Secretary, concerning the Affairs of that Empire: The Author Offers to
|
||
serve the Emperor in his Wars.
|
||
|
||
The first Request I made after I had obtained my Liberty, was, that I might
|
||
have license to see Mildendo, the Metropolis, which the Emperor easily
|
||
granted me, but with a special Charge to do no hurt either to the
|
||
Inhabitants or their Houses. The People had notice by Proclamation of my
|
||
design to visit the Town. The Wall which encompassed it is two foot and a
|
||
half high, and at least eleven Inches broad, so that a Coach and Horses may
|
||
be driven very safely round it; and it is flanked with strong Towers at ten
|
||
foot distance. I stept over the great Western Gate, and passed very gently,
|
||
and sideling through the two principal Streets, only in my short Waistcoat,
|
||
for fear of damaging the Roofs and Eaves of the Houses with the Skirts of
|
||
my Coat. I walked with the utmost Circumspection, to avoid treading on
|
||
any Stragglers, that might remain in the Streets, although the Orders were
|
||
very strict, that all People should keep in their Houses at their own peril.
|
||
The Garret-windows and Tops of Houses were so crowded with Spectators,
|
||
that I thought in all my Travels I had not seen a more populous Place. The
|
||
City is an exact Square, each Side of the Wall being five hundred foot long.
|
||
The two great Streets, which run cross and divide it into four Quarters, are
|
||
five foot wide. The Lanes and Alleys, which I could not enter, but only
|
||
viewed them as I passed, are from twelve to eighteen Inches. The Town is
|
||
capable of holding five hundred thousand Souls. The Houses are from three
|
||
to five Stories. The Shops and Markets well provided.
|
||
|
||
The Emperor's Palace is in the Center of the City, where the two great
|
||
Streets meet. It is enclosed by a Wall of two foot high, and twenty foot
|
||
distant from the buildings. I had his Majesty's Permission to step over this
|
||
Wall; and the Space being so wide between that and the Palace, I could
|
||
easily view it on every side. The outward Court is a Square of forty foot,
|
||
and includes two other Courts: in the inmost are the Royal Apartments,
|
||
which I was very desirous to see, but found it extremely difficult; for the
|
||
great Gates, from one Square into another, were but eighteen Inches high
|
||
and seven Inches wide. Now the Buildings of the outer Court were at least
|
||
five foot high, and it was impossible for me to stride over them without
|
||
infinite Damage to the Pile, though the Walls were strongly built of hewn
|
||
Stone, and four Inches thick. At the same time the Emperor had a great
|
||
desire that I should see the Magnificence of his Palace; but this I was not
|
||
able to do till three Days after, which I spent in cutting down with my
|
||
Knife some of the largest Trees in the Royal Park, about an hundred Yards
|
||
distant from the City. Of these Trees I made two Stools, each about three
|
||
foot high, and strong enough to bear my Weight. The People having
|
||
received notice a second time, I went again through the City to the Palace,
|
||
with my two Stools in my Hands. When I came to the side of the outer
|
||
Court, I stood upon one Stool, and took the other in my Hand: This I lifted
|
||
over the Roof, and gently set it down on the Space between the first and
|
||
second Court, which was eight foot wide. I then stept over the Buildings
|
||
very conveniently from one Stool to the other, and drew up the first after
|
||
me with a hooked Stick. By this Contrivance I got into the inmost Court;
|
||
and lying down upon my Side, I applied my Face to the Windows of the
|
||
middle Stories, which were left open on purpose, and discovered the most
|
||
splendid Apartments that can be imagined. There I saw the Empress and
|
||
the young Princes, in their several Lodgings, with their chief Attendants
|
||
about them. Her Imperial Majesty was pleased to smile very graciously
|
||
upon me, and gave me out of the Window her Hand to kiss.
|
||
|
||
But I shall not anticipate the Reader with farther Descriptions of this kind,
|
||
because I reserve them for a greater Work, which is now almost ready for
|
||
the Press, containing a general Description of this Empire, from its first
|
||
Erection, through a long Series of Princes, with a particular Account of
|
||
their Wars and Politicks, Laws, Learning, and Religion: their Plants and
|
||
Animals, their peculiar Manners and Customs, with other Matters very
|
||
curious and useful; my chief design at present being only to relate such
|
||
Events and Transactions as happened to the Publick, or to myself, during a
|
||
Residence of about nine Months in that Empire.
|
||
|
||
One Morning, about a Fortnight after I had obtained my Liberty,
|
||
Reldresal, Principal Secretary (as they style him) of private Affairs, came
|
||
to my House, attended only by one Servant. He ordered his Coach to wait at
|
||
a distance, and desired I would give him an Hour's Audience; which I
|
||
readily consented to, on account of his Quality, and Personal Merits, as
|
||
well as the many good Offices he had done me during my Sollicitations at
|
||
Court. I offered to lie down, that he might the more conveniently reach my
|
||
Ear; but he chose rather to let me hold him in my hand during our
|
||
Conversation. He began with Compliments on my Liberty; said he might
|
||
pretend to some Merit in it: but, however, added, that if it had not been for
|
||
the present Situation of things at Court, perhaps I might not have obtained
|
||
it so soon. For, said he, as flourishing a Condition as we may appear to be
|
||
in to Foreigners, we labor under two mighty Evils; a violent Faction at
|
||
home, and the Danger of an Invasion by a most potent Enemy from
|
||
abroad. As to the first, you are to understand, that for above seventy
|
||
Moons past there have been two struggling Parties in this Empire, under
|
||
the Names of Tramecksan and Slamecksan, from the high and low Heels on
|
||
their shoes, by which they distinguish themselves. It is alleged indeed, that
|
||
the high Heels are most agreeable to our ancient Constitution: But however
|
||
this be, his Majesty has determined to make use of only low Heels in the
|
||
Administration of the Government, and all Offices in the Gift of the
|
||
Crown, as you cannot but observe; and particularly, that his Majesty's
|
||
Imperial Heels are lower at least by a Drurr than any of his Court; (Drurr
|
||
is a Measure about the fourteenth Part of an Inch). The Animositys
|
||
between these two Partiy run so high, that they will neither eat nor drink,
|
||
nor talk with each other. We compute the Tramecksan, or High-Heels, to
|
||
exceed us in number; but the Power is wholly on our Side. We apprehend
|
||
his Imperial Highness, the Heir to the Crown, to have some Tendency
|
||
towards the High-Heels; at least we can plainly discover one of his Heels
|
||
higher than the other, which gives him a Hobble in his Gait. Now, in the
|
||
midst of these intestine Disquiets, we are threatened with an Invasion from
|
||
the Island of Blefuscu, which is the other great Empire of the Universe,
|
||
almost as large and powerful as this of his Majesty. For as to what we have
|
||
heard you affirm, that there are other Kingdoms and States in the World
|
||
inhabited by human Creatures as large as yourself, our Philosophers are in
|
||
much doubt, and would rather conjecture that you dropt from the Moon,
|
||
or one of the Stars; because it is certain, that a hundred Mortals of your
|
||
Bulk would, in a short time, destroy all the Fruits and Cattle of his
|
||
Majesty's Dominions. Besides, our Historys of six thousand Moons make no
|
||
mention of any other Regions, than the two great Empires of Lilliput and
|
||
Blefuscu. Which two mighty Powers have, as I was going to tell you, been
|
||
engaged in a most obstinate War for six and thirty Moons past. It began
|
||
upon the following Occasion. It is allowed on all Hands, that the primitive
|
||
way of breaking Eggs, before we eat them, was upon the larger End: But
|
||
his present Majesty's Grand-father, while he was a Boy, going to eat an
|
||
Egg, and breaking it according to the ancient Practice, happened to cut one
|
||
of his Fingers. Whereupon the Emperor his Father published an Edict,
|
||
commanding all his Subjects, upon great Penaltys, to break the smaller End
|
||
of their Eggs. The People so highly resented this Law, that our Historys
|
||
tell us there have been six Rebellions raised on that account; wherein one
|
||
Emperor lost his Life, and another his Crown. These civil Commotions
|
||
were constantly fomented by the Monarchs of Blefuscu; and when they
|
||
were quelled, the Exiles always fled for Refuge to that Empire. It is
|
||
computed, that eleven thousand Persons have, at several times, suffered
|
||
Death, rather than submit to break their Eggs at the smaller End. Many
|
||
hundred large Volumes have been published upon this Controversy: But the
|
||
books of the Big-Endians have been long forbidden, and the whole Party
|
||
rendered incapable by Law of holding Employments. During the Course of
|
||
these Troubles, the Emperors of Blefuscu did frequently expostulate by
|
||
their Ambassadors, accusing us of making a Schism in Religion, by
|
||
offending against a fundamental Doctrine of our great Prophet Lustrog, in
|
||
the fifty-fourth Chapter of the Blundecral (which is their Alcoran.) This,
|
||
however, is thought to be a meer Strain upon the Text: For the Words are
|
||
these: That all true Believers shall break their Eggs at the convenient End:
|
||
and which is the convenient End, seems, in my humble Opinion, to be left
|
||
to every Man's Conscience, or at least in the power of the Chief Magistrate
|
||
to determine. Now the Big-Endian Exiles have found so much Credit in the
|
||
Emperor of Blefuscu's Court, and so much private Assistance and
|
||
Encouragement from their Party here at home, that a bloody War has been
|
||
carried on between the two Empires for six and thirty Moons with various
|
||
Success; during which time we have lost forty Capital Ships, and a much
|
||
greater number of smaller Vessels, together with thirty thousand of our
|
||
best Seamen and Soldiers; and the Damage received by the Enemy is
|
||
reckon'd to be somewhat greater than Ours. However, they have now
|
||
equipped a numerous Fleet, and are just preparing to make a Descent upon
|
||
us; and his Imperial Majesty, placing great Confidence in your Valor and
|
||
Strength, has commanded me to lay this Account of his affairs before you.
|
||
|
||
I desired the Secretary to present my humble Duty to the Emperor, and to
|
||
let him know, that I thought it would not become Me, who was a
|
||
Foreigner, to interfere with Parties; but I was ready, with the hazard of my
|
||
Life, to defend his Person and State against all Invaders.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The Author by an extraordinary Stratagem prevents an Invasion. A high
|
||
Title of Honour is conferred upon him. Embassadors arrive from the
|
||
Emperor of Blefuscu, and sue for Peace. The Empress's Apartment on fire
|
||
by an Accident; he Author instrumental I saving the rest of the Palace.
|
||
|
||
THE EMPIRE of Blefuscu is an island situated to the North North-East
|
||
side of Lilliput, from whence it is parted only by a Channel of eight
|
||
hundred Yards wide. I had not yet seen it, and upon this Notice of an
|
||
intended Invasion, I avoided appearing on that side of the Coast, for fear of
|
||
being discovered by some of the Enemy's Ships, who had received no
|
||
Intelligence of me, all Intercourse between the two Empires having been
|
||
strictly forbidden during the War, upon pain of Death, and an Embargo
|
||
laid by our Emperor upon all Vessels whatsoever. I communicated to his
|
||
Majesty a Project I had formed of seizing the Enemy's whole Fleet: which,
|
||
as our Scouts assured us, lay at Anchor in the Harbour ready to sail with
|
||
the first fair Wind. I consulted the most experienced Seamen, upon the
|
||
Depth of the Channel, which they had often plummed, who told me, that in
|
||
the middle at High-water it was seventy Glumgluffs deep, which is about
|
||
six Foot of European Measure; and the rest of it fifty Glumgluffs at most.
|
||
I walked towards the North-East Coast over against Blefuscu; and lying
|
||
down behind a Hillock, took out my small Pocket Perspective-Glass, and
|
||
viewed the Enemy's Fleet at Anchor, consisting of about fifty Men of War,
|
||
and a great Number of Transports; I then came back to my House, and
|
||
gave Order (for which I had a Warrant) for a great Quantity of the
|
||
strongest Cable and Bars of Iron. The Cable was about as thick as
|
||
Packthread, and the Bars of the length and size of a Knitting-Needle. I
|
||
trebled the Cable to make it stronger, and for the same reason I twisted
|
||
three of the Iron Bars together, binding the Extremitys into a Hook.
|
||
Having thus fixed fifty Hooks to as many Cables, I went back to the North-
|
||
East Coast, and putting off my Coat, Shoes, and Stockings, walked into the
|
||
Sea in my Leathern Jerkin, about half an hour before high Water. I waded
|
||
with what haste I could, and swam in the middle about thirty Yards till I
|
||
felt ground; I arrived at the Fleet in less than half an hour. The Enemy
|
||
was so frighted when they saw me, that they leaped out of their Ships, and
|
||
swam to shore, where there could not be fewer than thirty thousand Souls.
|
||
I then took my Tackling, and fastning a Hook to a Hole at the Prow of
|
||
each, I tyed all the Cords together at the End. While I was thus employed,
|
||
the Enemy discharged several thousand Arrows, many of which stuck in
|
||
my Hands and Face; and besides the excessive smart, gave me much
|
||
disturbance in my Work. My greatest Apprehension was for mine Eyes,
|
||
which I should have infallibly lost, if I had not suddenly thought of an
|
||
Expedient. I kept among other little Necessarys a pair of Spectacles in a
|
||
private Pocket, which, as I observed before, had scaped the Emperor's
|
||
Searchers. These I took out and fastned as strongly as I could upon my
|
||
Nose, and thus armed went on boldly with my Work, in spight of the
|
||
Enemy's Arrows, many of which struck against the Glasses of my
|
||
Spectacles, but without any other Effect, further than a little to discompose
|
||
them. I now fastned all the Hooks, and taking the Knot in my Hand, began
|
||
to pull; but not a Ship would stir, for they were all too fast held by their
|
||
Anchors, so that the bold part of my Enterprise remained. I therefore let
|
||
go the Cord, and leaving the Hooks fixed to the Ships, I resolutely cut with
|
||
my Knife the Cables that fastned the Anchors, receiving above two hundred
|
||
Shots in my Face and Hands; then I took up the knotted End of the Cables
|
||
to which my Hooks were tyed, and with great ease drew fifty of the
|
||
Enemy's Men-of-War after me.
|
||
|
||
The Blefuscudians, who had not the least Imagination of what I intended,
|
||
were at first confounded with Astonishment. They had seen me cut the
|
||
Cables, and thought my Design was only to let the Ships run a-drift or fall
|
||
foul on each other: but when they perceived the whole Fleet moving in
|
||
Order, and saw me pulling at the End, they set up such a scream of Grief
|
||
and Despair, that it is almost impossible to describe or conceive. When I
|
||
had got out of danger, I stopt a while to pick out the Arrows that stuck in
|
||
my Hands and Face, and rubbed on some of the same Ointment that was
|
||
given me at my first arrival, as I have formerly mentioned. I then took off
|
||
my Spectacles, and waiting about an hour, till the Tide was a little fallen, I
|
||
waded through the middle with my Cargo, and arrived safe at the Royal
|
||
Port of Lilliput
|
||
|
||
The Emperor and his whole Court stood on the Shore expecting the Issue
|
||
of this great Adventure. They saw the Ships move forward in a large Half-
|
||
Moon, but could not discern me, who was up to my Breast in Water. When
|
||
I advanced to the middle of the Channel, they were yet in more pain,
|
||
because I was under Water to my Neck. The Emperor concluded me to be
|
||
drowned, and that the Enemy's Fleet was approaching in a hostile Manner:
|
||
But he was soon eased of his Fears, for the Channel growing shallower
|
||
every step I made, I came in a short time within hearing, and holding up
|
||
the end of the Cable by which the Fleet was fastned, I cryed in a loud
|
||
Voice, Long live the most puissant Emperor of Lilliput! This great Prince
|
||
received me at my Landing with all possible Encomiums, and created me a
|
||
Nardac upon the spot, which is the highest Title of Honour among them.
|
||
|
||
His Majesty desired I would take some other Opportunity of bringing all
|
||
the rest of his Enemy's Ships into his Ports. And so unmeasurable is the
|
||
Ambition of Princes, that he seemed to think of nothing less than reducing
|
||
the whole Empire of Blefuscu into a Province, and governing it by a Vice-
|
||
Roy; of destroying the Big-Endian Exiles, and compelling that People to
|
||
break the smaller end of their Eggs, by which he would remain the sole
|
||
Monarch of the whole World. But I endeavor'd to divert him from this
|
||
Design, by many arguments drawn from the Topicks of Policy as well as
|
||
Justice: And I plainly protested, that I would never be an Instrument of
|
||
bringing a Free and Brave People into Slavery. And when the Matter was
|
||
debated in Council , the wisest part of the Ministry were of my Opinion.
|
||
|
||
This open bold Declaration of mine was so opposite to the Schemes and
|
||
Politicks of his Imperial Majesty, that he could never forgive it; he
|
||
mentioned it in a very artful Manner at Council, where I was told that
|
||
some of the wisest appeared, at least by their Silence, to be of my Opinion;
|
||
but others, who were my secret Enemies, could not forbear some
|
||
Expressions, which by a side-wind reflected on me. And from this time
|
||
began an intrigue between his Majesty and a Junto of Ministers maliciously
|
||
bent against me, which broke out in less than two Months, and had like to
|
||
have ended in my utter Destruction. Of so little weight are the greatest
|
||
Services to Princes, when put into the Ballance with a refusal to gratify
|
||
their Passions.
|
||
|
||
About three Weeks after this Exploit, there arrived a solemn embassy from
|
||
Blefuscu, with humble Offers of a Peace; which was soon concluded upon
|
||
Conditions very advantageous to our Emperor, wherewith I shall not
|
||
trouble the Reader. There were six Ambassadors, with a Train of about
|
||
five hundred persons, and their Entry was very magnificent, suitable to the
|
||
Grandeur of their Master, and the Importance of their Business. When
|
||
their Treaty was finished, wherein I did them several good Offices by the
|
||
Credit I now had, or at least appeared to have at Court, their Excellencies,
|
||
who were privately told how much I had been their Friend, made me a
|
||
Visit in Form. They began with many Compliments upon my Valor and
|
||
Generosity, invited me to that Kingdom in the Emperor their Master's
|
||
Name, and desired me to show them some Proofs of my prodigious
|
||
Strength, of which they had heard so many Wonders; wherein I readily
|
||
obliged them, but shall not trouble the Reader with the Particulars.
|
||
|
||
When I had for some time entertained their Excellencies, to their infinite
|
||
Satisfaction and Surprize, I desired they would do me the Honour to
|
||
present my most humble Respects to the Emperor their Master, the
|
||
Renown of whose Virtues had so justly filled the whole World with
|
||
Admiration, and whose Royal Person I resolved to attend before I returned
|
||
to my own Country: accordingly, the next time I had the honour to see our
|
||
Emperor, I desired his general Licence to wait on the Blefuscudian
|
||
Monarch, which he was pleas'd to grant me, as I could plainly perceive, in
|
||
a very cold manner; but could not guess the Reason, till I had a Whisper
|
||
from a certain Person, that Flimnap and Bolgolam had represented my
|
||
Intercourse with those Ambassadors as a mark of Disaffection, from which
|
||
I am sure my Heart was wholly free. And this was the first time I began to
|
||
conceive some imperfect Idea of Courts and Ministers.
|
||
|
||
It is to be observed, that these Ambassadors spoke to me by an Interpreter,
|
||
the Languages of both Empires differing as much from each other as any
|
||
two in Europe, and each Nation priding itself upon the Antiquity, Beauty,
|
||
and Energy of their own Tongues, with an avowed Contempt for that of
|
||
their Neighbour; yet our Emperor, standing upon the advantage he had got
|
||
by the seizure of their Fleet, obliged them to deliver their Credentials, and
|
||
make their Speech in the Lilliputian Tongue. And it must be confessed, that
|
||
from the great Intercourse of Trade and Commerce between both Realms,
|
||
from the continual Reception of Exiles, which is mutual among them, and
|
||
from the Custom in each Empire to send their young Nobility and richer
|
||
Gentry to the other, in order to polish themselves by seeing the World and
|
||
understanding Men and Manners; there are few Persons of Distinction, or
|
||
Merchants, or Seamen, who dwell in the Maritime parts, but what can hold
|
||
Conversation both Tongues; as I found some Weeks after, when I went to
|
||
pay my respects to the Emperor of Blefuscu, which in the midst of great
|
||
Misfortunes, through the Malice of my Enemies, proved a very happy
|
||
Adventure to me, as I shall relate in its proper place.
|
||
|
||
The Reader may remember, that when I signed those Articles upon which I
|
||
recovered my Liberty, there were some which I disliked upon account of
|
||
their being too servile, neither could anything but an extreme Necessity
|
||
have forced me to submit. But being now a Nardac, of the highest Rank in
|
||
that Empire, such Offices were looked upon as below my Dignity, and the
|
||
Emperor (to do him Justice) never once mentioned them to me. However,
|
||
it was not long before I had an Opportunity of doing his Majesty, at least,
|
||
as I then thought, a most signal Service. I was alarmed at Midnight with the
|
||
Cries of many hundred People at my Door; by which being suddenly
|
||
awaked, I was in some kind of Terror. I heard the word Burglum repeated
|
||
incessantly: several of the Emperor's Court, making their way through the
|
||
Croud, intreated me to come immediately to the Palace, where her
|
||
Imperial Majesty's Apartment was on fire, by the carelessness of a Maid of
|
||
Honour, who fell asleep while she was reading a Romance. I got up in an
|
||
instant; and Orders being given to clear the way before me, and it being
|
||
likewise a Moon-shine Night, I made a shift to get to the Palace without
|
||
trampling on any of the People. I found they had already applied Ladders
|
||
to the Walls of the Apartment, and were well provided with Buckets, but
|
||
the Water was at some distance. These Buckets were about the size of a
|
||
large Thimble, and the poor People supplied me with them as fast as they
|
||
could; but the Flame was so violent that they did little good. I might easily
|
||
have stifled it with my Coat, which I unfortunately left behind me for
|
||
haste, and came away only in my Leathern Jerkin. The Case seemed wholly
|
||
desperate and deplorable; and this magnificent Palace would have
|
||
infallibly been burnt down to the ground, if, by a Presence of Mind,
|
||
unusual to me, I had not suddenly thought of an Expedient. I had the
|
||
Evening before drunk plentifully of a most delicious Wine, called
|
||
Glimigrim (the Blefuscudians call it Flunec, but ours is esteemed the better
|
||
sort), which is very diuretick. By the luckiest Chance in the World, I had
|
||
not discharged myself of any part of it. The Heat I had contracted by
|
||
coming very near the Flames, and by labouring to quench them, made the
|
||
Wine begin to operate my Urine; which I voided in such a Quantity, and
|
||
applied so well to the proper Places, that in three Minutes the Fire was
|
||
wholly extinguished, and the rest of that noble Pile, which had cost so
|
||
many Ages in erecting, preserved from Destruction.
|
||
|
||
It was now Day-light, and I returned to my House, without waiting to
|
||
congratulate with the Emperor: because, although I had done a very
|
||
eminent piece of Service, yet I could not tell how his Majesty might resent
|
||
the manner by which I had performed it: For, by the fundamental Laws of
|
||
the Realm, it is Capital in any Person, of what Quality soever, to make
|
||
water within the Precincts of the Palace. But I was a little comforted by a
|
||
Message from his Majesty, that he would give Orders to the Grand
|
||
Justiciary for passing my Pardon in form; which, however, I could not
|
||
obtain. And I was privately assured, that the Empress, conceiving the
|
||
greatest Abhorrence of what I had done, removed to the most distant side
|
||
of the Court, firmly resolved that those Buildings should never be repaired
|
||
for her Use: and, in the presence of her chief Confidents could not forbear
|
||
vowing Revenge.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
Of the Inhabitants of Lilliput; their Learning, Laws, and Customs, the
|
||
Manner of educating their Children. The Author's Way of living in that
|
||
Country. His Vindication of a great Lady
|
||
|
||
ALTHOUGH I intend to leave the Description of this Empire to a
|
||
particular Treatise, yet in the mean time I am content to gratify the curious
|
||
Reader with some general Ideas. As the common Size of the Natives is
|
||
somewhat under six Inches high, so there is an exact Proportion in all other
|
||
Animals, as well as Plants and Trees: For instance, the tallest Horses and
|
||
Oxen are between four and five Inches in height, the Sheep an Inch and a
|
||
half, more or less: their Geese about the bigness of a Sparrow, and so the
|
||
several Gradations downwards till you come to the smallest, which, to my
|
||
sight, were almost invisible; but Nature had adapted the Eyes of the
|
||
Lilliputians to all Objects proper for their view: They see with great
|
||
exactness, but at no great distance. And to show the sharpness of their Sight
|
||
towards Objects that are near, I have been much pleased with observing a
|
||
Cook pulling a Lark, which was not so large as a common Fly; and a young
|
||
Girl threading an invisible Needle with invisible Silk. Their tallest Trees
|
||
are about seven foot high; I mean some of those in the great Royal Park,
|
||
the Tops whereof I could but just reach with my Fist clenched. The other
|
||
Vegetables are in the same Proportion; but this I leave to the Reader's
|
||
Imagination.
|
||
|
||
I shall say but little at present of their Learning, which for many Ages had
|
||
flourished in all its Branches among them; But their manner of Writing is
|
||
very peculiar, being neither from the Left to the Right, like the Europeans;
|
||
nor from the Right to the Left, like the Arabians; nor from up to down,
|
||
like the Chinese; nor from down to up, like the Cascagians; but aslant from
|
||
one Corner of the Paper to the other, like Ladies in England.
|
||
|
||
They bury their Dead with their Heads directly downwards, because they
|
||
hold an Opinion, that in eleven thousand Moons they are all to rise again,
|
||
in which Period the Earth (which they conceive to be flat) will turn upside
|
||
down, and by this means they shall, at their Resurrection, be found ready
|
||
standing on their Feet. The Learned among them confess the Absurdity of
|
||
this Doctrine, but the Practice still continues, in compliance to the Vulgar.
|
||
|
||
There are some Laws and Customs in this Empire very peculiar; and if
|
||
they were not so directly contrary to those of my own dear Country, I
|
||
should be tempted to say a little in their justification. It is only to be wished
|
||
that they were as well executed. The first I shall mention relates to
|
||
Informers. All Crimes against the State are punished here with the utmost
|
||
severity; but if the Person accused makes his Innocence plainly to appear
|
||
upon his Tryal, the Accuser is immediately put to an ignominious Death;
|
||
and out of his Goods or Lands, the innocent Person is quadruply
|
||
recompensed for the Loss of his Time, for the Danger he underwent, for
|
||
the Hardship of his Imprisonment, and for all the Charges he had been at in
|
||
making his Defence. Or, if that Fund be deficient, it is largely supplied by
|
||
the Crown. The Emperor does also confer on him some publick Mark of
|
||
his Favour, and Proclamation is made of his Innocence through the whole
|
||
City.
|
||
|
||
They look upon Fraud as a greater Crime than Theft, and therefore seldom
|
||
fail to punish it with Death; for they alledge, that Care and Vigilance, with
|
||
a very common Understanding, may preserve a Man's Goods from
|
||
Thieves, but Honesty has no fence against superior Cunning; and since it is
|
||
necessary that there should be a perpetual Intercourse of Buying and
|
||
Selling, and dealing upon Credit, where Fraud is permitted and connived
|
||
at, or has no Law to punish it, the honest Dealer is always undone, and the
|
||
Knave gets the advantage. I remember when I was once interceding with
|
||
the King for a Criminal who had wronged his Master of a great Sum of
|
||
Money, which he had received by Order, and ran away with; and
|
||
happening to tell his Majesty, by way of Extenuation, that it was only a
|
||
Breach of Trust; the Emperor thought it monstrous in me to offer, as a
|
||
Defence, the greatest Aggravation of the Crime: and truly I had little to say
|
||
in return, farther than the common Answer, that different Nations had
|
||
different Customs; for, I confess, I was heartily ashamed.
|
||
|
||
Although we usually call Reward and Punishment the two Hinges upon
|
||
which all Government turns, yet I could never observe this Maxim to be
|
||
put in practice by any Nation except that of Lilliput. Whoever can there
|
||
bring sufficient Proof that he has strictly observed the Laws of his Country
|
||
for seventy-three Moons, has a claim to certain Privileges, according to his
|
||
Quality and Condition of Life, with a proportionable Sum of Money out of
|
||
a Fund appropriated for that Use: He likewise acquires the Title of Snilpall,
|
||
or Legal, which is added to his Name, but does not descend to his Posterity.
|
||
And these People thought it a prodigious Defect of Policy among us, when
|
||
I told them that our Laws were enforced only by Penalties without any
|
||
mention of Reward. It is upon this account that the Image of Justice, in
|
||
their courts of Judicature, is formed with six Eyes, two before, as many
|
||
behind, and on each side one, to signify Circumspection; with a Bag of
|
||
Gold open in her Right Hand, and a Sword sheathed in her Left, to shew
|
||
she is more disposed to Reward than to punish.
|
||
|
||
In chusing Persons for all Employments, they have more regard to good
|
||
Morals than to great Abilities; for, since Government is necessary to
|
||
Mankind, they believe-that the common Size of Human Understandings is
|
||
fitted to some Station or other, and that Providence never intended to make
|
||
the Management of publick Affairs a Mystery, to be comprehended only by
|
||
a few Persons of sublime Genius, of which there seldom are three born in
|
||
an Age: but they suppose Truth, Justice, Temperance, and the like, to be in
|
||
every Man's power; the Practice of which Virtues, assisted by Experience
|
||
and a good Intention, would qualify any Man for the service of his
|
||
Country, except where a Course of Study is required. But they thought the
|
||
want of Moral Virtues was so far from being supplied by superior
|
||
Endowments of the Mind, that Employments could never be put into such
|
||
dangerous Hands as those of Persons so qualifi'd; and at least, that the
|
||
Mistakes committed by Ignorance in a virtuous Disposition, would never be
|
||
of such fatal Consequence to the Publick Weal, as the Practices of a Man
|
||
whose Inclinations led him to be corrupt, and had great Abilities to
|
||
manage, and multiply, and defend his Corruptions.
|
||
|
||
In like manner, the Disbelief of a Divine Providence renders a Man
|
||
incapable of holding any Publick Station; for since Kings avow themselves
|
||
to be the Deputies of Providence, the Lilliputians think nothing can be
|
||
more absurd than for a Prince to employ such Men as disown the Authority
|
||
under which he acts.
|
||
|
||
In relating these and the following Laws, I would only be understood to
|
||
mean the original Institutions, and not the most scandalous Corruptions into
|
||
which these People are fallen by the degenerate Nature of Man. For as to
|
||
that infamous Practice of acquiring great Employments by dancing on the
|
||
Ropes, or Badges of Favour and Distinction by leaping over Sticks and
|
||
creeping under them, the Reader is to observe, that they were first
|
||
introduced by the Grand-father of the Emperor now reigning, and grew to
|
||
the present height by the gradual increase of Party and Faction.
|
||
|
||
Ingratitude is among them a Capital Crime, as we read it to have been in
|
||
some other Countries; for they reason thus, that whoever makes ill Returns
|
||
to his Benefactor, must needs be a common Enemy to the rest of Mankind,
|
||
from whom he has received no Obligation, and therefore such a Man is not
|
||
fit to live.
|
||
|
||
Their notions relating to the Duties of Parents and Children differ
|
||
extremely from ours. For since the Conjunction of Male and Female is
|
||
founded upon the great Law of Nature, in order to propagate and continue
|
||
the Species, the Lilliputians will needs have it, that Men and Women are
|
||
joined together like other Animals, by the Motives of Concupiscence; and
|
||
that their Tenderness towards their Young proceeds from the like natural
|
||
Principle: for which reason they will never allow, that a Child is under any
|
||
Obligation to his Father for begetting him, or his Mother for bringing him
|
||
into the World; which, considering the Miseries of human Life, was neither
|
||
a Benefit in it self, or intended so by his Parents, whose Thoughts in their
|
||
Love-Encounters were otherwise employ'd. Upon these, and the like
|
||
Reasonings, their Opinion is, that Parents are the last of all others to be
|
||
trusted with the Education of their own Children: and therefore they have
|
||
in every Town publick Nurseries, where all Parents, except Cottagers and
|
||
Labourers, are obliged to send their Infants of both Sexes to be reared and
|
||
educated when they come to the Age of twenty Moons, at which time they
|
||
are supposed to have some Rudiments of Docility. These Schools are of
|
||
several kinds, suited to different Qualities, and to both Sexes. They have
|
||
certain Professors well skilled in preparing Children for such a condition
|
||
of Life as befits the Rank of their Parents, and their own Capacities as well
|
||
as Inclinations. I shall say something of the Male Nurseries, and then of the
|
||
Female.
|
||
|
||
The Nurseries for Males of Noble or Eminent Birth are provided with
|
||
Grave and Learned Professors, and their several Deputies. The Clothes and
|
||
Food of the Children are plain and simple. They are bred up in the
|
||
Principles of Honour, Justice, Courage, Modesty, Clemency, Religion, and
|
||
Love of their Country; they are always employed in some Business, except
|
||
in the times of Eating and Sleeping, which are very short, and two Hours
|
||
for Diversions, consisting of bodily Exercises. They are dressed by Men
|
||
till four Years of Age, and then are obliged to dress themselves, although
|
||
their Quality be ever so great; and the Women Attendants, who are Aged
|
||
proportionably to ours at fifty, perform only the most menial Offices.
|
||
They are never suffered to converse with Servants, but go together in small
|
||
or greater Numbers to take their diversions, and always in the presence of
|
||
a Professor, or one of his Deputies; whereby they avoid those early bad
|
||
Impressions of Folly and Vice to which our Children are subject. Their
|
||
Parents are suffered to see them only twice a Year; the visit is to last but an
|
||
hour. They are allowed to kiss the Child at Meeting and Parting; but a
|
||
Professor, who always stands by on those occasions, will not suffer them to
|
||
whisper, or use any fondling Expressions, or bring any Presents of Toys,
|
||
Sweet-meats, and the like.
|
||
|
||
The Pension from each Family for the Education and Entertainment of a
|
||
Child, upon failure of due payment, is levyed by the Emperor's Officers.
|
||
|
||
The Nurseries for Children of ordinary Gentlemen, Merchants, Traders,
|
||
and Handicrafts, are managed proportionably after the same manner; only
|
||
those designed for Trades are put out Apprentices at Eleven years old,
|
||
whereas those of Persons of Quality continue in their exercises till Fifteen,
|
||
which answers to One and Twenty with us: but the Confinement is
|
||
gradually lessened for the last three Years.
|
||
|
||
In the Female Nurseries, the young Girls of Quality are educated much like
|
||
the Males, only they are dressed by orderly Servants of their own Sex; but
|
||
always in the presence of a Professor or Deputy, till they come to dress
|
||
themselves, which is at five Years old. And if it be found that these Nurses
|
||
ever presume to entertain the Girls with frightful or foolish Stories, or the
|
||
common Follies practiced by Chamber-Maids among us, they are publickly
|
||
whipped thrice about the City, imprisoned for a Year and banished for Life
|
||
to the most desolate part of the Country. Thus the young Ladies there are
|
||
as much ashamed of being Cowards and Fools as the Men, and despise all
|
||
personal Ornaments beyond Decency and Cleanliness: Neither did I
|
||
perceive any Difference in their Education, made by their Difference of
|
||
Sex, only that the Exercises of the Females were not altogether so robust;
|
||
and that some Rules were given them relating to domestic Life, and a
|
||
smaller Compass of Learning was enjoined them: for their maxim is, that
|
||
among People of Quality a Wife should be always a reasonable and
|
||
agreeable Companion, because she cannot always be young. When the Girls
|
||
are twelve Years old, which among them is the marriageable Age, their
|
||
Parents or Guardians take them home, with great Expressions of Gratitude
|
||
to the Professors, and seldom without Tears of the young Lady and her
|
||
Companions.
|
||
|
||
In the Nurseries of Females of the meaner sort, the Children are instructed
|
||
in all kinds of Works proper for their Sex, and their several degrees:
|
||
Those intended for Apprentices, are dismissed at nine Years old, the rest
|
||
are kept to thirteen.
|
||
|
||
The meaner Families who have Children at these Nurseries, are obliged,
|
||
besides their annual Pension, which is as low as possible, to return to the
|
||
Steward of the Nursery a small monthly Share of their Gettings, to be a
|
||
Portion for the Child; and therefore all Parents are limited in their
|
||
expenses by the Law. For the Lilliputians think nothing can be more unjust,
|
||
than for People, in subservience to their own Appetites, to bring Children
|
||
into the World and leave the Burthen of supporting them on the Publick.
|
||
As to Persons of Quality, they give Security to appropriate a certain Sum
|
||
for each Child, suitable to their Condition; and these Funds are always
|
||
managed with good Husbandry, and the most exact Justice.
|
||
|
||
The Cottagers and Labourers keep their Children at Home, their Business
|
||
being only to till and cultivate the Earth, and therefore their Education is
|
||
of little consequence to the Publick; but the Old and Diseased among them
|
||
are supported by Hospitals: for Begging is a Trade unknown in this
|
||
Kingdom.
|
||
|
||
And here it may perhaps divert the curious Reader to give some account of
|
||
my Domestick, and my manner of living in this Country, during a
|
||
Residence of nine Months and thirteen Days. Having a Head mechanically
|
||
turned, and being likewise forced by necessity, I had made for myself a
|
||
Table and Chair convenient enough, out of the largest Trees in the Royal
|
||
Park. Two hundred Sempstresses were employed to make me Shirts, and
|
||
Linnen for my Bed and Table, all of the strongest and coarsest kind they
|
||
could get; which, however, they were forced to quilt together in several
|
||
Folds, for the thickest was some degrees finer than Lawn. Their Linnen is
|
||
usually three Inches wide, and three Foot make a Piece. The Sempstresses
|
||
took my Measure as I lay on the ground, one standing at my Neck, and
|
||
another at my Mid-Leg, with a strong Cord extended, that each held by the
|
||
end, while the third measured the length of the Cord with a Rule an Inch
|
||
long. Then they measured my right Thumb, and desired no more; for by a
|
||
mathematical Computation, that twice round the Thumb is once round the
|
||
Wrist, and so on to the Neck and the Waist, and by the help of my old
|
||
Shirt, which I displayed on the Ground before them for a Pattern, they
|
||
fitted me exactly. Three hundred Taylors were employed in the same
|
||
manner to make me Clothes; but they had another Contrivance for taking
|
||
my Measure. I kneeled down, and they raised a Ladder from the Ground to
|
||
my Neck; upon this Ladder one of them mounted, and let fall a Plum-Line
|
||
from my Collar to the Floor, which just answered the length of my Coat;
|
||
but my Waist and Arms I measured myself. When my Clothes finished,
|
||
which was done in my House (for the largest of theirs would not have been
|
||
able to hold them) they looked like the Patch-Work made by the Ladies in
|
||
England, only that mine were all of a Colour.
|
||
|
||
I had three hundred Cooks to dress my Victuals, in little convenient Huts
|
||
built about my House, where they and their Families lived, and prepared
|
||
me two Dishes a-piece. I took up twenty Waiters in my Hand, and placed
|
||
them on the Table; an hundred more attended below on the Ground, some
|
||
with Dishes of Meat, and some with Barrels of Wine, and other Liquors,
|
||
slung on their Shoulders; all which the Waiters above drew up as I wanted,
|
||
in a very ingenious Manner, by certain Cords, as we draw the Bucket up a
|
||
Well in Europe. A Dish of their Meat was a good Mouthful, and a Barrel
|
||
of their Liquor a reasonable Draught. Their Mutton yields to ours, but
|
||
their Beef is excellent. I have had a Sirloin so large, that I have been forced
|
||
to make three Bits of it; but this is rare. My Servants were astonished to see
|
||
me eat it Bones and all, as in our Country we do the Leg of a Lark. Their
|
||
Geese and Turkeys I usually eat at a Mouthful, and I must confess they far
|
||
exceed ours. Of their smaller Fowl I could take up twenty or thirty at the
|
||
end of my Knife.
|
||
|
||
One day his Imperial Majesty, being informed of my way of living, desired
|
||
that himself and his Royal Consort, with the young Princes of the Blood of
|
||
both Sexes, might have the Happiness (as he was pleased to call it) of dining
|
||
with me. They came accordingly, and I placed 'em upon Chairs of State on
|
||
my Table, just over-against me, with their Guards about them. Flimnap the
|
||
Lord High Treasurer, attended there likewise with his white Staff; and I
|
||
observed he often looked on me with a sour Countenance, which I would
|
||
not seem to regard, but ate more than usual, in honour to my dear
|
||
Country, as well as to fill the Court with Admiration. I have some private
|
||
Reasons to believe, that this visit from his Majesty gave Flimnap an
|
||
Opportunity of doing me ill Offices to his Master. That Minister had
|
||
always been my secret Enemy, though he outwardly caressed me more than
|
||
was usual to the Moroseness of his Nature. He represented to the Emperor
|
||
the low Condition of his Treasury; that he was forced to take up Money at
|
||
great Discount; that Exchequer Bills would not circulate under nine per
|
||
Cent below Par; that in short I had cost his Majesty above a Million and a
|
||
half of Sprugs (their greatest Gold Coin, about the bigness of a Spangle)
|
||
and upon the whole, that it would be advisable in the Emperor to take the
|
||
first fair Occasion of dismissing me.
|
||
|
||
I am here obliged to vindicate the Reputation of an excellent lady, who was
|
||
an innocent Sufferer upon my Account. The Treasurer took a fancy to be
|
||
jealous of his Wife, from the Malice of some Evil Tongues, who informed
|
||
him that her Grace had taken a violent Affection for my Person; and the
|
||
Court-Scandal ran for some time, that she once came privately to my
|
||
lodging. This I solemnly declare to be a most infamous Falsehood, without
|
||
any Grounds, farther than that her Grace was pleased to treat me with all
|
||
innocent Marks of Freedom and Friendship. I own she came often to my
|
||
House, but always publickly, nor ever without three more in the Coach,
|
||
who were usually her Sister and young Daughter, and some particular
|
||
Acquaintance; but this was common to many other Ladies of the Court.
|
||
And I still appeal to my Servants round, whether they at any time saw a
|
||
Coach at my Door without knowing what Persons were in it. On those
|
||
Occasions, when a Servant had given me notice, my Custom was to go
|
||
immediately to the Door; and, after paying my Respects, to take up the
|
||
Coach and two Horses very carefully in my Hands (for if there were six
|
||
Horses, the Postillion always unharnessed four) and place them on a Table,
|
||
where I had fixed a moveable Rim quite round, of five Inches high, to
|
||
prevent Accidents. And I have often had four Coaches and Horses at once
|
||
on my Table full of Company, while I sate in my Chair, leaning my face
|
||
towards them; and when I was engaged with one Sett, the Coachman would
|
||
gently drive the others round my Table. I have passed many an Afternoon
|
||
very agreeably in these Conversations. But I defy the Treasurer, or his two
|
||
Informers, (I will name them, and let 'em make their best of it) Clustril
|
||
and Drunlo, to prove that any Person ever came to me incognito, except
|
||
the Secretary Reldresal, who was sent by express Command of his Imperial
|
||
Majesty, as I have before related. I should not have dwelt so long upon this
|
||
Particular, if it had not been a Point wherein the Reputation of a great
|
||
Lady is so nearly concerned, to say nothing of my own; though I then had
|
||
the Honour to be a Nardac, which the Treasurer himself is not; for all the
|
||
World knows he is only a Glumglum, a Title inferior by one Degree, as
|
||
that of a Marquiss is to a Duke in England, although I allow he preceded
|
||
me in right of his Post. These false Informations, which I afterwards came
|
||
to the knowledge of, by an Accident not proper to mention, made Flimnap
|
||
the Treasurer shew his Lady for some time an ill Countenance, and me a
|
||
worse; and although he were at last undeceived and reconciled to her, yet I
|
||
lost all Credit with him, and found my Interest decline very fast with the
|
||
Emperor himself, who was indeed too much governed by that Favourite.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The Author being informed of a Design to accuse him of High-Treason,
|
||
makes his Escape to Blefuscu. His Reception there.
|
||
|
||
Before I proceed to give an Account of my leaving this Kingdom, it may
|
||
be proper to inform the Reader of a private Intrigue which had been for
|
||
two Months forming against me.
|
||
|
||
I had been hitherto all my Life a Stranger to Courts, for which I was
|
||
unqualified by the meanness of my Condition. I had indeed heard and read
|
||
enough of the Dispositions of great Princes and Ministers; but never
|
||
expected to have found such terrible Effects of them in so remote a
|
||
Country, governed, as I thought, by very different Maxims from those in
|
||
Europe.
|
||
|
||
When I was just preparing to pay my Attendance on the Emperor of
|
||
Blefuscu, a considerable Person at Court (to whom I had been very
|
||
serviceable at a time when he lay under the highest Displeasure of his
|
||
Imperial Majesty) came to my House very privately at Night in a close
|
||
Chair, and without sending his Name, desired admittance. The Chair-Men
|
||
were dismissed; I put the Chair, with his Lordship in it, into my Coat-
|
||
Pocket: and giving Orders to a trusty Servant to say I was indisposed and
|
||
gone to sleep, I fastened the Door of my House, placed the Chair on the
|
||
Table, according to my usual Custom, and sate down by it. After the
|
||
common Salutations were over, observing his Lordship's Countenance full
|
||
of Concern, and enquiring into the reason, he desired I would hear him
|
||
with patience in a Matter that highly concerned my Honour and my Life.
|
||
His Speech was to the following Effect, for I took Notes of it as soon as he
|
||
left me.
|
||
|
||
You are to know, said he, that several Committees of Council have been
|
||
lately called in the most private manner on your account; and it is but two
|
||
Days since his Majesty came to a full Resolution.
|
||
|
||
You are very sensible that Skyresh Bolgolam (Galbet, or High Admiral)
|
||
has been your mortal Enemy almost ever since your Arrival: His original
|
||
Reasons I know not, but his Hatred is much increased since your great
|
||
Success against Blefuscu, by which his Glory as Admiral is obscur'd. This
|
||
Lord, in conjunction with Flimnap the High Treasurer, whose Enmity
|
||
against you is notorious on account of his Lady, Limtoc the General,
|
||
Lalcon the Chamberlain, and Balmuff the grand Justiciary, have prepared
|
||
Articles of Impeachment against you, for Treason, and other capital
|
||
Crimes.
|
||
|
||
This preface made me so impatient, being conscious of my own Merits and
|
||
Innocence, that I was going to interrupt; when he entreated me to be silent,
|
||
and thus proceeded.
|
||
|
||
Out of Gratitude for the Favours you have done me, I procured
|
||
Information of the whole Proceedings, and a Copy of the Articles, wherein
|
||
I venture my Head for your Service.
|
||
|
||
Articles of Impeachment against
|
||
Quinbus Flestrin (the Man-Mountain)
|
||
|
||
ARTICLE I
|
||
|
||
Whereas, by a Statute made in the Reign of his Imperial Majesty
|
||
Calin Deffar Plune, it is enacted, That whoever shall make water
|
||
within the Precincts of the Royal Palace, shall be liable to the
|
||
Pains and Penalties of High Treason; Notwithstanding, the said
|
||
Quinbus Flestrin, in open breach of the said Law, under colour of
|
||
extinguishing the Fire kindled in the Apartment of his Majesty's
|
||
most dear Imperial Consort, did maliciously, traitorously, and
|
||
devilishly, by discharge of his Urine, put out the said Fire
|
||
kindled in the said Apartment, lying and being within the
|
||
Precincts of the said Royal Palace, against the Statute in that
|
||
case provided, etc., against the Duty, etc.
|
||
|
||
ARTICLE II.
|
||
|
||
That the said Quinbus Flestrin having brought the Imperial Fleet
|
||
of Blefuscu into the Royal Port, and being afterwards commanded by
|
||
his Imperial Majesty to seize all the other Ships of the said
|
||
Empire of Blefuscu, and reduce that Empire to a Province, to be
|
||
governed by a Vice-Roy from hence, and to destroy and put to death
|
||
not only all the Big-Endian Exiles, but likewise all the People of
|
||
that Empire, who would not immediately forsake the Big-Endian
|
||
Heresy: He the said Flestrin, like a false Traitor against his
|
||
most Auspicious, Serene, Imperial Majesty, did petition to be
|
||
excused from the said Service upon pretence of unwillingness to
|
||
force the Consciences, or destroy the Liberties and Lives of an
|
||
innocent People.
|
||
|
||
ARTICLE III.
|
||
|
||
That, whereas certain Embassadors from the Court of Blefuscu, to
|
||
sue for Peace in his Majesty's Court: He, the said Flestrin, did,
|
||
like a false Traitor, aid, abet, comfort, and divert the said
|
||
Embassadors, although he knew them to be Servants to a Prince who
|
||
was lately an open Enemy to his Imperial Majesty, and in open War
|
||
against his said Majesty.
|
||
|
||
ARTICLE IV.
|
||
|
||
That the said Quinbus Flestrin, contrary to the Duty of a faithful
|
||
subject, is now preparing to make a Voyage to the Court and Empire
|
||
of Blefuscu, for which he had received only verbal Licence from
|
||
his Imperial Majesty; and under colour of the said Licence, doth
|
||
falsely and traitorously intend to take the said Voyage, and
|
||
hereby to aid, comfort, and abet the Emperor of Blefuscu, so late
|
||
an Enemy, and in open war with his Imperial Majesty aforesaid.
|
||
|
||
There are some other Articles, but these are the most important, of which I
|
||
have read you an Abstract.
|
||
|
||
In the several Debates upon this Impeachment, it must be confessed that his
|
||
Majesty gave many marks of his great Lenity, often urging the Services
|
||
you had done him, and endeavoring to extenuate your Crimes. The
|
||
Treasurer and Admiral insisted that you should be put to the most painful
|
||
and ignominious Death, by setting fire on your House at Night, and the
|
||
General was to attend with twenty Thousand Men armed with poisoned
|
||
Arrows to shoot you on the Face and Hands. Some of your Servants were
|
||
to have private Orders to strew a poisonous Juice on your Shirts, which
|
||
would soon make you tear your own Flesh, and die in the utmost Torture.
|
||
The General came into the same Opinion, so that for a long time there was
|
||
a Majority against you: but his Majesty resolving, if possible, to spare your
|
||
Life, at last brought off the Chamberlain.
|
||
|
||
Upon this Incident, Redresal, principal Secretary for private Affairs, who
|
||
always approved himself your true Friend, was commanded by the
|
||
Emperor to deliver his Opinion, which he accordingly did; and therein
|
||
justify'd the good Thoughts you have of him. He allowed your Crimes to
|
||
be great, but that still there was room for Mercy, the most commendable
|
||
Virtue in a Prince, and for which his Majesty was so justly celebrated. He
|
||
said, the Friendship between you and him was so well known to the World,
|
||
that perhaps the most honourable Board might think him partial: However,
|
||
in obedience to the Command he had received, he would freely offer his
|
||
Sentiments. That if his Majesty, in consideration of your Services, and
|
||
pursuant to his own merciful Disposition, would please to spare your Life,
|
||
and only give Order to put out both your Eyes, he humbly conceived that
|
||
by this Expedient, Justice might in some measure be satisfied, and all the
|
||
World would applaud the Lenity of the Emperor, as well as the fair and
|
||
generous Proceedings of those who have the Honour to be his Counsellors.
|
||
That the loss of your Eyes would be no impediment to your bodily
|
||
Strength, by which you might still be useful to his Majesty. That Blindness
|
||
is an addition to Courage, by concealing Dangers from us; that the Fear
|
||
you had for your Eyes was the greatest Difficulty in bringing over the
|
||
Enemy's Fleet, and it would be sufficient for you to see by the Eyes of the
|
||
Ministers, since the greatest Princes do no more.
|
||
|
||
This Proposal was received with the utmost Disapprobation by the whole
|
||
Board. Bolgolam, the Admiral, could not preserve his Temper, but rising
|
||
up in Fury said he wondered how the Secretary dared presume to give his
|
||
Opinion for preserving the Life of a Traytor: That the Services you had
|
||
performed, were, by all true Reasons of State, the great Aggravation of
|
||
your Crimes; that you, who were able to extinguish the Fire, by discharge
|
||
of Urine in her Majesty's Apartment (which he mentioned with horror),
|
||
might at another time, raise an Inundation by the same means, to drown the
|
||
whole Palace; and the same Strength which enabled you to bring over the
|
||
Enemy's Fleet, might serve, upon the first Discontent, to carry it back:
|
||
That he had good Reasons to think you were a Big-Endian in your heart;
|
||
and as Treason begins in the Heart, before it appears in Overt-Acts, so he
|
||
accused you as a Traytor on that Account, and therefore insisted you
|
||
should be put to death.
|
||
|
||
The Treasurer was of the same Opinion; he shewed to what streights his
|
||
Majesty's Revenue was reduced by the Charge of maintaining you, which
|
||
would soon grow insupportable: That the Secretary's Expedient of putting
|
||
out your Eyes was so far from being a Remedy against this Evil, it would
|
||
probably increase it, as it is manifest from the common Practice of
|
||
blinding some kind of Fowl, after which they fed the faster, and grew
|
||
sooner fat: That his sacred Majesty, and the Council, who are your Judges,
|
||
were in their own Consciences fully convinced of your Guilt, which was a
|
||
sufficient Argument to condemn you to Death, without the formal Proofs
|
||
required by the strict Letter of the Law.
|
||
|
||
But his Imperial Majesty, fully determined against Capital Punishment, was
|
||
graciously pleased to say, that since the Council thought the loss of your
|
||
Eyes too easy a Censure, some other may be inflicted hereafter. And your
|
||
Friend the Secretary humbly desiring to be heard again, in answer to what
|
||
the Treasurer had objected concerning the great Charge his Majesty was at
|
||
in maintaining you, said that his Excellency, who had the sole disposal of
|
||
the Emperor's Revenue, might easily provide against that Evil, by
|
||
gradually lessening your Establishment; by which, for want of sufficient
|
||
Food, you would grow weak and faint, and lose your Appetite, and
|
||
consequently decay and consume in a few Months; neither would the Stench
|
||
of your Carcass be then so dangerous, when it should become more than
|
||
half diminished; and immediately upon your Death, five or six Thousand of
|
||
his Majesty's Subjects might, in two or three days, cut your Flesh from
|
||
your Bones, take it away by Cart-loads, and bury it in distant parts to
|
||
prevent Infection, leaving the Skeleton as a Monument of Admiration to
|
||
Posterity.
|
||
|
||
Thus by the great Friendship of the Secretary, the whole Affair was
|
||
compromised. It was strictly enjoin'd, that the Project of starving you by
|
||
degrees should be kept a Secret, but the Sentence of putting out your Eyes
|
||
was entered on the Books; none dissenting except Bolgolam the Admiral,
|
||
who, being a Creature of the Empress, was perpetually instigated by her
|
||
Majesty to insist upon your Death, she having borne perpetual Malice
|
||
against you, on account of that infamous and illegal Method you took to
|
||
extinguish the Fire in her Apartment.
|
||
|
||
In three Days your Friend the Secretary will be directed to come to your
|
||
House, and read before you the Articles of Impeachment; and then to
|
||
signify the great Lenity and Favour of his Majesty and Council, whereby
|
||
you are only condemned to the loss of your Eyes, which his Majesty does
|
||
not question you will gratefully and humbly submit to; and twenty of his
|
||
Majesty's Surgeons will attend, in order to see the Operation well
|
||
performed, by discharging very sharp-pointed Arrows into the Balls of
|
||
your Eyes, as you lie on the Ground.
|
||
|
||
I leave to your Prudence what Measures you will take; and to avoid
|
||
Suspicion, I must immediately return in as private a manner as I came.
|
||
|
||
His Lordship did so, and I remained alone, under many Doubts and
|
||
Perplexities of Mind.
|
||
|
||
It was a Custom introduced by this Prince and his Ministry (very different,
|
||
as I have been assured, from the Practices of former Times) that after the
|
||
Court had decreed any cruel Execution, either to gratify the Monarch's
|
||
Resentment, or the Malice of a Favourite, the Emperor always made a
|
||
Speech to his whole Council, expressing his great Lenity and Tenderness,
|
||
as Qualities known and confessed by all the World. This Speech was
|
||
immediately published through the Kingdom; nor did anything terrify the
|
||
People so much as those Encomiums on his Majesty's Mercy; because it was
|
||
observed, that the more these Praises were enlarged and insisted on, the
|
||
more inhuman was the Punishment, and the Sufferer more innocent. And
|
||
as to myself, I must confess, having never been designed for a Courtier
|
||
either by my Birth or Education, I was so ill a Judge of Things, that I
|
||
could not discover the Lenity and Favour of this Sentence, but conceived it
|
||
(perhaps erroneously) rather to be rigorous than gentle. I sometimes
|
||
thought of standing my Tryal, for although I could not deny the facts
|
||
alledged in the several Articles, yet I hoped they would admit of some
|
||
Extenuations. But having in my Life perused many State-Tryals, which I
|
||
ever observed to terminate as the Judges thought fit to direct, I durst not
|
||
rely on so dangerous a Decision, in so critical a Juncture, and against such
|
||
powerful Enemies. Once I was strongly bent upon Resistance, for while I
|
||
had Liberty, the whole Strength of that Empire could hardly subdue me,
|
||
and I might easily with Stones pelt the Metropolis to pieces; but I soon
|
||
rejected that Project with Horror, by remembering the Oath I had made to
|
||
the Emperor, the Favours I received from him, and the High Title of
|
||
Nardac he conferred upon Me. Neither had I so soon learned the Gratitude
|
||
of Courtiers, to persuade myself that his Majesty's present Severities
|
||
quitted me of all past Obligations.
|
||
|
||
At last I fixed upon a Resolution, for which it is probable I may incur some
|
||
Censure, and not unjustly; for I confess I owe the preserving of my Eyes,
|
||
and consequently my Liberty, to my own great Rashness and want of
|
||
Experience: because if I had then known the Nature of Princes and
|
||
Ministers, which I have since observed in many other Courts, and their
|
||
Methods of treating Criminals less obnoxious than myself, I should with
|
||
great alacrity and readiness have submitted to so easy a Punishment. But
|
||
hurry'd on by the Precipitancy of Youth, and having his Imperial Majesty's
|
||
Licence to pay my Attendance upon the Emperor of Blefuscu, I took this
|
||
Opportunity, before the three Days were elapsed, to send a Letter to my
|
||
Friend the Secretary, signifying my Resolution of setting out that Morning
|
||
Blefuscu pursuant to the leave I had got; and without waiting for an
|
||
Answer, I went to that side of the Island where our Fleet lay. I seized a
|
||
large Man of War, tyed a Cable to the Prow, and, lifting up the Anchors, I
|
||
stript myself, put my Cloaths (together with my Coverlet, which I brought
|
||
under my Arm) into the Vessel, and drawing it after me between wading
|
||
and swimming, arrived at the Royal Port of Blefuscu, where the People
|
||
had long expected me; they lent me two Guides to direct me to the Capital
|
||
City, which is of the same Name. I held them in my Hands till I came
|
||
within two hundred Yards of the Gate, and desired them to signify my
|
||
Arrival to one of the Secretarys, and let him know, I there waited his
|
||
Majesty's Command. I had an answer in about an Hour, that his Majesty,
|
||
attended by the Royal Family, and great Officers of the Court, was coming
|
||
out to receive me. I advanced a Hundred Yards. The Emperor and his
|
||
Train alighted from their Horses, the Empress and Ladies from their
|
||
Coaches, and I did not perceive they were in any Fright or Concern. I lay
|
||
on the Ground to kiss his Majesty's and the Empress's Hand. I told his
|
||
Majesty that I had come according to my Promise, and with the Licence of
|
||
the Emperor my Master, to have the Honour of seeing so Mighty a
|
||
Monarch, and to offer him any Service in my power, consistent with my
|
||
Duty to my own Prince; not mentioning a word of my Disgrace, because I
|
||
had hitherto no regular Information of it, and might suppose myself wholly
|
||
ignorant of any such Design; neither could I reasonably conceive that the
|
||
Emperor would discover the Secret while I was out of his power: wherein,
|
||
however, it soon appeared I was deceived.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the Reader with the particular Account of my Reception
|
||
at this Court, which was suitable to the Generosity of so great a Prince; nor
|
||
of the Difficulties I was in for want of a House and Bed, being forced to lie
|
||
on the Ground, wrapt up in my Coverlet.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The Author, by a lucky Accident, finds means to leave Blefuscu; and, after
|
||
some Difficulties, returns safe to his Native Country.
|
||
|
||
THREE DAYS after my Arrival, walking out of Curiosity to the North-
|
||
East Coast of the Island, I observed, about half a League off, in the Sea,
|
||
something that looked like a Boat overturned. I pulled off my Shoes and
|
||
Stockings, and wading two or three Hundred Yards, I found the Object to
|
||
approach nearer by force of the Tide; and then plainly saw it to be a real
|
||
Boat, which I supposed might, by some Tempest, have been driven from a
|
||
Ship; whereupon I returned immediately towards the City, and desired his
|
||
Imperial Majesty to lend me twenty of the tallest Vessels he had left after
|
||
the Loss of his Fleet, and three thousand Seamen under the Command of
|
||
the Vice-Admiral. This Fleet sailed round, while I went back the shortest
|
||
way to the Coast where I first discovered the Boat; I found the Tide had
|
||
driven it still nearer. The Seamen were all provided with Cordage, which I
|
||
had beforehand twisted to a sufficient strength. When the Ships came up, I
|
||
stript my self, and waded till I came within an hundred Yards of the Boat,
|
||
after which I was forced to swim till I got up to it. The Seamen threw me
|
||
the end of the Cord, which I fastened to a Hole in the fore-part of the Boat,
|
||
and the other end to a Man of War: But I found all my Labour to little
|
||
purpose; for being out of my depth, I was not able to work. In this
|
||
Necessity, I was forced to swim behind, and push the Boat forwards as
|
||
often as I could, with one of my Hands; and the Tide favouring me, I
|
||
advanced so far, that I could just hold up my Chin and feel the Ground. I
|
||
rested two or three Minutes, and then gave the Boat another Shove, and so
|
||
on till the Sea was no higher than my Arm-pits; and now the most
|
||
laborious part being over, I took out my other Cables, which were stowed
|
||
in one of the Ships, and fastening them first to the Boat, and then to nine of
|
||
the Vessels which attended me; the Wind being favourable, the Sea-men
|
||
towed, and I shoved till we arrived within forty Yards of the Shore; and
|
||
waiting till the Tide was out, I got dry to the Boat, and by the assistance of
|
||
two thousand Men, with Ropes and Engines, I made a shift to turn it on its
|
||
Bottom, and found it was but little damaged.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the Reader with the Difficulties I was under by the help
|
||
of certain Paddles, which cost me ten Days making, to get my Boat to the
|
||
Royal Port of Blefuscu, where a mighty concourse of People appeared
|
||
upon my arrival, full of Wonder at the sight of so prodigious a Vessel. I
|
||
told the Emperor that my good Fortune had thrown this Boat in my way,
|
||
to carry me to some place from whence I might return into my Native
|
||
Country, and begged his Majesty's Orders for getting Materials to fit it up,
|
||
together with his Licence to depart; which, after some kind Expostulations,
|
||
he was pleased to grant.
|
||
|
||
I did very much wonder, in all this time, not to have heard of any Express
|
||
relating to me from our Emperor to the Court of Blefuscu. But I was
|
||
afterwards given privately to understand, that his Imperial Majesty, never
|
||
imagining I had the least notice of his Designs, believed I was only gone to
|
||
Blefuscu in performance of my promise, according to the Licence he had
|
||
given me, which was well known at our Court, and would return in a few
|
||
Days when that Ceremony was ended. But he was at last in pain at my long
|
||
absence; and after consulting with the Treasurer, and the rest of that Cabal,
|
||
a Person of Quality was dispatched with the Copy of the Articles against
|
||
me. This Envoy had Instructions to represent to the Monarch of Blefuscu
|
||
the great Lenity of his Master, who was content to punish me no farther
|
||
than with the loss of mine Eyes; that I had fled from Justice, and if I did
|
||
not return in two Hours, I should be deprived of my Title of Nardac, and
|
||
declared a Traitor. The Envoy further added, that in order to maintain the
|
||
Peace and Amity between both Empires, his Master expected, that his
|
||
Brother of Blefuscu would give Orders to have me sent back to Lilliput,
|
||
bound Hand and Foot, to be punished as a Traitor.
|
||
|
||
The Emperor of Blefuscu having taken three Days to consult, returned an
|
||
Answer consisting of many Civilities and Excuses. He said, that as for
|
||
sending me bound, his Brother knew it was impossible; that although I had
|
||
deprived him of his Fleet, yet he owed great Obligations to me for many
|
||
good Offices I had done him in making the Peace. That however both their
|
||
Majesties would soon be made easy; for I had found a prodigious Vessel on
|
||
the Shore, able to carry me on the Sea, which he had given order to fit up
|
||
with my own Assistance and Direction; and he hoped in a few Weeks both
|
||
Empires would be freed from so insupportable an Incumbrance.
|
||
|
||
With this Answer the Envoy returned to Lilliput, and the Monarch of
|
||
Blefuscu related to me all that had past, offering me at the same time (but
|
||
under the strictest Confidence) his gracious Protection, if I would continue
|
||
in his Service; wherein although I believed him sincere, yet I resolved
|
||
never more to put any Confidence in Princes or Ministers, where I could
|
||
possibly avoid it; and therefore, with all due Acknowledgments for his
|
||
favourable Intentions, I humbly begged to be excused. I told him, that since
|
||
Fortune, whether good or evil, had thrown a Vessel in my way, I was
|
||
resolved to venture myself in the Ocean, rather than be an occasion of
|
||
Difference between two such mighty Monarchs. Neither did I find the
|
||
Emperor at all displeased; and I discover'd by a certain Accident, that he
|
||
was very glad of my Resolution, and so were most of his Ministers.
|
||
|
||
These Considerations moved me to hasten my Departure somewhat sooner
|
||
than I intended; to which the Court, impatient to have me gone, very
|
||
readily contributed. Five Hundred Workmen were employed to make two
|
||
Sails to my Boat, according to my Directions, by quilting thirteen fold of
|
||
their strongest Linnen together. I was at the pains of making Ropes and
|
||
Cables, by twisting ten, twenty or thirty of the thickest and strongest of
|
||
theirs. A great Stone that I happen'd to find, after a long Search, by the
|
||
Sea-shore, served me for an Anchor. I had the Tallow of three hundred
|
||
Cows for greasing my Boat, and other Uses. I was at incredible pains in
|
||
cutting down some of the largest Timber-Trees for Oars and Masts,
|
||
wherein I was, however, much assisted by his Majesty's Ship-Carpenters,
|
||
who helped me in smoothing them, after I had done the rough Work.
|
||
|
||
In about a Month, when all was prepared, I sent to receive his Majesty's
|
||
Commands, and to take my leave. The Emperor and Royal Family came
|
||
out of the Palace: I lay down on my Face to kiss his Hand, which he very
|
||
graciously gave me; so did the Empress and young Princes of the Blood.
|
||
His Majesty presented me with fifty Purses of two hundred Sprugs a-piece,
|
||
together with his Picture at full length, which I put immediately into one of
|
||
my Gloves, to keep it from being hurt. The Ceremonies at my departure
|
||
were too many to trouble the Reader with at this time.
|
||
|
||
I stored the Boat with the Carcases of an hundred Oxen, and three hundred
|
||
Sheep, with Bread and Drink proportionable, and as much Meat ready
|
||
dressed as four Hundred cooks could provide. I took with me six cows and
|
||
two bulls alive, with as many ewes and rams, intending to carry them into
|
||
my own Country, and propagate the breed. And to feed them on board, I
|
||
had a good bundle of hay, and a bag of corn. I would gladly have taken a
|
||
dozen of the Natives, but this was a Thing the Emperor would by no means
|
||
permit; and besides a diligent search into my Pockets, his Majesty engaged
|
||
my Honour not to carry away any of his Subjects, although with their own
|
||
consent and desire.
|
||
|
||
Having thus prepared all Things as well as I was able, I set sail on the
|
||
twenty-fourth Day of September 1701, at six in the Morning; and when I
|
||
had gone about four Leagues to the Northward, the Wind being at South-
|
||
East, at six in the Evening, I descried a small Island about half a League to
|
||
the North-West. I advanced forward, and cast Anchor on the Lee-side of
|
||
the Island, which seemed to be uninhabited. I then took some Refreshment,
|
||
and went to my rest. I slept well, and I conjecture at least six Hours, for I
|
||
found the Day broke in two Hours after I awaked. It was a clear Night. I
|
||
eat my Breakfast before the Sun was up; and heaving Anchor, the Wind
|
||
being favourable, I steered the same Course that I had done the Day before,
|
||
wherein I was directed by my Pocket-Compass. My Intention was to reach,
|
||
if possible, one of those Islands, which I had reason to believe lay to the
|
||
North-East of Van Diemen's Land. I discovered nothing all that Day; but
|
||
upon the next, about three in the Afternoon, when I had by my
|
||
Computation made twenty-four Leagues from Blefuscu, I descryed a Sail
|
||
steering to the South-East; my Course was due East. I hailed her, but could
|
||
get no Answer; yet I found I gained upon her, for the Wind slackned. I
|
||
made all the sail I could, and in half an hour she spyed me, then hung out
|
||
her Antient, and discharged a Gun. It is not easy to express the Joy I was in
|
||
upon the unexpected hope of once more seeing my beloved Country, and
|
||
the dear Pledges I had left in it. The Ship slackned her Sails, and I came up
|
||
with her between five and six in the Evening, September 26; but my Heart
|
||
leapt within me to see her English Colours. I put my Cows and Sheep into
|
||
my Coat-Pockets, and got on board with all my little Cargo of Provisions.
|
||
The Vessel was an English Merchantman, returning from Japan by the
|
||
North and South-Seas; the Captain, Mr. John Biddle of Deptford, a very
|
||
civil Man, and an excellent Sailor. We were now in the Latitude of 30
|
||
Degrees south; there were about fifty Men in the Ship; and here I met an
|
||
old Comrade of mine, one Peter Williams, who gave me a good Character
|
||
to the Captain. This Gentleman treated me with Kindness, and desired I
|
||
would let know what place I came from last, and whither I was bound;
|
||
which I did in few Words, but he thought I was raving, and that the
|
||
Dangers I underwent had disturbed my Head; whereupon I took my black
|
||
Cattle and Sheep out of my Pocket, which, after great Astonishment,
|
||
clearly convinced him of my Veracity. I then shewed him the Gold given
|
||
me by the Emperor of Lilliput, together with his Majesty's Picture at full
|
||
length, and some other Rarities of that Country. I gave him two Purses of
|
||
two hundred Sprugs each, and promised, when we arrived in England, to
|
||
make him a Present of a Cow and a Sheep big with Young.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the Reader with a particular Account of this Voyage,
|
||
which was very prosperous for the most part. We arrived in the Downs on
|
||
the 13th of April 1702. I had only one Misfortune, that the Rats on board
|
||
carried away one of my Sheep; I found her Bones in a Hole, picked clean
|
||
from the Flesh. The rest of my Cattle I got safe on Shore, and set them
|
||
grazing in a Bowling-Green at Greenwich, where the Fineness of the Grass
|
||
made them feed very heartily, though I had always feared the contrary:
|
||
neither could I possibly have preserved them in so long a Voyage, if the
|
||
Captain had not allowed me some of his best Bisket, which, rubbed to
|
||
Powder, and mingled with Water, was their constant Food. The short time
|
||
I continued in England, I made considerable Profit by shewing my Cattle to
|
||
many Persons of Quality, and others: and before I began my second
|
||
Voyage, I sold them for six hundred Pounds. Since my last return, I find
|
||
the breed is considerably increased, especially the Sheep; which I hope will
|
||
prove much to the Advantage of the Woollen Manufacture, by the Fineness
|
||
of the Fleeces.
|
||
|
||
I stayed but two Months with my Wife and Family; for my insatiable
|
||
Desire of seeing foreign Countries would suffer me to continue no longer.
|
||
I left fifteen hundred Pounds with my Wife, and fixed her in a good House
|
||
at Redriff. My remaining Stock I carried with me, part in Money, and part
|
||
in Goods, in hopes to improve my Fortunes. My eldest Uncle John had left
|
||
me an Estate in Land, near Epping, of about Thirty Pounds a Year; and I
|
||
had a long Lease of the Black-Bull in Fetter-Lane, which yielded me as
|
||
much more; so that I was not in any Danger of leaving my Family upon the
|
||
Parish. My Son Johnny, named so after his Uncle, was at the Grammar
|
||
School, and a towardly Child. My Daughter Betty (who is now well
|
||
married, and has Children) was then at her Needle-work. I took leave of
|
||
my Wife, and Boy and Girl, with Tears on both sides, and went on board
|
||
the Adventure, a Merchant-Ship of three hundred tons, bound for Surat,
|
||
Captain John Nicholas of Liverpool Commander. But my Account of this
|
||
Voyage must be referred to the Second Part of my Travels.
|
||
|
||
THE END OF THE FIRST PART.
|
||
|
||
PART II: A VOYAGE TO BROBDINGNAG
|
||
|
||
[Plate 2: Brobdingnag]
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
A great Storm described, the Long-Boat sent to fetch Water, the Author
|
||
goes with it to discover the Country. He is left on Shore, is seized by one of
|
||
the Natives, and carried to a Farmer's House. His Reception there, with
|
||
several Accidents that happened there. A Description of the Inhabitants.
|
||
|
||
Having been condemned by Nature andFortune to an active and restless
|
||
Life, in two Months after my Return I again left my native Country, and
|
||
took Shipping in the Downs on the 20th Day of June 1702, in the
|
||
Adventure, Capt. John Nicholas, a Cornish Man, Commander, bound for
|
||
Surat. We had a very prosperous Gale till we arrived at the Cape of Good-
|
||
hope, where we landed for fresh Water, but discovering a Leak we
|
||
unshipped our Goods and winter'd there; for the Captain falling sick of an
|
||
Ague, we could not leave the Cape till the end of March. We then set sail,
|
||
and had a good Voyage till we passed the Streights of Madagascar; but
|
||
having got Northward of that Island, and to about five Degrees South
|
||
Latitude, the Winds, which in those Seas are observed to blow a constant
|
||
equal Gale between the North and West from the beginning of December to
|
||
the beginning of May, on the 19th of April began to blow with much
|
||
greater Violence, and more Westerly than usual, continuing so for twenty
|
||
Days together, during which time we were driven a little to the East of the
|
||
Molucca Islands, and about three Degrees Northward of the Line, as our
|
||
Captain found by an Observation he took the 2d of May, at which time the
|
||
Wind ceased, and it was a perfect Calm, whereat I was not a little rejoyced.
|
||
But he, being a Man well experienc'd in the Navigation of those Seas, bid
|
||
us all prepare against a Storm, which accordingly happened the Day
|
||
following: For a Southern Wind, called the Southern Monsoon, began to set
|
||
in.
|
||
|
||
Finding it was likely to overblow, we took in our Sprit-sail, and stood by
|
||
to hand the Fore-sail; but making foul Weather, we look'd the Guns were
|
||
all fast, and handed the Missen. The Ship lay very broad off, so we thought
|
||
it better spooning before the Sea, than trying or hulling. We reeft the Fore-
|
||
sail and set him, we hawl'd aft the Fore-sheet; the Helm was hard a
|
||
Weather. The Ship wore bravely. We belay'd the Fore-down-hall; but the
|
||
Sail was split, and we hawl'd down the Yard, and got the Sail into the Ship,
|
||
and unbound all the things clear of it. It was a very fierce Storm; the Sea
|
||
broke strange and dangerous. We hawl'd off upon the Lanniard of the
|
||
Whip-staff, and helped the man at Helm. We would not get down our Top-
|
||
mast, but let all stand, because she scudded before the Sea very well, and
|
||
we knew that the Top-mast being aloft, the Ship was the wholesomer, and
|
||
made better way thro' the Sea, seeing we had Sea-Room. When the Storm
|
||
was over, we set Fore-sail and Main-sail, and brought the Ship to. Then we
|
||
set the Missen, Maintop-sail, and the Foretop-sail. Our Course was East
|
||
North-east, the Wind was at South-west. We got the Star-board Tacks
|
||
aboard; we cast off our Weather-braces and Lifts; we set in the Lee-braces,
|
||
and hawl'd forward by the Weather-bowlings, and hawl'd them tight, and
|
||
belayed them, and hawl'd over the Missen Tack to Windward, and kept her
|
||
full and by as near as she could lye.
|
||
|
||
During this Storm, which was followed by a strong Wind West South-west,
|
||
we were carried by my Computation about five hundred Leagues to the
|
||
East, so that the oldest Sailor on Board could not tell in what part of the
|
||
World we were. Our Provisions held out well, our Ship was staunch, and
|
||
our Crew all in good Health; but we lay in the utmost Distress for Water.
|
||
We thought it best to hold on the same Course, rather than turn more
|
||
Northerly, which might have brought us to the North-west parts of Great
|
||
Tartary, and into the frozen Sea.
|
||
|
||
On the 16th Day of June 1703 a Boy on the Top-mast discovered Land. On
|
||
the 17th we came in full View of a great Island or Continent (for we knew
|
||
not whether) on the South-side whereof was a small Neck of Land jutting
|
||
out into the Sea, and a Creek too shallow to hold a Ship of above one
|
||
hundred Tuns. We cast Anchor within a League of this Creek, and our
|
||
Captain sent a dozen of his Men well armed in the Long Boat, with Vessels
|
||
for Water if any could be found. I desired his leave to go with them, that I
|
||
might see the Country, and make what Discoveries I could. When we came
|
||
to Land we saw no River or Spring, nor any sign of Inhabitants. Our Men
|
||
therefore wander'd on the Shore to find out some fresh Water near the Sea,
|
||
and I walked alone about a mile on the other Side, where I observed the
|
||
Country all barren and rocky. I now began to be weary, and seeing nothing
|
||
to entertain my Curiosity, I returned gently down towards the Creek; and
|
||
the Sea being full in my View, I saw our Men already got into the Boat,
|
||
and rowing for Life to the Ship. I was going to hollow after them, although
|
||
it had been to little purpose, when I observed a huge Creature walking
|
||
after them in the Sea, as fast as he could: He waded not much deeper than
|
||
his Knees, and took prodigious strides: But our Men had the start of him
|
||
half a League, and the Sea thereabouts being full of sharp-pointed rocks,
|
||
the Monster was not able to overtake the Boat. This I was afterwards told,
|
||
for I durst not stay to see the Issue of that Adventure; but ran as fast as I
|
||
could the way I first went; and then climbed up a steep Hill, which gave me
|
||
some Prospect of the Country. I found it fully cultivated; but that which
|
||
first surprized me was the Length of the Grass, which in those Grounds
|
||
that seemed to be kept for hay, was above twenty foot high.
|
||
|
||
I fell into a high Road, for so I took it to be, though it served to the
|
||
Inhabitants only as a foot Path through a Field of Barley. Here I walked on
|
||
for some time, but could see little on either Side, it being now near
|
||
Harvest, and the Corn rising at least forty foot. I was an hour walking to
|
||
the end of this Field, which was fenced in with a Hedge of at least one
|
||
hundred and twenty foot high, and the Trees so lofty that I could make no
|
||
Computation of their Altitude. There was a Stile to pass from this Field
|
||
into the next. It had four Steps, and a Stone to cross over when you came to
|
||
the uppermost. It was impossible for me to climb this Stile, because every
|
||
Step was six Foot high, and the upper Stone above twenty. I was
|
||
endeavouring to find some Gap in the Hedge, when I discovered one of the
|
||
Inhabitants in the next Field, advancing towards the Stile, of the same Size
|
||
with him whom I saw in the Sea, pursuing our Boat. He appeared as tall as
|
||
an ordinary Spire-steeple, and took about ten Yards at every Stride, as near
|
||
as I could guess. I was struck with the utmost Fear and Astonishment, and
|
||
ran to hide myself in the Corn, from whence I saw him at the top of the
|
||
Style, looking back into the next Field on the right hand, and heard him
|
||
call in a Voice many degrees louder than a speaking Trumpet; but the
|
||
Noise was so high in the Air, that at first I certainly thought it was thunder.
|
||
Whereupon, seven Monsters like himself came towards him with Reaping-
|
||
hooks in their Hands, each Hook about the size of six Scythes. These People
|
||
were not so well clad as the first, whose Servants or Labourers they
|
||
seemed to be: For upon some Words he spoke, they went to reap the Corn
|
||
in the Field where I lay. I kept from them at as great a distance as I could,
|
||
but was forced to move with extreme Difficulty, for the Stalks of the Corn
|
||
were sometimes not above a Foot distant, so that I could hardly squeeze my
|
||
Body betwix them. However, I made a shift to go forward till I came to a
|
||
part of the Field where the Corn had been laid by the Rain and Wind. Here
|
||
it was impossible for me to advance a step; for the Stalks were so
|
||
interwoven that I could not creep thorough, and the Beards of the fallen
|
||
Ears so strong and pointed that they pierced through my Cloaths into my
|
||
Flesh. At the same time I heard the Reapers not above an hundred Yards
|
||
behind me. Being quite dispirited with Toil, and wholly overcome by Grief
|
||
and Despair, I lay down between two Ridges, and heartily wished I might
|
||
there end my Days. I bemoaned my desolate Widow, and Fatherless
|
||
Children. I lamented my own Folly and Wilfulness in attempting a second
|
||
Voyage against the Advice of all my Friends and Relations. In this terrible
|
||
Agitation of Mind I could not forbear thinking of Lilliput, whose
|
||
Inhabitants looked upon me as the greatest Prodigy that ever appeared in
|
||
the World; Where I was able to draw an Imperial Fleet in my Hand, and
|
||
perform those other Actions which will be recorded forever in the
|
||
Chronicles of that Empire, while Posterity shall hardly believe them,
|
||
although attested by Millions. I reflected what a Mortification it must prove
|
||
to me to appear as inconsiderable in this Nation as one single Lilliputian
|
||
would be among us. But this I conceived was to be the least of my
|
||
Misfortunes: For as human Creatures are observed to be more savage and
|
||
cruel in Proportion to their Bulk, what could I expect but to be a Morsel in
|
||
the Mouth of the first among these enormous Barbarians that should
|
||
happen to seize me? Undoubtedly Philosophers are in the right when they
|
||
tell us, that nothing is great or little otherwise than by Comparison. It
|
||
might have pleased Fortune to let the Lilliputians find some Nation, where
|
||
the People were as diminutive with respect to them, as they were to me.
|
||
And who knows but that even this prodigious Race of Mortals might be
|
||
equally overmatched in some distant part of the World, whereof we have
|
||
yet no Discovery?
|
||
|
||
Scared and confounded as I was, I could not forbear going on with these
|
||
Reflections, when one of the Reapers approaching within ten Yards of the
|
||
Ridge where I lay, made me apprehend that with the next Step I should be
|
||
squashed to Death under his Foot, or cut in two with his Reaping-hook.
|
||
And therefore when he was again about to move, I screamed as loud as
|
||
Fear could make me. Whereupon the huge Creature trod short, and looking
|
||
round about under him for some time, at last espied me as I lay on the
|
||
Ground. He considered a while with the Caution of one who endeavors to
|
||
lay hold on a small dangerous Animal in such a Manner that it shall not be
|
||
able either to scratch or to bite him, as I myself have sometimes done with
|
||
a Weasel in England. At length he ventured to take me up behind by the
|
||
Middle between his fore Finger and Thumb, and brought me within three
|
||
Yards of his Eyes, that he might behold my Shape more perfectly. I
|
||
guessed his Meaning, and my good Fortune gave me so much Presence of
|
||
Mind, that I resolved not to struggle in the least as he held me in the Air,
|
||
about sixty Foot from the Ground, although he grievously pinched my
|
||
Sides, for fear I should slip through his Fingers. All I ventured was to raise
|
||
my Eyes towards the Sun, and place my Hands together in a supplicating
|
||
Posture, and to speak some Words in an humble melancholy Tone, suitable
|
||
to the Condition I then was in. For I apprehended every moment that he
|
||
would dash me against the Ground, as we usually do any little hateful
|
||
Animal which we have a mind to destroy. But my good Star would have it,
|
||
that he appeared pleased with my Voice and Gestures, and began to look
|
||
upon me as a Curiosity, much wondering to hear me pronounce articulate
|
||
Words, although he could not understand them. In the mean time I was not
|
||
able to forbear groaning and shedding Tears, and turning my Head towards
|
||
my Sides; letting him know, as well as I could, how cruelly I was hurt by
|
||
the Pressure of his Thumb and Finger. He seemed to apprehend my
|
||
Meaning; for, lifting up the Lappet of his Coat, he put me gently into it,
|
||
and immediately ran along with me to his Master, who was a substantial
|
||
Farmer, and the same Person I had first seen in the Field.
|
||
|
||
The Farmer having (as I supposed by their talk) received such an Account
|
||
of me as his Servant could give him, took a piece of a small Straw, about
|
||
the size of a walking Staff, and therewith lifted up the Lappets of my Coat;
|
||
which it seems he thought to be some kind of Covering that Nature had
|
||
given me. He blew my Hairs aside to take a better View of my Face. He
|
||
called his Hinds about him, and asked them (as I afterwards learned)
|
||
whether they had ever seen in the Fields any little Creature that resembled
|
||
me? He then placed me softly on the Ground upon all four, but I got
|
||
immediately up, and walked slowly backwards and forwards, to let those
|
||
People see I had no Intent to run away. They all sat down in a Circle about
|
||
me, the better to observe my motions. I pulled off my Hat, and made a low
|
||
Bow towards the Farmer. I fell on my Knees, and lifted up my Hands and
|
||
Eyes, and spoke several Words as loud as I could: I took a Purse of Gold
|
||
out of my Pocket, and humbly presented it to him. He received it on the
|
||
Palm of his Hand, then applied it close to his Eye, to see what it was, and
|
||
afterwards turned it several times with the Point of a Pin (which he took
|
||
out of his Sleeve), but could make nothing of it. Whereupon I made a Sign
|
||
that he should place his Hand on the Ground. I took the Purse, and opening
|
||
it, poured all the Gold into his Palm. There were six Spanish Pieces of four
|
||
Pistoles each, beside twenty or thirty smaller Coins. I saw him wet the Tip
|
||
of his little Finger upon his Tongue, and take up one of my largest Pieces,
|
||
and then another, but he seemed to be wholly ignorant what they were. He
|
||
made me a Sign to put them again into my Purse, and the Purse again into
|
||
my Pocket, which after offering to him several times, I thought it best to
|
||
do.
|
||
|
||
The Farmer by this time was convinced I must be a rational Creature. He
|
||
spoke often to me, but the Sound of his Voice pierced my Ears like that of
|
||
a Water-Mill, yet his Words were articulate enough. I answered as loud as
|
||
I could, in several Languages, and he often laid his Ear within two Yards
|
||
of me, but all in vain, for we were wholly unintelligible to each other. He
|
||
then sent his Servants to their Work, and taking his Handkerchief out of his
|
||
Pocket, he doubled and spread it on his left Hand, which he placed flat on
|
||
the Ground, with the Palm upwards, making me a Sign to step into it, as I
|
||
could easily do, for it was not above a Foot in thickness. I thought it my
|
||
part to obey, and for fear of falling, laid myself at Length upon the
|
||
Handkerchief, with the Remainder of which he lapped me up to the Head
|
||
for further Security, and in this manner carried me home to his House.
|
||
There he called his Wife, and shewed me to her; but she screamed and ran
|
||
back, as Women in England do at the Sight of a Toad or a Spider.
|
||
However, when she had a while seen my Behaviour, and how well I
|
||
observed the Signs her Husband made, she was soon reconciled, and by
|
||
degrees grew extremely tender of me.
|
||
|
||
It was about twelve at Noon, and a Servant brought in Dinner. It was only
|
||
one substantial Dish of Meat (fit for the plain condition of an Husbandman)
|
||
in a Dish of about twenty-four Foot Diameter. The Company were the
|
||
Farmer and his Wife, three Children, and an old Grandmother: When they
|
||
were sat down, the Farmer placed me at some Distance from him on the
|
||
Table, which was thirty Foot high from the Floor. I was in a terrible
|
||
Fright, and kept as far as I could from the Edge for Fear of falling. The
|
||
Wife minced a bit of Meat, then crumbled some Bread on a Trencher, and
|
||
placed it before me. I made her a low Bow, took out my Knife and Fork,
|
||
and fell to eating, which gave them exceeding Delight. The Mistress sent
|
||
her Maid for a small Dram-cup, which held about three Gallons, and filled
|
||
it with Drink; I took up the Vessel with much difficulty in both Hands, and
|
||
in a most respectful manner drank to her Ladyship's Health, expressing the
|
||
Words as loud as I could in English, which made the Company laugh so
|
||
heartily, that I was almost deafned with the Noise. This Liquor tasted like a
|
||
small Cyder, and was not unpleasant. Then the Master made me a Sign to
|
||
come to his Trencher-side; but as I walked on the Table, being in great
|
||
Surprize all the Time, as the indulgent Reader will easily conceive and
|
||
excuse, I happened to stumble against a crust, and fell flat on my Face, but
|
||
received no Hurt. I got up immediately, and observing the good People to
|
||
be in much Concern, I took my Hat (which I held under my Arm out of
|
||
good Manners) and waving it over my Head, made three Huzza's, to shew I
|
||
had got no Mischief by my Fall. But advancing forwards toward my
|
||
Master (as I shall henceforth call him), his youngest Son who sate next him,
|
||
an arch Boy of about ten Years old, took me up by the Legs, and held me
|
||
so high in the Air, that I trembled every Limb; but his Father snatched me
|
||
from him, and at the same Time gave him such a Box on the left Ear, as
|
||
would have felled an European Troop of Horse to the Earth, ordering him
|
||
to be taken from the Table. But being afraid the Boy might owe me a
|
||
spight, and well remembring how mischievous all Children among us
|
||
naturally are to Sparrows, Rabbits, young Kittens, and Puppy Dogs, I fell
|
||
on my Knees, and pointing to the Boy, made my Master to understand, as
|
||
well as I could, that I desired his Son might be pardoned. The Father
|
||
complied, and the Lad took his Seat again; whereupon I went to him and
|
||
kissed his Hand, which my Master took, and made him stroke me gently
|
||
with it.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of Dinner, my Mistress's favourite Cat leapt into her Lap. I
|
||
heard a Noise behind me like that of a dozen Stocking-Weavers at Work;
|
||
and turning my Head, I found it proceeded from the purring of this
|
||
Animal, who seemed to be three times larger than an Ox, as I computed by
|
||
the View of her Head, and one of her Paws, while her Mistress was feeding
|
||
and stroaking her. The Fierceness of this Creature's Countenance
|
||
altogether discomposed me; though I stood at the further End of the Table,
|
||
above fifty Foot off, and altho' my Mistress held her fast for fear she
|
||
might give a Spring, and seize me in her Talons. But it happened there was
|
||
no Danger; for the Cat took not the least Notice of me when my Master
|
||
placed me within three Yards of her. And as I have been always told, and
|
||
found true by Experience in my Travels, that flying, or discovering Fear
|
||
before a fierce Animal, is a certain Way to make it pursue or attack you, so
|
||
I resolved in this dangerous Juncture to shew no manner of Concern. I
|
||
walked with Intrepidity five or six times before the very Head of the Cat,
|
||
and came within half a Yard of her; whereupon she drew herself back, as if
|
||
she were more afraid of me: I had less Apprehension concerning the Dogs,
|
||
whereof three or four came into the Room, as it is usual in Farmers'
|
||
Houses; one of which was a Mastiff, equal in Bulk to four Elephants, and a
|
||
Greyhound, somewhat taller than the Mastiff, but not so large.
|
||
|
||
When Dinner was almost done, the Nurse came in with a Child of a Year
|
||
old in her Arms, who immediately spied me, and began a Squall that you
|
||
might have heard from London-Bridge to Chelsea, after the usual Oratory
|
||
of Infants, to get me for a Play-thing. The Mother out of pure Indulgence
|
||
took me up, and put me towards the Child, who presently seized me by the
|
||
Middle, and got my Head in his Mouth, where I roared so loud that the
|
||
Urchin was frightened, and let me drop, and I should infallibly have broke
|
||
my Neck if the Mother had not held her Apron under me. The Nurse to
|
||
quiet her Babe made use of a Rattle, which was a kind of hollow Vessel
|
||
filled with great Stones, and fastned by a Cable to the Child's Wast: But all
|
||
in vain, so that she was forced to apply the last Remedy, by giving it suck. I
|
||
must confess no Object ever disgusted me so much as the sight of her
|
||
monstrous Breast, which I cannot tell what to compare with, so as to give
|
||
the curious Reader an Idea of its Bulk, Shape and Colour. It stood
|
||
prominent six Foot, and could not be less than sixteen in Circumference.
|
||
The Nipple was about half the Bigness of my Head, and the Hew both of
|
||
that and the Dug so varified with Spots, Pimples and Freckles, that nothing
|
||
could appear more nauseous: For I had a near sight of her, she sitting down
|
||
the more conveniently to give Suck, and I standing on the Table. This made
|
||
me reflect upon the fair skins of our English Ladies, who appear so
|
||
beautiful to us, only because they are of our own Size, and their Defects
|
||
not to be seen but through a Magnifying-glass, where we find by
|
||
Experiment that the smoothest and whitest Skins look rough and coarse,
|
||
and ill coloured.
|
||
|
||
I Remember when I was at Lilliput, the Complexion of those diminutive
|
||
People appeared to me the fairest in the World; and talking upon this
|
||
Subject with a Person of Learning there, who was an intimate Friend of
|
||
mine, he said that my Face appeared much fairer and smoother when he
|
||
looked on me from the Ground, than it did upon a nearer View when I
|
||
took him up in my Hand, and brought him close, which he confessed was at
|
||
first a very shocking Sight. He said he could discover great Holes in my
|
||
Skin; that the Stumps of my Beard were ten times stronger than the Bristles
|
||
of a Boar, and my Complexion made up of several Colours altogether
|
||
disagreeable: Although I must beg leave to say for my self, that I am as fair
|
||
as most of my Sex and Country, and very little sun-burnt by all my
|
||
Travels. On the other Side, discoursing of the Ladies in that Emperor's
|
||
Court, he used to tell me, one had Freckles, another too wide a Mouth, a
|
||
third too large a Nose, nothing of which I was able to distinguish. I confess
|
||
this Reflection was obvious enough; which however I could not forbear,
|
||
lest the Reader might think those vast Creatures were actually deformed:
|
||
For I must do them Justice to say they are a comely Race of People; and
|
||
particularly the Features of my Master's Countenance, although he were
|
||
but a Farmer, when I beheld him from the Height of sixty Foot, appeared
|
||
very well proportioned.
|
||
|
||
When Dinner was done, my Master went out to his Labourers, and as I
|
||
could discover by his Voice and Gesture, gave his Wife a strict Charge to
|
||
take care of me. I was very much tired, and disposed to sleep, which my
|
||
Mistress perceiving, she put me on her own Bed, and covered me with a
|
||
clean white Handkerchief, larger and coarser than the Main-sail of a Man
|
||
of War.
|
||
|
||
I slept about two Hours, and dreamed I was at home with my Wife and
|
||
Children, which aggravated my Sorrows when I awakened and found
|
||
myself alone in a vast Room, between two and three hundred Foot wide,
|
||
and above two hundred high, lying in a Bed twenty Yards wide. My
|
||
Mistress was gone about her household Affairs, and had locked me in. The
|
||
Bed was eight Yards from the Floor. Some natural Necessities required me
|
||
to get down; I durst not presume to call, and if I had, it would have been in
|
||
vain, with such a Voice as mine, at so great a Distance from the Room
|
||
where I lay to the Kitchen where the Family kept. While I was under these
|
||
Circumstances, two Rats crept up the Curtains, and ran smelling backwards
|
||
and forwards on the Bed. One of them came up almost to my Face,
|
||
whereupon I rose in a Fright, and drew out my Hanger to defend my self.
|
||
These horrible Animals had the Boldness to attack me on both Sides, and
|
||
one of them held his Fore-feet at my Collar; but I had the good Fortune to
|
||
rip up his Belly before he could do me any Mischief. He fell down at my
|
||
Feet, and the other, seeing the Fate of his Comrade, made his Escape, but
|
||
not without one good Wound on the Back, which I gave him as he fled, and
|
||
made the Blood run trickling from him. After this Exploit, I walked gently
|
||
to and fro on the Bed, to recover my Breath and Loss of Spirits. These
|
||
Creatures were of the Size of a large Mastiff, but infinitely more nimble
|
||
and fierce; so that if I had taken off my Belt before I went to sleep, I must
|
||
have infallibly been torn to Pieces and devoured. I measured the Tail of the
|
||
dead Rat, and found it to be two Yards long, wanting an Inch; but it went
|
||
against my Stomach to drag the Carcass off the Bed, where it lay still
|
||
bleeding; I observed it had yet some Life, but with a strong Slash cross the
|
||
Neck, I thoroughly dispatched it.
|
||
|
||
Soon after my Mistress came into the Room, who seeing me all Bloody, ran
|
||
and took me up in her Hand. I pointed to the dead Rat, smiling and making
|
||
other Signs to shew I was not hurt, whereat she was extremely rejoyced,
|
||
calling the Maid to take up the dead Rat with a pair of tongs, and throw it
|
||
out of the Window. Then she set me on a Table, where I shewed her my
|
||
Hanger all bloody, and wiping it on the Lappet of my Coat, returned it to
|
||
the Scabbard. I was pressed to do more than one Thing, which another
|
||
could not do for me, and therefore endeavored to make my Mistress
|
||
understand that I desired to be set down on the Floor; which after she had
|
||
done, my Bashfulness would not suffer me to express myself farther than
|
||
by pointing to the Door, and bowing several Times. The good Woman with
|
||
much Difficulty at last perceived what I would be at, and taking me up
|
||
again in her Hand, walked into the Garden, where she set me down. I went
|
||
on one Side about two Hundred Yards, and beckoning to her not to look or
|
||
to follow me, I hid myself between two Leaves of sorrel and there
|
||
discharged the Necessities of Nature.
|
||
|
||
I hope the gentle Reader will excuse me for dwelling on these and the like
|
||
Particulars; which however insignificant they may appear to grovelling
|
||
vulgar Minds, yet will certainly help a Philosopher to enlarge his Thoughts
|
||
and Imagination, and apply them to the Benefit of publick as well as private
|
||
Life, which was my sole Design in presenting this and other Accounts of
|
||
my Travels to the World; wherein I have been chiefly studious of Truth,
|
||
without affecting any Ornaments of Learning or of Style. But the whole
|
||
Scene of this Voyage made so strong an Impression on my Mind, and is so
|
||
deeply fixed in my Memory, that in committing it to Paper, I did not omit
|
||
one material Circumstance: However, upon a strict Review, I blotted out
|
||
several Passages of less Moment which were in my first Copy, for fear of
|
||
being censured as tedious and trifling, whereof Travellers are often,
|
||
perhaps not without Justice, accused.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
A Description of the Farmer's Daughter. The Author carried to a Market-
|
||
Town, and then to the Metropolis. The Particulars of his Journey.
|
||
|
||
My Mistress had a Daughter of nine Years old, a Child of towardly Parts
|
||
for her Age, very dextrous at her Needle, and skilful in dressing her Baby.
|
||
Her Mother and she contrived to fit up the Baby's Cradle for me against
|
||
Night: The Cradle was put into a small Drawer of a Cabinet, and the
|
||
Drawer placed upon a hanging Shelf for fear of the Rats. This was my Bed
|
||
all the Time I stayed with those People, though made more convenient by
|
||
Degrees, as I began to learn their Language, and make my Wants known.
|
||
This young Girl was so handy, that after I had once or twice pulled off my
|
||
Cloaths before her, she was able to dress and undress me, though I never
|
||
gave her that Trouble when she would let me do either my self. She made
|
||
me seven Shirts, and some other Linnen, of as fine Cloth as could be got,
|
||
which indeed was coarser than Sackcloth; and these she constantly washed
|
||
for me with her own Hands. She was likewise my School-Mistress to teach
|
||
me the Language: When I pointed to any thing, she told me the Name of it
|
||
in her own Tongue, so that in a few Days I was able to call for whatever I
|
||
had a mind to. She was very good natured, and not above forty Foot high,
|
||
being little for her Age. She gave me the Name of Grildrig, which the
|
||
Family took up, and afterwards the whole Kingdom. The Word imports
|
||
what the Latins call Nanunculus, the Italians Homunceletino, and the
|
||
English Mannikin. To her I chiefly owe my Preservation in that Country:
|
||
We never parted while I was there; I called her my Glumdalclitch, or little
|
||
Nurse: And I should be guilty of great Ingratitute if I omitted this
|
||
honourable Mention of her Care and Affection towards me, which I
|
||
heartily wish it lay in my Power to requite as she deserves, instead of being
|
||
the innocent but unhappy Instrument of her Disgrace, as I have too much
|
||
Reason to fear.
|
||
|
||
It now began to be known and talked of in the Neighbourhood, that my
|
||
Master had found a strange Animal in the Fields, about the Bigness of a
|
||
Splacknuck, but exactly shaped in every Part like a human Creature; which
|
||
it likewise imitated in all its Actions; seemed to speak in a little Language
|
||
of its own, had already learned several Words of theirs, went erect upon
|
||
two Legs, was tame and gentle, would come when it was called, do
|
||
whatever it was bid, had the finest Limbs in the World, and a Complexion
|
||
fairer than a Nobleman's Daughter of three Years old. Another Farmer
|
||
who lived hard by, and was a particular Friend of my Master, came on a
|
||
Visit on Purpose to inquire into the Truth of this Story. I was immediately
|
||
produced, and placed upon a Table, where I walked as I was commanded,
|
||
drew my Hanger, put it up again, made my Reverence to my Master's
|
||
Guest, asked him in his own Language how he did, and told him he was
|
||
welcome, just as my little Nurse had instructed me. This Man, who was old
|
||
and dimsighted, put on his Spectacles to behold me better, at which I could
|
||
not forbear laughing very heartily, for his Eyes appeared like the Full-
|
||
Moon shining into a Chamber at two Windows. Our People, who
|
||
discovered the Cause of my Mirth, bore me Company in Laughing, at
|
||
which the old Fellow was Fool enough to be angry and out of Countenance.
|
||
He had the Character of a great Miser; and to my Misfortune he well
|
||
deserved it by the cursed Advice he gave my Master to shew me as a Sight
|
||
upon a Market-Day in the next Town, which was half an Hour's Riding,
|
||
about two and twenty miles from our House. I guessed there was some
|
||
Mischief contriving, when I observed my Master and his Friend whispering
|
||
long together, sometimes pointing at me; and my Fears made me fancy that
|
||
I overheard and understood some of their Words. But the next Morning
|
||
Glumdalclitch, my little Nurse, told me the whole Matter, which she had
|
||
cunningly picked out from her Mother. The poor Girl laid me on her
|
||
Bosom, and fell a weeping with Shame and Grief. She apprehended some
|
||
Mischief would happen to me from rude vulgar Folks, who might squeeze
|
||
me to Death, or break one of my Limbs by taking me in their Hands. She
|
||
had also observed how modest I was in my Nature, how nicely I regarded
|
||
my Honour, and what an Indignity I should conceive it to be exposed for
|
||
Money as a publick Spectacle to the meanest of the People. She said, her
|
||
Papa and Mamma had promised that Grildrig should be hers; but now she
|
||
found they meant to serve her as they did last Year, when they pretended to
|
||
give her a Lamb; and yet, as soon as it was fat, sold it to a Butcher. For my
|
||
own Part, I may truly affirm that I was less concerned than my Nurse. I
|
||
had a strong Hope, which never left me, that I should one Day recover my
|
||
Liberty; and as to the ignominy of being carried about for a Monster, I
|
||
considered my self to be a perfect Stranger in the Country; and that such a
|
||
Misfortune could never be charged upon me as a Reproach, if ever I should
|
||
return to England; since the King of Great Britain himself, in my
|
||
Condition, must have undergone the same Distress.
|
||
|
||
My Master, pursuant to the Advice of his Friend, carried me in a Box the
|
||
next Market-Day to the neighboring Town; and took along with him his
|
||
little Daughter, my Nurse, upon a Pillion behind him. The Box was close
|
||
on every Side, with a little Door for me to go in and out, and a few
|
||
Gimlet-holes to let in Air. The Girl had been so careful to put the Quilt of
|
||
her Baby's Bed into it, for me to lye down on. However, I was terribly
|
||
shaken and discomposed in this Journey, though it were but of half an
|
||
Hour. For the Horse went about forty Foot at every Step, and trotted so
|
||
high, that the Agitation was equal to the rising and falling of a Ship in a
|
||
great Storm, but much more frequent: Our Journey was somewhat further
|
||
than from London to St. Albans. My Master alighted at an Inn which he
|
||
used to frequent; and after consulting a while with the Inn-keeper, and
|
||
making some necessary Preparations, he hired the Grultrud, or Cryer, to
|
||
give Notice through the Town of a strange Creature to be seen at the Sign
|
||
of the Green Eagle, not so big as a Splacknuck (an Animal in that Country
|
||
very finely shaped, about six Foot long) and in every Part of the Body
|
||
resembling an human Creature, could speak several Words, and perform
|
||
an Hundred diverting Tricks.
|
||
|
||
I was placed upon a Table in the largest Room of the Inn, which might be
|
||
near three Hundred Foot square. My little Nurse stood on a low Stool close
|
||
to the Table, to take care of me, and direct what I should do. My Master, to
|
||
avoid a Croud, would suffer only Thirty People at a Time to see me. I
|
||
walked about on the Table as the Girl commanded; she asked me Questions
|
||
as far as she knew my Understanding of the Language reached, and I
|
||
answered them as loud as I could. I turned about several Times to the
|
||
Company, paid my humble Respects, said they were welcome, and used
|
||
some other Speeches I had been taught. I took up a Thimble filled with
|
||
Liquor, which Glumdalclitch had given me for a Cup, and drank their
|
||
Health. I drew out my Hanger, and flourished it after the Manner of
|
||
Fencers in England. My Nurse gave me part of a Straw, which I exercised
|
||
as a Pike, having learned the Art in my Youth. I was that Day shewn to
|
||
twelve Sets of Company; and as often forced to go over again with the
|
||
same Fopperies, till I was half dead with Weariness and Vexation. For
|
||
those who had seen me made such wonderful Reports, that the People were
|
||
ready to break down the Doors to come in. My Master for his own Interest
|
||
would not suffer any one to touch me except my Nurse; and, to prevent
|
||
Danger, Benches were set around the Table at such a Distance, as put me
|
||
out of every Body's Reach. However, an unlucky School-Boy aimed a
|
||
Hazel-Nut directly at my Head, which very narrowly missed me; otherwise,
|
||
it came with so much Violence, that it would have infallibly knocked out
|
||
my Brains, for it was almost as large as a small Pumpion: But I had the
|
||
Satisfaction to see the young Rogue well beaten, and turned out of the
|
||
Room.
|
||
|
||
My Master gave publick Notice that he would shew me again the next
|
||
Market- Day: And in the mean time he prepared a more convenient Vehicle
|
||
for me, which he had Reason enough to do; for I was so tired with my first
|
||
Journey, and with entertaining Company for eight Hours together, that I
|
||
could hardly stand upon my Legs, or speak a Word. It was at least three
|
||
Days before I recovered my Strength; and that I might have no rest at
|
||
Home, all the neighbouring Gentlemen from an Hundred Miles round,
|
||
hearing of my Fame, came to see me at my Master's own House. There
|
||
could not be fewer than thirty Persons with their Wives and Children; (for
|
||
the Country is very populous); and my Master demanded the Rate of a full
|
||
Room whenever he shewed me at Home, although it were only to a single
|
||
Family. So that for some Time I had but little Ease every Day of the Week
|
||
(except Wednesday, which is their Sabbath) although I were not carried to
|
||
the Town.
|
||
|
||
My Master, finding how profitable I was likely to be, resolved to carry me
|
||
to the most considerable Cities of the Kingdom. Having therefore provided
|
||
himself with all Things necessary for a long Journey, and settled his
|
||
Affairs at Home; he took Leave of his Wife, and upon the 17th of August
|
||
1703, about two Months after my Arrival, we set out for the Metropolis,
|
||
situated near the Middle of that Empire, and about three Thousand Miles
|
||
distance from our House: My Master made his Daughter Glumdalclitch ride
|
||
behind him. She carried me on her lap in a Box tied about her Waist. The
|
||
Girl had lined it on all Sides with the softest Cloth she could get, well
|
||
quilted underneath; furnished it with her Baby's Bed, provided me with
|
||
Linnen and other Necessaries, and made everything as convenient as she
|
||
could. We had no other Company but a Boy of the House, who rode after
|
||
us with the Luggage.
|
||
|
||
My Master's Design was to shew me in all the Towns by the Way, and to
|
||
step out of the Road for Fifty or an Hundred Miles, to any Village or
|
||
Person of Quality's House where he might expect Custom. We made easy
|
||
Journies of not above seven or eight Score Miles a Day: For Glumdalclitch,
|
||
on Purpose to spare me, complained she was tired with the trotting of the
|
||
Horse. She often took me out of my Box at my own Desire, to give me Air,
|
||
and shew me the Country; but always held me fast by Leading-strings. We
|
||
passed over five or six Rivers many Degrees broader and deeper than the
|
||
Nile or the Ganges; and there was hardly a Rivulet so small as the Thames
|
||
at London-Bridge. We were ten Weeks in our Journey, and I was shewn in
|
||
Eighteen large Towns besides many Villages and private Families.
|
||
|
||
On the 26th day of October, we arrived at the Metropolis, called in their
|
||
Language Lorbrulgrud, or Pride of the Universe. My Master took a
|
||
Lodging in the principal Street of the City, not far from the Royal Palace,
|
||
and put out Bills in the usual Form, containing an exact Description of my
|
||
Person and Parts. He hired a large Room between three and four Hundred
|
||
Foot wide. He provided a Table sixty Foot in Diameter, upon which I was
|
||
to act my Part; and palisadoed it round three Foot from the Edge, and as
|
||
many high, to prevent my falling over. I was shewn ten Times a Day to the
|
||
Wonder and Satisfaction of all People. I could now speak the Language
|
||
tolerably well; and perfectly understood every Word that was spoken to
|
||
me. Besides, I had learned their Alphabet, and could make a shift to explain
|
||
a Sentence here and there; for Glumdalclitch had been my Instructer while
|
||
we were at home, and at leisure Hours during our Journey. She carried a
|
||
little Book in her Pocket, not much larger than a Sanson's Atlas; it was a
|
||
common Treatise for the use of young Girls, giving a short Account of
|
||
their Religion; out of this she taught me my Letters, and interpreted the
|
||
Words.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The Author sent for to Court. The Queen buys him of his Master the
|
||
Farmer, and presents him to the King. He disputes with his Majesty's great
|
||
Scholars. An Apartment at Court provided for the Author. He is in high
|
||
Favour with the Queen. He stands up for the Honour of his own Country.
|
||
His Quarrels with the Queen's Dwarf.
|
||
|
||
The frequent Labours I underwent every Day made in a few Weeks a very
|
||
considerable change in my Health: The more my Master got by me, the
|
||
more unsatiable he grew. I had quite lost my Stomach, and was almost
|
||
reduced to a Skeleton. The Farmer observed it, and concluding I soon must
|
||
dye, resolved to make as good a Hand of me as he could. While he was thus
|
||
reasoning and resolving with himself, a Slardral, or Gentleman Usher came
|
||
from Court, commanding my Master to carry me immediately thither for
|
||
the Diversion of the Queen and her Ladies. Some of the latter had already
|
||
been to see me, and reported strange Things of my Beauty, Behaviour, and
|
||
good Sense. Her Majesty and those who attended her were beyond Measure
|
||
delighted with my Demeanor. I fell on my Knees, and begged the Honour
|
||
of kissing her Imperial foot; but this gracious Princess held out her little
|
||
Finger towards me (after I was set on a Table) which I embraced in both
|
||
my Arms, and put the tip of it, with the utmost respect, to my Lip. She
|
||
made me some general Questions about my Country and my Travels, which
|
||
I answer'd as distinctly and in as few Words as I could. She asked whether
|
||
I would be content to live at Court. I bowed down to the board of the
|
||
Table, and humbly answered, that I was my Master's Slave, but if I were at
|
||
my own Disposal, I should be proud to devote my Life to her Majesty's
|
||
Service. She then asked my Master whether he were willing to sell me at a
|
||
good Price. He who apprehended I could not live a Month, was ready
|
||
enough to part with me, and demanded a thousand pieces of Gold, which
|
||
were ordered him on the spot, each piece being about the bigness of eight
|
||
hundred Moydores; but, allowing for the proportion of all Things between
|
||
that Country and Europe, and the high Price of Gold among them, was
|
||
hardly so great a sum as a thousand Guineas would be in England. I then
|
||
said to the Queen, since I was now her Majesty's most humble Creature and
|
||
Vassal, I must beg the favour, that Glumdalclitch, who had always tended
|
||
me with so much care and kindness, and understood to do it so well, might
|
||
be admitted into her Service, and continue to be my Nurse and Instructor.
|
||
Her Majesty agreed to my Petition, and easily got the Farmer's consent,
|
||
who was glad enough to have his Daughter preferred at Court: and the
|
||
poor Girl herself was not able to hide her Joy: My late Master withdrew,
|
||
bidding me farewell, and saying he had left me in a good Service; to which
|
||
I replied not a Word, only making him a slight bow.
|
||
|
||
The Queen observed my coldness, and when the Farmer was gone out of
|
||
the Apartment, asked me the reason. I made bold to tell her Majesty that I
|
||
owed no other Obligation to my late Master, than his not dashing out the
|
||
Brains of a poor harmless Creature found by chance in his Field; which
|
||
Obligation was amply recompensed by the gain he had made in shewing me
|
||
through half the Kingdom, and the price he had now sold me for. That the
|
||
Life I had since led, was laborious enough to kill an Animal of ten times
|
||
my Strength. That my Health was much impaired by the continual
|
||
drudgery of entertaining the Rabble every hour of the Day, and that if my
|
||
Master had not thought my Life in Danger, her Majesty perhaps would not
|
||
have got so cheap a Bargain. But as I was out of all Fear of being ill treated
|
||
under the Protection of so great and good an Empress, the Ornament of
|
||
Nature, the Darling of the World, the Delight of her Subjects, the Phoenix
|
||
of the Creation; so, I hoped my late Master's apprehensions would appear
|
||
to be groundless, for I already found my Spirits to revive by the Influence
|
||
of her most August Presence.
|
||
|
||
This was the sum of my Speech, delivered with great Improprieties and
|
||
Hesitation; the latter part was altogether framed in the Style peculiar to that
|
||
People, whereof I learned some Phrases from Glumdalclitch, while she was
|
||
carrying me to Court.
|
||
|
||
The Queen giving great Allowance for my Defectiveness in speaking, was
|
||
however surprised at so much Wit and good Sense in so diminutive an
|
||
Animal. She took me in her own Hands, and carried me to the King, who
|
||
was then retired to his Cabinet. His Majesty, a Prince of much Gravity, and
|
||
austere Countenance, not well observing my Shape at first View, asked the
|
||
Queen after a cold manner, how long it was since she grew fond of a
|
||
Splacknuck; for such it seems he took me to be, as I lay upon my Breast in
|
||
her Majesty's right Hand. But this Princess, who has an infinite deal of Wit
|
||
and Humour, set me gently on my Feet upon the Scrutore, and commanded
|
||
me to give his Majesty an Account of my self, which I did in a very few
|
||
Words; and Glumdalclitch, who attended at the Cabinet door, and could not
|
||
endure I should be out of her sight, being admitted, confirmed all that had
|
||
passed from my Arrival at her Father's House.
|
||
|
||
The King, although he be as learned a Person as any in his Dominions, and
|
||
had been educated in the Study of Philosophy, and particularly
|
||
Mathematicks; yet when he observed my Shape exactly, and saw me walk
|
||
erect, before I began to speak, conceived I might be a Piece of Clock-work,
|
||
(which is in that Country arrived to a very great Perfection), contrived by
|
||
some ingenious Artist. But when he heard my Voice, and found what I
|
||
delivered to be regular and rational, he could not conceal his Astonishment.
|
||
He was by no means satisfied with the Relation I gave him of the Manner I
|
||
came into his Kingdom, but thought it a Story concerted between
|
||
Glumdalclitch and her Father, who had taught me a Set of Words to make
|
||
me sell at a higher Price. Upon this Imagination he put several other
|
||
Questions to me, and still received rational Answers, no otherwise
|
||
defective than by a foreign Accent, and an imperfect Knowledge in the
|
||
Language, with some rustick Phrases which I had learned at the Farmer's
|
||
House, and did not suit the polite Stile of a Court.
|
||
|
||
His Majesty sent for three great Scholars who were then in their Weekly
|
||
waiting (according to the Custom in that Country). These Gentlemen, after
|
||
they had a while examined my Shape with much Nicety, were of different
|
||
Opinions concerning me. They all agreed that I could not be produced
|
||
according to the regular Laws of Nature, because I was not framed with a
|
||
Capacity of preserving my Life, either by Swiftness, or climbing of Trees,
|
||
or digging Holes in the Earth. They observed by my Teeth, which they
|
||
viewed with great Exactness, that I was a carnivorous Animal; yet most
|
||
Quadrupeds being an Overmatch for me, and Field-Mice, with some
|
||
others, too nimble, they could not imagine how I should be able to support
|
||
my self, unless I fed upon Snails and other Insects, which they offered, by
|
||
many learned Arguments, to evince that I could not possibly do. One of
|
||
these Virtuosi seemed to think that I might be an Embrio, or abortive
|
||
Birth. But this Opinion was rejected by the other two, who observed my
|
||
Limbs to be perfect and finished, and that I had lived several Years, as it
|
||
was manifested from my Beard, the Stumps whereof they plainly
|
||
discovered through a Magnifying-Glass. They would not allow me to be a
|
||
Dwarf, because my littleness was beyond all Degrees of Comparison; for
|
||
the Queen's favourite Dwarf, the smallest ever known in that Kingdom,
|
||
was near thirty Foot high. After much Debate, they concluded unanimously
|
||
that I was only Relplum Scalcath, which is interpreted literally, Lusus
|
||
Natur<EFBFBD>; a determination exactly agreeable to the modern Philosophy of
|
||
Europe, whose Professors, disdaining the old Evasion of occult Causes,
|
||
whereby the followers of Artistotle endeavor in vain to disguise their
|
||
Ignorance, have invented this wonderful Solution of all Difficulties, to the
|
||
unspeakable Advancement of human Knowledge.
|
||
|
||
After this decisive Conclusion, I entreated to be heard a Word or two. I
|
||
applied my self to the King, and assured his Majesty that I came from a
|
||
Country which abounded with several Millions of both Sexes, and of my
|
||
own Stature; where the Animals, Trees, and Houses were all in Proportion,
|
||
and where by consequence I might be as able to defend my self, and to find
|
||
Sustenance, as any of his Majesty's Subjects could do here; which I took for
|
||
a full Answer to those Gentlemens Arguments. To this they only replied
|
||
with a Smile of Contempt, saying that the Farmer had instructed me very
|
||
well in my Lesson. The King, who had a much better Understanding,
|
||
dismissing his learned Men, sent for the Farmer, who by good Fortune was
|
||
not yet gone out of Town. Having therefore first examined him privately,
|
||
and then confronted him with me and the young Girl, his Majesty began to
|
||
think that what we told him might possibly be true. He desired the Queen to
|
||
order that a particular Care should be taken of me, and was of Opinion that
|
||
Glumdalclitch should still continue in her Office of tending me, because he
|
||
observed we had a great Affection for each other. A convenient Apartment
|
||
was provided for her at Court; she had a sort of Governess appointed to
|
||
take care of her Education, a Maid to dress her, and two other Servants for
|
||
menial Offices; but the Care of me was wholly appropriated to her self.
|
||
The Queen commanded her own Cabinet-maker to contrive a Box that
|
||
might serve me for a Bed-chamber, after the Model that Glumdalclitch and
|
||
I should agree upon. This Man was a most ingenious Artist, and according
|
||
to my Directions, in three Weeks finished for me a wooden Chamber of
|
||
sixteen Foot square, and twelve high, with Sash-windows, a Door, and two
|
||
Closets, like a London Bed-chamber. The Board that made the Cieling was
|
||
to be lifted up and down by two Hinges, to put in a Bed ready furnished by
|
||
her Majesty's Upholsterer, which Glumdalclitch took out every Day to air,
|
||
made it with her own Hands, and letting it down at Night, locked up the
|
||
Roof over me. A nice Workman, who was famous for little Curiosities,
|
||
undertook to make me two Chairs, with Backs and Frames, of a Substance
|
||
not unlike Ivory, and two Tables, with a Cabinet to put my Things in. The
|
||
Room was quilted on all Sides, as well as the Floor and the Cieling, to
|
||
prevent any Accident from the Carelessness of those who carried me, and
|
||
to break the Force of a Jolt when I went in a Coach. I desired a Lock for
|
||
my Door, to prevent Rats and Mice from coming in: The Smith, after
|
||
several Attempts, made the smallest that ever was seen among them, for I
|
||
have known a larger at the Gate of a Gentleman's House in England. I
|
||
made a shift to keep the Key in a Pocket of my own, fearing Glumdalclitch
|
||
might lose it. The Queen likewise ordered the thinnest Silks that could be
|
||
gotten, to make me Cloaths, not much thicker than an English Blanket,
|
||
very cumbersome till I was accustomed to them. They were after the
|
||
Fashion of the Kingdom, partly resembling the Persian, and partly the
|
||
Chinese, and are a very grave and decent Habit.
|
||
|
||
The Queen became so fond of my Company, that she could not dine
|
||
without me. I had a Table placed upon the same at which her Majesty eat,
|
||
just at her left Elbow, and a Chair to sit on. Glumdalclitch stood upon a
|
||
Stool on the Floor, near my Table, to assist and take care of me. I had an
|
||
entire Set of silver Dishes and Plates, and other Necessaries, which in
|
||
Proportion to those of the Queen, were not much bigger than what I have
|
||
seen of the same kind in a London Toys-shop, for the Furniture of a Baby-
|
||
house: These my little Nurse kept in her Pocket in a silver Box, and gave
|
||
me at Meals as I wanted them, always cleaning them her self. No Person
|
||
dined with the Queen but the two Princesses Royal, the elder sixteen Years
|
||
old, and the younger at that time thirteen and a Month. Her Majesty used to
|
||
put a Bit of Meat upon one of my Dishes, out of which I carved for my
|
||
self; and her Diversion was to see me eat in Miniature. For the Queen (who
|
||
had indeed but a weak Stomach) took up at one Mouthful as much as a
|
||
dozen English Farmers could eat at a Meal, which to me was for some time
|
||
a very nauseous sight. She would craunch the Wing of a Lark, Bones and
|
||
all, between her Teeth, although it were nine times as large as that of a full
|
||
grown Turkey; and put a Bit of Bread into her mouth, as big as two
|
||
twelve-penny Loaves. She drank, out of a golden Cup, above a Hogshead at
|
||
a Draught. Her Knives were twice as long as a Scythe, set strait upon the
|
||
Handle. The Spoons, Forks, and other Instruments were all in the same
|
||
Proportion. I remember when Glumdalclitch carried me out of curiosity to
|
||
see some of the Tables at Court, where ten or a dozen of these enormous
|
||
Knives and Forks were lifted up together, I thought I had never till then,
|
||
beheld so terrible a Sight.
|
||
|
||
It is the Custom that every Wednesday (which, as I have before observed,
|
||
was their Sabbath) the King and Queen, with the Royal Issue of both Sexes,
|
||
dine together in the Apartment of his Majesty, to whom I was now become
|
||
a great Favourite; and at these times my little Chair and Table were placed
|
||
at his left Hand, before one of the Saltsellers. This Prince took a Pleasure
|
||
in conversing with me, enquiring into the Manners, Religion, Laws,
|
||
Government, and Learning of Europe; wherein I gave him the best
|
||
Account I was able. His Apprehension was so clear, and his Judgment so
|
||
exact, that he made very wise Reflexions and Observations upon all I said.
|
||
But, I confess, that after I had been a little too copious in talking of my
|
||
own beloved Country, of our Trade, and Wars by Sea and Land, of our
|
||
Schisms in Religion, and Parties in the State; the Prejudices of his
|
||
Education prevailed so far, that he could not forbear taking me up in his
|
||
Right Hand, and stroaking me gently with the other, after an hearty Fit of
|
||
laughing, asked me whether I were a Whig or a Tory. Then turning to his
|
||
first Minister, who waited behind him with a white Staff, near as tall as the
|
||
main-mast of the Royal Sovereign, he observed how contemptible a thing
|
||
was human Grandeur, which could be mimicked by such diminutive Insects
|
||
as I: And yet, said he, I dare engage, these Creatures have their Titles and
|
||
Distinctions of Honour, they contrive little Nests and Burrows, that they
|
||
call Houses and Cities; they make a Figure in Dress and Equipage; they
|
||
love, they fight, they dispute, they cheat, they betray. And thus he
|
||
continued on, while my Colour came and went several times with
|
||
Indignation to hear our noble Country, the Mistress of Arts and Arms, the
|
||
Scourge of France, the Arbitress of Europe, the Seat of Virtue, Piety,
|
||
Honour and Truth, the Pride and Envy of the World, so contemptuously
|
||
treated.
|
||
|
||
But as I was not in a Condition to resent injuries, so, upon mature
|
||
Thoughts, I began to doubt whether I was injured or no. For, after having
|
||
been accustomed several Months to the Sight and Converse of this People,
|
||
and observed every Object upon which I cast mine Eyes to be of
|
||
proportionable Magnitude, the Horror I had first conceived from their
|
||
Bulk and Aspect was so far worn off, that if I had then beheld a Company
|
||
of English Lords and Ladies in their Finery and Birth-day Cloaths, acting
|
||
their several Parts in the most courtly manner, of strutting, and bowing,
|
||
and prating; to say the Truth, I should have been strongly tempted to laugh
|
||
as much at them as the King and his Grandees did at me. Neither indeed
|
||
could I forbear smiling at my self, when the Queen used to place me upon
|
||
her Hand towards a Looking-glass, by which both our Persons appeared
|
||
before me in full View together; and there could nothing be more
|
||
ridiculous than the Comparison: So that I really began to imagine myself
|
||
Dwindled many Degrees below my usual Size.
|
||
|
||
Nothing angered and mortified me so much as the Queen's Dwarf, who
|
||
being of the lowest Stature that was ever that Country (for I verily think he
|
||
was not thirty Foot high) became insolent at seeing a Creature so much
|
||
beneath him, that he would always affect to swagger and look big as he
|
||
passed by me in the Queen's Antichamber, while I was standing on some
|
||
Table talking with the Lords or Ladies of the Court, and he seldom failed
|
||
of a small Word or two upon my Littleness; against which I could only
|
||
revenge my self by calling him Brother, challenging him to wrestle, and
|
||
such Repartees as are usual in the Mouths of Court Pages. One Day at
|
||
Dinner this malicious little Cubb was so nettled with something I had said
|
||
to him, that raising himself upon the Frame of her Majesty's Chair, he took
|
||
me up by the Middle, as I was sitting down, not thinking any harm, and let
|
||
me drop into a large silver Bowl of Cream, and then ran away as fast as he
|
||
could. I fell over Head and Ears, and if I had not been a good Swimmer, it
|
||
might have gone very hard with me; for Glumdalclitch in that Instant
|
||
happened to be at the other End of the Room, and the Queen was in such a
|
||
Fright that she wanted Presence of Mind to assist me. But my little Nurse
|
||
ran to my Relief, and took me out, after I had swallowed above a Quart of
|
||
Cream. I was put to Bed; however, I received no other Damage than the
|
||
Loss of a Suit of Cloaths, which was utterly spoiled. The Dwarf was
|
||
soundly whipped, and as a farther Punishment, forced to drink up the Bowl
|
||
of Cream, into which he had thrown me; neither was he ever restored to
|
||
Favour; For soon after the Queen bestowed him to a Lady of high Quality,
|
||
so that I saw him no more, to my very great Satisfaction; for I could not
|
||
tell to what Extremity such a malicious Urchin might have carried his
|
||
Resentment.
|
||
|
||
He had before served me a scurvy Trick, which set the Queen a laughing,
|
||
although at the same Time she was heartily vexed, and would have
|
||
immediately cashiered him, if I had not been so generous as to intercede.
|
||
Her Majesty had taken a Marrow-bone upon her plate, and after knocking
|
||
out the Marrow, placed the Bone again in the Dish erect as it stood before;
|
||
the Dwarf watching his Opportunity, while Glumdalclitch was gone to the
|
||
Sideboard, mounted upon the Stool she stood on to take care of me at
|
||
Meals, took me up in both Hands, and squeezing my Legs together, wedged
|
||
them into the Marrow-bone above my Wast, where I stuck for some time,
|
||
and made a very ridiculous Figure. I believe it was near a Minute before
|
||
any one knew what was become of me, for I thought it below me to cry
|
||
out. But, as Princes seldom get their Meat hot, my Legs were not scalded,
|
||
only my Stockings and Breeches in a sad Condition. The Dwarf, at my
|
||
Entreaty, had no other Punishment than a sound whipping.
|
||
|
||
I was frequently rallied by the Queen upon account of my Fearfulness, and
|
||
she used to ask me whether the People of my Country were as great
|
||
Cowards as my self? The Occasion was this. The Kingdom is much
|
||
pestered with Flies in Summer; and these odious Insects, each of them as
|
||
big as a Dunstable Lark, hardly gave me any Rest while I sat at Dinner,
|
||
with their continual humming and buzzing about mine Ears. They would
|
||
sometimes alight upon my Victuals, and leave their loathsome Excrement
|
||
or Spawn behind, which to me was very visible, though not to the Natives
|
||
of that Country, whose large Opticks were not so acute as mine in viewing
|
||
smaller Objects. Sometimes they would fix upon my Nose or Forehead,
|
||
where they stung me to the Quick, smelling very offensively, and I could
|
||
easily trace that viscous Matter, which our Naturalists tell us enables those
|
||
Creatures to walk with their Feet upwards upon a Cieling. I had much ado
|
||
to defend my self against these detestable Animals, and could not forbear
|
||
starting when they came on my Face. It was the common Practice of the
|
||
Dwarf to catch a number of these Insects in his Hand, as School-boys do
|
||
among us, and let them out suddenly under my Nose on purpose to frighten
|
||
me, and divert the Queen. My Remedy was to cut them in Pieces with my
|
||
Knife as they flew in the Air, wherein my Dexterity was much admired.
|
||
|
||
I remember one Morning when Glumdalclitch had set me in my Box upon
|
||
a Window, as she usually did in fair Days to give me Air (for I durst not
|
||
venture to let the Box be hung on a Nail out of the Window, as we do with
|
||
Cages in England) after I had lifted up one of my Sashes, and sat down at
|
||
my Table to eat a Piece of Sweet Cake for my Breakfast, above twenty
|
||
Wasps, allured by the smell, came flying into the Room, humming louder
|
||
than the Drones of as many Bagpipes. Some of them seized my Cake, and
|
||
carried it piece-meal away, others flew about my Head and Face,
|
||
confounding me with the Noise, and putting me in the utmost terror of
|
||
their Stings. However I had the Courage to rise and draw my Hanger, and
|
||
attack them in the Air. I dispatched four of them, but the rest got away,
|
||
and I presently shut my Window. These Insects were as large as Partridges;
|
||
I took out their Stings, found them an Inch and a half long, and as sharp as
|
||
Needles. I carefully preserved them all, and having since shown them with
|
||
some other Curiosities in several parts of Europe; upon my Return to
|
||
England I gave three of them to Gresham College, and kept the fourth for
|
||
my self.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The Country described. A Proposal for Correcting modern Maps. The
|
||
King's Palace, and some Account of the Metropolis. The Author's way of
|
||
Travelling. The chief Temple described.
|
||
|
||
I NOW intend to give the Reader a short Description of this Country, as
|
||
far as I travelled in it, which was not above two thousand Miles round
|
||
Lorbrulgrud the Metropolis. For, the Queen, whom I always attended,
|
||
never went further when she accompanied the King in his Progresses, and
|
||
there staid till his Majesty returned from viewing his Frontiers. The whole
|
||
Extent of this Prince's Dominions reacheth about six thousand Miles in
|
||
Length, and from three to five in Breadth. From whence I cannot but
|
||
conclude that our Geographers of Europe are in a great Error, by
|
||
supposing nothing but Sea between Japan and California; for it was ever
|
||
my Opinion, that there must be a Balance of Earth to counterpoise the
|
||
great Continent of Tartary; and therefore they ought to correct their Maps
|
||
and Charts, by joining this vast Tract of Land to the North-west Parts of
|
||
America, wherein I shall be ready to lend them my Assistance.
|
||
|
||
The Kingdom is a Peninsula, terminated to the North-east by a Ridge of
|
||
Mountains thirty Miles high, which are altogether impassable by reason of
|
||
the Volcanoes upon the Tops. Neither do the most Learned know what sort
|
||
of Mortals inhabit beyond those Mountains, or whether they be inhabited at
|
||
all. On the three other Sides it is bounded by the Ocean. There is not one
|
||
Sea-port in the whole Kingdom, and those Parts of the Coasts into which
|
||
the Rivers issue, are so full of pointed Rocks, and the Sea generally so
|
||
rough, that there is no venturing with the smallest of their Boats; so that
|
||
these People are wholly excluded from any Commerce with the rest of the
|
||
World. But the large Rivers are full of Vessels, and abound with excellent
|
||
Fish; for they seldom get any from the Sea, because the Sea-fish are of the
|
||
same Size with those in Europe, and consequently not worth catching;
|
||
whereby it is manifest, that Nature in the Production of Plants and Animals
|
||
of so extraordinary a Bulk, is wholly confined to this Continent; of which I
|
||
leave the Reasons to be determined by Philosophers. However, now and
|
||
then they take a Whale that happens to be dashed against the Rocks, which
|
||
the common People feed on heartily. These Whales I have known so large
|
||
that a Man could hardly carry one upon his Shoulders; and sometimes for
|
||
Curiosity they are brought in Hampers to Lorbrulgrud: I saw one of them
|
||
in a Dish at the King's Table, which passed for a Rarity, but I did not
|
||
observe he was fond of it; for I think indeed the Bigness disgusted him,
|
||
although I have seen one somewhat larger in Greenland.
|
||
|
||
The Country is well inhabited, for it contains fifty one Cities, near an
|
||
hundred walled Towns, and a great Number of Villages. To satisfy my
|
||
curious Reader, it may be sufficient to describe Lorbrulgrud. This City
|
||
stands upon almost two equal Parts on each Side the River that passes
|
||
through. It contains above eighty thousand Houses, and about six hundred
|
||
thousand Inhabitants. It is in Length three Glonglungs (which make about
|
||
fifty four English Miles) and two and a half in Breadth, as I measured it
|
||
my self in the Royal Map made by the King's Order, which was laid on the
|
||
Ground on purpose for me, and extended an hundred Feet; I paced the
|
||
Diameter and Circumference several times Bare-foot, and computing by
|
||
the Scale, measured it pretty exactly.
|
||
|
||
The King's Palace is no regular Edifice, but a Heap of Buildings about
|
||
seven Miles round: The chief Rooms are generally two hundred and forty
|
||
Foot high, and broad and long in Proportion. A Coach was allowed to
|
||
Glumdalclitch and me, wherein her Governess frequently took her out to
|
||
see the Town, or go among the Shops; and I was always of the Party,
|
||
carried in my Box; although the Girl at my own Desire would often take
|
||
me out, and hold me in her Hand, that I might more conveniently view the
|
||
Houses and the People, as we passed along the Streets. I reckoned our
|
||
Coach to be about a Square of Westminster-Hall, but not altogether so high;
|
||
however, I cannot be very exact. One Day the Governess ordered our
|
||
Coachman to stop at several Shops, where the Beggars watching their
|
||
Opportunity, crouded to the Sides of the Coach, and gave me the most
|
||
horrible Spectacles that ever an English Eye beheld. There was a Woman
|
||
with a Cancer in her Breast, swelled to a monstrous Size, full of Holes, in
|
||
two or three of which I could have easily crept, and covered my whole
|
||
Body. There was a Fellow with a wen in his Neck, larger than five Wool-
|
||
packs; and another with a couple of wooden Legs, each about twenty Foot
|
||
high. But the most hateful Sight of all was the Lice crawling on their
|
||
Cloaths: I could see distinctly the Limbs of these Vermin with my naked
|
||
Eye, much better than those of an European Louse through a Microscope,
|
||
and their Snouts with which they rooted like Swine. They were the first I
|
||
had ever beheld, and I should have been curious enough to dissect one of
|
||
them, if I had proper Instruments (which I unluckily left behind me in the
|
||
Ship) although indeed the Sight was so nauseous, that it perfectly turned my
|
||
Stomach.
|
||
|
||
Besides the large Box in which I was usually carried, the Queen ordered a
|
||
smaller one to be made for me, of about twelve Foot Square, and ten high,
|
||
for the Convenience of Travelling; because the other was somewhat too
|
||
large for Glumdalclitch's Lap, and cumbersom in the Coach; it was made
|
||
by the same Artist, whom I directed in the whole Contrivance. This
|
||
travelling Closet was an exact Square with a Window in the Middle of three
|
||
of the Squares, and each Window was latticed with Iron Wire on the
|
||
outside, to prevent Accidents in long Journeys. On the fourth Side, which
|
||
had no Window, two strong Staples were fixed, through which the Person
|
||
that carried me, when I had a Mind to be on Horseback, put in a Leathern
|
||
Belt, and buckled it about his Waist. This was always the Office of some
|
||
grave trusty Servant in whom I could confide, whether I attended the King
|
||
and Queen in their Progresses, or were disposed to see the Gardens, or pay
|
||
a Visit to some great Lady or Minister of State in the Court, when
|
||
Glumdalclitch happened to be out of Order: for I soon began to be known
|
||
and esteemed among the greatest Officers, I suppose more upon Account of
|
||
their Majesties' Favour, than any Merit of my own. In Journeys, when I
|
||
was weary of the Coach, a Servant on Horseback would buckle my Box,
|
||
and place it on a Cushion before him; and there I had a full Prospect of the
|
||
Country on three Sides from my three Windows. I had in this Closet a
|
||
Field-Bed and a Hammock hung from the Cieling, two Chairs and a Table,
|
||
neatly screwed to the Floor, to prevent being tossed about by the Agitation
|
||
of the Horse or the Coach. And having been long used to Sea-Voyages,
|
||
those Motions, although sometimes very violent, did not much discompose
|
||
me.
|
||
|
||
Whenever I had a Mind to see the Town, it was always in my Travelling-
|
||
Closet; which Glumdalclitch held in her Lap in a kind of open Sedan, after
|
||
the Fashion of the Country, borne by four Men, and attended by two others
|
||
in the Queen's Livery. The People who had often heard of me, were very
|
||
curious to croud about the Sedan, and the Girl was complaisant enough to
|
||
make the Bearers stop, and to take me in her Hand that I might be more
|
||
conveniently seen.
|
||
|
||
I was very desirous to see the chief Temple, and particularly the Tower
|
||
belonging to it, which is reckoned the highest in the Kingdom.
|
||
Accordingly, one Day my Nurse carried me thither, but I may truly say I
|
||
came back disappointed; for, Height is not above three thousand Foot,
|
||
reckoning from the Ground to the highest Pinnacle top; which allowing for
|
||
the Difference between the Size of those People, and us in Europe, is no
|
||
great matter for Admiration, nor at all equal in Proportion, (if I rightly
|
||
remember) to Salisbury Steeple. But, not to detract from a Nation to which
|
||
during my Life I shall acknowledge myself extremely obliged; it must be
|
||
allowed, that whatever this famous Tower wants in Height, is amply made
|
||
up in Beauty and Strength. For the Walls are near an hundred Foot thick,
|
||
built of hewn Stone, whereof each is about forty Foot square, and adorned
|
||
on all Sides with Statues of Gods and Emperors cut in Marble larger than
|
||
the Life, placed in their several Niches. I measured a little Finger which
|
||
had fallen down from one of these Statues, and lay unperceived among
|
||
some Rubbish; and found it exactly four Foot and an Inch in Length.
|
||
Glumdalclitch wrapped it up in a Handkerchief, and carried it Home in her
|
||
Pocket to keep among other Trinkets, of which the Girl was very fond, as
|
||
Children at her Age usually are.
|
||
|
||
The King's Kitchen is indeed a noble Building, vaulted at Top, and about
|
||
six hundred Foot high. The great Oven is not so wide by ten Paces as the
|
||
Cupola at St. Paul's: For I measured the latter on purpose after my Return.
|
||
But if I should describe the Kitchen-grate, the prodigious Pots and Kettles,
|
||
the Joints of Meat turning on the Spits, with many other Particulars,
|
||
perhaps I should be hardly believed; at least a severe Critick would be apt
|
||
to think I enlarged a little, as Travellers are often suspected to do. To avoid
|
||
which Censure, I fear I have run too much into the other Extreme; and that
|
||
if this Treatise should happen to be translated into the Language of
|
||
Brobdingnag (which is the general Name of that Kingdom) and transmitted
|
||
thither; the King and his People would have Reason to complain; that I had
|
||
done them an Injury by a false and diminutive Representation.
|
||
|
||
His Majesty seldom keeps above six hundred Horses in his Stables: they are
|
||
generally from fifty four to sixty Foot high. But, when he goes abroad on
|
||
solemn Days, he is attended for State by a Militia Guard of five hundred
|
||
Horse, which indeed I thought was the most splendid Sight that could be
|
||
ever beheld, till I saw part of his Army in Battalia, whereof I shall find
|
||
another Occasion to speak.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
Several Adventured that happened to the Author. The Execution of a
|
||
Criminal. The Author shews his Skill in Navigation.
|
||
|
||
I SHOULD have lived happy enough in that Country, if my littleness had
|
||
not exposed me to several ridiculous and troublesome Accidents : some of
|
||
which I shall venture to relate. Glumdalclitch often carried me into the
|
||
Gardens of the Court in my smaller Box, and would sometimes take me out
|
||
of it and hold me in her Hand, or set me down to walk. I remember, before
|
||
the Dwarf left the Queen, he followed us one Day into those Gardens, and
|
||
my Nurse having set me down, he and I being close together, near some
|
||
Dwarf Apple Trees, I must needs shew my Wit by a silly Allusion between
|
||
him and the Trees, which happens to hold in their Language as it does in
|
||
ours. Whereupon, the malicious Rogue watching his Opportunity, when I
|
||
was walking under one of them, shook it directly over my Head, by which
|
||
a dozen Apples, each of them near as large as a Bristol Barrel, came
|
||
tumbling about my Ears; one of them hit me on the Back as I chanced to
|
||
stoop, and knocked me down flat on my Face, but I received no other Hurt,
|
||
and the Dwarf was pardoned at my Desire, because I had given the
|
||
Provocation.
|
||
|
||
Another day Glumdalclitch left me on a smooth Grass-plot to divert my
|
||
self while she walked at some distance with her Governess. In the meantime
|
||
there suddenly fell such a violent shower of Hail, that I was immediately by
|
||
the force of it struck to the Ground: And when I was down, the Hail-stones
|
||
gave me such cruel Bangs all over the Body, as if I had been pelted with
|
||
Tennis balls; however I made a shift to creep on all four, and shelter
|
||
myself by lying flat on my Face on the Lee-side of a Border of Lemon
|
||
Thyme, but so bruised from Head to Foot that I could not go abroad in ten
|
||
Days. Neither is this at all to be wondered at, because Nature in that
|
||
Country observing the same Proportion thro' all her Operations, a
|
||
hailstone is near eighteen hundred times as large as one in Europe, which I
|
||
can assert upon Experience, having been so curious to weigh and measure
|
||
them.
|
||
|
||
But, a more dangerous Accident happened to me in the same Garden, when
|
||
my little Nurse believing she had put me in a secure Place, which I often
|
||
entreated her to do, that might enjoy my own Thoughts, and having left my
|
||
Box at Home to avoid the Trouble of carrying it, went to another part of
|
||
the Garden with her Governess and some Ladies of her acquaintance.
|
||
While she was absent and out of hearing, a small white Spaniel belonging to
|
||
one of the chief Gardiners, having got by Accident into the Garden,
|
||
happened to range near the Place where I lay. The Dog following the
|
||
Scent, came directly up, and taking me in his Mouth, ran strait to his
|
||
Master, wagging his Tail, and set me gently on the Ground. By good
|
||
Fortune he had been so well taught, that I was carried between his Teeth
|
||
without the least Hurt, or even tearing my Cloaths. But, the poor Gardiner,
|
||
who knew me well, and had a great Kindness for me, was in a terrible
|
||
Fright. He gently took me up in both his Hands, and asked me how I did;
|
||
but I was so amazed and out of Breath, that I could not speak a Word. In a
|
||
few Minutes I came to my self, and he carried me safe to my little Nurse,
|
||
who by this time had returned to the Place where she left me, and was in
|
||
cruel Agonies when I did not appear, nor answer when she called; she
|
||
severely reprimanded the Gardener on Account of his Dog. But, the Thing
|
||
was hushed up, and never known at Court; for the Girl was afraid of the
|
||
Queen's Anger; and truly as to my self, I thought it would not be for my
|
||
Reputation that such a Story should go about.
|
||
|
||
This Accident absolutely determined Glumdalclitch never to trust me
|
||
abroad for the future out of her Sight. I had been long afraid of this
|
||
Resolution; and therefore concealed from her some little unlucky
|
||
Adventures that happened in those Times when I was left by my self. Once
|
||
a Kite hovering over the Garden, made a Stoop at me, and if I had not
|
||
resolutely drawn my Hanger, and run under a thick Espalier, he would
|
||
have certainly carried me away in his Talons. Another time, walking to the
|
||
Top of a fresh Mole-hill, I fell to my Neck in the Hole through which that
|
||
Animal had cast up the Earth; and coined some Lye, not worth
|
||
remembering, to excuse my self for spoiling my Cloaths. I likewise broke
|
||
my right Shin against the Shell of a Snail, which I happened to stumble
|
||
over, as I was walking alone, and thinking on poor England.
|
||
|
||
I cannot tell whether I were more pleased or mortified, to observe in those
|
||
solitary Walks, that the smaller birds did not appear to be at all afraid of
|
||
me; but would hop about within a Yard Distance, looking for Worms, and
|
||
other Food with as much Indifference and Security as if no Creature at all
|
||
were near them. I remember a Thrush had the Confidence to snatch out of
|
||
my Hand with his Bill a Piece of Cake that Glumdalclitch had just given me
|
||
for my Breakfast. When I attempted to catch any of these Birds, they
|
||
would boldly turn against me, endeavoring to pick my Fingers, which I
|
||
durst not venture within their reach; and then they would hop back
|
||
unconcerned to hunt for Worms or Snails, as they did before. But, one Day
|
||
I took a thick Cudgel, and threw it with all my Strength so luckily at a
|
||
Linnet, that I knocked him down, and seizing him by the Neck with both
|
||
my Hands, ran with him in Triumph to my Nurse. However, the Bird, who
|
||
had only been stunned, recovering himself, gave me so many Boxes with
|
||
his Wings on both Sides of my Head and Body, though I held him at Arms
|
||
Length, and was out of the Reach of his Claws, that I was twenty Times
|
||
thinking to let him go. But I was soon relieved by one of our Servants, who
|
||
wrung off the Bird's Neck; and I had him next Day for Dinner, by the
|
||
Queen's Command. This Linnet, as near as I can remember, seemed to be
|
||
somewhat larger than an English Swan.
|
||
|
||
The Maids of Honour often invited Glumdalclitch to their Apartments, and
|
||
desired she would bring me along with her, on Purpose to have the
|
||
Pleasure of seeing and touching me. They would often strip me naked from
|
||
Top to Toe, and lay me at full Length in their Bosoms; wherewith I was
|
||
much disgusted; because, to say the Truth, a very offensive Smell came
|
||
from their Skins; which I do not mention or intend to the Disadvantage of
|
||
those excellent Ladies, for whom I have all Manner of Respect; but, I
|
||
conceive that my Sense was more acute in Proportion to my Littleness, and
|
||
that those illustrious Persons were no more disagreeable to their Lovers, or
|
||
to each other, than People of the same Quality are with us in England. And,
|
||
after all, I found their natural Smell was much more supportable than when
|
||
they used Perfumes, under which I immediately swooned away. I cannot
|
||
forget that an intimate Friend of mine in Lilliput took the Freedom in a
|
||
warm Day, when I had used a good deal of Exercise, to complain of a
|
||
strong Smell about me, although I am as little faulty that way as most of
|
||
my Sex: But I suppose his Faculty of Smelling was as nice with regard to
|
||
me, as mine was to that of this People. Upon this point, I cannot forbear
|
||
doing Justice to the Queen my Mistress, and Glumdalclitch my Nurse,
|
||
whose Persons were as sweet as those of any Lady in England.
|
||
|
||
That which gave me most Uneasiness among these Maids of Honour, when
|
||
my Nurse carried me to visit them, was to see them use me without any
|
||
manner of Ceremony, like a Creature who had no sort of Consequence.
|
||
For, they would strip themselves to the Skin, and put on their Smocks in
|
||
my Presence, while I was placed on their Toylet directly before their naked
|
||
Bodies, which, I am sure, to me was very far from being a tempting Sight,
|
||
or from giving me any other emotions than those of Horror and Disgust.
|
||
Their Skins appeared so coarse and uneven, so variously coloured, when I
|
||
saw them near, with a Mole here and there as broad as a Trencher, and
|
||
Hairs hanging from it thicker than Pack-threads, to say nothing further
|
||
concerning the rest of their Persons. Neither did they at all scruple, while I
|
||
was by to discharge what they had drunk, to the Quantity of at least two
|
||
Hogsheads, in a Vessel that held above three Tuns. The handsomest among
|
||
these Maids of Honour, a pleasant frolicksome Girl of Sixteen, would
|
||
sometimes set me astride upon one of her Nipples, with many other Tricks,
|
||
wherein the Reader will excuse me for not being over particular. But I was
|
||
so much displeased, that I entreated Glumdalclitch to contrive some Excuse
|
||
for not seeing that young Lady any more.
|
||
|
||
One Day, a young Gentleman, who was a Nephew to my Nurse's
|
||
Governess, came and pressed them both to see an Execution. It was of a
|
||
Man who had murdered one of that Gentleman's intimate Acquaintance.
|
||
Glumdalclitch was prevailed on to be of the Company, very much against
|
||
her Inclination, for she was naturally tender-hearted: And, as for my self,
|
||
although I abhorred such kind of Spectacles, yet my Curiosity tempted me
|
||
to see something that I thought must be extraordinary. The Malefactor was
|
||
fixed in a Chair upon a Scaffold erected for the Purpose, and his Head cut
|
||
off at a Blow with a Sword of about forty Foot long. The Veins and
|
||
Arteries spouted up such a prodigious Quantity of Blood, and so high in the
|
||
Air, that the great Jett d'eau at Versailles was not equal, for the Time it
|
||
lasted; and the Head, when it fell on the Scaffold-Floor, gave such a
|
||
Bounce, as made me start, although I were at least half an English Mile
|
||
distant.
|
||
|
||
The Queen, who often used to hear me talk of my Sea-Voyages, and took
|
||
all Occasions to divert me when I was melancholy, asked me whether I
|
||
understood how to handle a Sail, or an Oar, and whether a little Exercise
|
||
of Rowing might not be convenient for my Health. I answered, that I
|
||
understood both very well: For, although my proper Employment had been
|
||
to be Surgeon or Doctor to the Ship, yet upon a Pinch, I was forced to
|
||
work like a common Mariner. But I could not see how this could be done
|
||
in their Country, where the smallest Wherry was equal to a First-rate Man
|
||
of War among us, and such a Boat as I could manage would never live in
|
||
any of their Rivers. Her Majesty said, if I would contrive a Boat, her own
|
||
Joiner should make it, and she would provide a Place for me to sail in. The
|
||
Fellow was an ingenious Workman, and, by my instructions, in ten Days
|
||
finished a Pleasure-Boat, with all its Tackling, able conveniently to hold
|
||
eight Europeans. When it was finished, the Queen was so delighted, that she
|
||
ran with it in her Lap to the King, who ordered it to be put in a Cistern
|
||
full of Water, with me in it, by Way of Tryal; where I could not manage
|
||
my two Sculls, or little Oars, for want of Room. But the Queen had before
|
||
contrived another Project. She ordered the Joiner to make a wooden
|
||
Trough of three hundred Foot long, fifty broad, and eight deep; which
|
||
being well pitched to prevent leaking, was placed on the Floor along the
|
||
Wall, in an outer Room of the Palace. It had a cock near the Bottom to let
|
||
out the Water when it began to grow stale, and two Servants could easily
|
||
fill it in half an Hour. Here I often used to row for my own Diversion, as
|
||
well as that of the Queen and her Ladies, who thought themselves well
|
||
entertained with my Skill and Agility. Sometimes I would put up my Sail,
|
||
and then my Business was only to steer, while the Ladies gave me a Gale
|
||
with their fans; and when they were weary, some of the pages would blow
|
||
my Sail forward with their Breath, while I showed my Art steering
|
||
starboard or larboard as I pleased. When I had done, Glumdalclitch always
|
||
carried my Boat into her Closet, and hung it on a Nail to dry.
|
||
|
||
In this Exercise I once met an Accident which had like to have cost me my
|
||
Life: For, one of the Pages having put my Boat into the Trough, the
|
||
Governess, who attended Glumdalclitch very officiously lifted me up to
|
||
place me in the Boat, but I happened to slip through her Fingers, and
|
||
should have infallibly fallen down forty Foot upon the Floor, if by the
|
||
luckiest Chance in the World, I had not been stopp'd by a Corking-pin that
|
||
stuck in the good Gentlewoman's Stomacher; the Head of the Pin passed
|
||
between my Shirt and the Waistband of my Breeches, and thus I was held
|
||
by the Middle in the Air till Glumdalclitch ran to my Relief.
|
||
|
||
Another Time, one of the Servants, whose Office it was to fill my Trough
|
||
every third Day with fresh Water, was so careless to let a huge Frog (not
|
||
perceiving it) slip out of his Pail. The Frog lay concealed till I was put into
|
||
my Boat, but then seeking a resting Place, climbed up, and made it lean so
|
||
much on one Side, that I was forced to balance it with all my Weight on the
|
||
other, to prevent overturning. When the Frog was got in, it hopped at once
|
||
half the Length of the Boat, and then over my Head, backwards and
|
||
forwards, daubing my face and Clothes with its odious Slime. The
|
||
Largeness of its Features made it appear the most deformed Animal that
|
||
can be conceived. However, I desired Glumdalclitch to let me deal with it
|
||
alone. I banged it a good while with one of my Sculls, and at last forced it
|
||
to leap out of the Boat.
|
||
|
||
But the greatest Danger I ever underwent in that Kingdom was from a
|
||
Monkey, who belonged to one of the Clerks of the Kitchen. Glumdalclitch
|
||
had locked me up in her Closet, while she went somewhere upon Business,
|
||
or a Visit. The Weather being very warm, the Closet-Window was left
|
||
open, as well as the Windows and the Door of my bigger Box, in which I
|
||
usually lived, because of its Largeness and Conveniency. As I sat quietly
|
||
meditating at my Table, I heard something bounce in at the Closet-
|
||
Window, and skip about from one Side to the other; whereat, although I
|
||
was much alarmed, yet I ventured to look out, but not stirring from my
|
||
Seat; and then I saw this frolicksome Animal, frisking and leaping up and
|
||
down, till at last he came to my Box, which he seemed to view with great
|
||
Pleasure and Curiosity, peeping in at the Door and every Window. I
|
||
retreated to the farther Corner of my Room, or Box, but the Monkey
|
||
looking in at every Side, put me into such a Fright, that I wanted Presence
|
||
of Mind to conceal my self under the Bed, as I might easily have done.
|
||
After some Time spent in peeping, grinning, and chattering, he at last
|
||
espied me, and reaching one of his Paws in at the Door, as a Cat does when
|
||
she plays with a Mouse, although I often shifted Place to avoid him, he at
|
||
Length seized the Lappet of my Coat (which being made of that Country
|
||
Cloth, was very thick and strong,) and dragged me out. He took me up in
|
||
his right Fore-foot, and held me as a Nurse does a Child she is going to
|
||
suckle, just as I have seen the same sort of Creature do with a Kitten in
|
||
Europe: And when I offered to struggle, he squeezed me so hard, that I
|
||
thought it more prudent to submit. I have good Reason to believe that he
|
||
took me for a young one of his own Species, by his often stroaking my
|
||
Face very gently with his other Paw. In these Diversions he was
|
||
interrupted by a Noise at the Closet Door, as if some Body were opening it;
|
||
whereupon he suddenly leaped up to the Window at which he had come in,
|
||
and thence upon the Leads and Gutters, walking upon three Legs, and
|
||
holding me in the fourth, till he clamber'd up to a Roof that was next to
|
||
ours. I heard Glumdalclitch give a shriek at the Moment he was carrying
|
||
me out. The poor Girl was almost distracted: That Quarter of the Palace
|
||
was all in an uproar; the Servants ran for Ladders; the Monkey was seen by
|
||
hundreds in the Court, sitting upon the Ridge of a Building, holding me
|
||
like a Baby in one of his Fore-paws, and feeding me with the other, by
|
||
cramming into my Mouth some Victuals he had squeezed out of the Bag on
|
||
one side of his Chaps, and patting me when I would not eat; whereat many
|
||
of the Rabble below could not forbear laughing; neither do I think they
|
||
justly ought to be blamed, for without Question the Sight was ridiculous
|
||
enough to every Body but my self. Some of the People threw up Stones,
|
||
hoping to drive the Monkey down; but this was strictly forbidden, or else
|
||
very probably my Brains had been dashed out.
|
||
|
||
The Ladders were now applied, and mounted by several Men, which the
|
||
Monkey observing, and finding himself almost encompassed: not being able
|
||
to make Speed enough with his three Legs, let me drop on a Ridge-Tyle,
|
||
and made his Escape. Here I sat for some Time, three hundred Yards from
|
||
the Ground, expecting every Moment to be blown down by the Wind, or to
|
||
fall by my own Giddiness, and come tumbling over and over from the
|
||
Ridge to the Eves: But an honest Lad, one of my Nurse's Footmen, climbed
|
||
up, and putting me into his Breeches Pocket, brought me down safe.
|
||
|
||
I was almost choaked with the filthy Stuff the Monkey had crammed down
|
||
my Throat: but my dear little Nurse picked it out of my Mouth with a
|
||
small Needle, and then I fell to vomiting, which gave me great Relief. Yet I
|
||
was so weak, and bruised in the Sides with the Squeezes given me by this
|
||
odious Animal, that I was forced to keep my Bed a Fortnight. The King,
|
||
Queen, and all the Court, sent every Day to enquire after my Health, and
|
||
her Majesty made me several Visits during my Sickness. The Monkey was
|
||
killed, and an Order made that no such Animal should be kept about the
|
||
Palace.
|
||
|
||
When I attended the King after my Recovery, to return him Thanks for his
|
||
Favours, he was pleased to rally me a good deal upon this Adventure. He
|
||
asked me what my Thoughts and Speculations were while I lay in the
|
||
Monkey's Paw; how I liked the Victuals he gave me; his manner of feeding;
|
||
and whether the fresh Air on the Roof had sharpen'd my Stomack. He
|
||
desired to know what I would have done upon such an Occasion my own
|
||
Country. I told his Majesty, that in Europe we had no Monkeys, except
|
||
such as were brought for Curiosities from other Places, and so small that I
|
||
could deal with a Dozen of them together, if they presumed to attack me.
|
||
And as for that monstrous Animal with whom I was so lately engaged (it
|
||
was indeed as large as an Elephant,) if my Fears had suffered me to think
|
||
so far as to make use of my Hanger, (looking fiercely and clapping my
|
||
Hand upon the Hilt as I spoke,) when he poked his Paw into my Chamber,
|
||
perhaps I should have given him such a Wound, as would have made him
|
||
glad to withdraw it, with more haste than he put it in. This I delivered in a
|
||
firm Tone, like a Person who was jealous lest his Honour should be called
|
||
in question. However, my Speech produced nothing else besides a loud
|
||
Laughter, which all the respect due to his Majesty from those about him
|
||
could not make them contain. This made me reflect how vain an attempt it
|
||
is for a Man to endeavor doing himself Honour among those who are out
|
||
of all Degree of Equality or Comparison with him. And yet I have seen the
|
||
Moral of my own Behaviour very frequent in England since my Return,
|
||
where a little contemptible Varlet, without the least Title to Birth, Person,
|
||
Wit, or common Sense, shall presume to look with Importance, and put
|
||
himself upon a Foot with the greatest Persons of the Kingdom.
|
||
|
||
I was every Day furnishing the Court with some ridiculous Story; and
|
||
Glumdalclitch, although she loved me to Excess, yet was arch enough to
|
||
inform the Queen, whenever I committed any Folly that she thought would
|
||
be diverting to her Majesty. The Girl who had been out of Order, was
|
||
carried by her Governess to take the Air about an Hour's Distance, or
|
||
thirty Miles from Town. They alighted out of the Coach near a small Foot-
|
||
path in a Field, and Glumdalclitch setting down my travelling Box, I went
|
||
out of it to walk. There was a Cow-Dung in the Path, and I must needs try
|
||
my Activity by attempting to leap over it. I took a Run, but unfortunately
|
||
jumped short, and found my self just in the Middle up to my Knees. I
|
||
waded through with some Difficulty, and one of the Footmen wiped me as
|
||
clean as he could with his Handkerchief; for I was filthily bemired, and my
|
||
Nurse confined me to my Box till we returned home; where the Queen was
|
||
soon informed of what had passed, and the Footmen spread it about the
|
||
Court; so that all the Mirth, for some Days, was at my Expense.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
Several Contrivances of the Author to please the King and Queen. He shews
|
||
his Skill in Musick. The King enquires into the State of Europe, which the
|
||
Author relates to him. The King's Observations thereon.
|
||
|
||
I USED to attend the King's Levee once or twice a Week, and had often
|
||
seen him under the Barber's Hand, which indeed was at first very terrible
|
||
to behold: For the Razor was almost twice as long as an ordinary Scythe.
|
||
His Majesty, according to the Custom of the Country, was only shaved
|
||
twice a Week. I once prevailed on the Barber to give me some of the Suds
|
||
or Lather, out of which I picked forty or fifty of the strongest Stumps of
|
||
Hair. I then took a Piece of fine Wood, and cut it like the back of a Comb,
|
||
making several Holes in it at equal Distance with as small a Needle as I
|
||
could get from Glumdalclitch. I fixed in the Stumps so artificially, scraping
|
||
and sloping them with my Knife toward the Points, that I made a very
|
||
tolerable Comb; which was a seasonable Supply, my own being so much
|
||
broken in the Teeth, that it was almost useless: Neither did I know any
|
||
Artist in that Country so nice and exact, as would undertake to make me
|
||
another.
|
||
|
||
And this puts me in Mind of an Amusement wherein I spent many of my
|
||
leisure Hours. I desired the Queen's Woman to save for me the Combings
|
||
of her Majesty's Hair, whereof in Time I got a good Quantity, and
|
||
consulting with my Friend the Cabinet-Maker, who had received general
|
||
Orders to do little Jobbs for me, I directed him to make two Chair-Frames,
|
||
no larger than those I had in my Box, and then to bore little Holes with a
|
||
fine Awl round those Parts where I designed the Backs and Seats; through
|
||
these Holes I wove the strongest Hairs I could pick out, just after the
|
||
manner of Cane-Chairs in England. When they were finished, I made a
|
||
Present of them to her Majesty, who kept them in her Cabinet, and used to
|
||
shew them for Curiosities, as indeed they were the Wonder of every one
|
||
that beheld them. The Queen would have had me sit upon one of these
|
||
Chairs, but I absolutely refused to obey her, protesting I would rather die a
|
||
thousand Deaths than place a dishonourable Part of my Body on those
|
||
precious Hairs that once adorned her Majesty's Head. Of these Hairs (as I
|
||
had always a Mechanical Genius) I likewise made a neat little Purse about
|
||
five Foot long, with her Majesty's Name decyphered in Gold Letters,
|
||
which I gave to Glumdalclitch, by the Queen's Consent. To say the Truth,
|
||
it was more for Show than Use, being not of Strength to bear the Weight of
|
||
the larger Coins, and therefore she kept nothing in it but some little Toys
|
||
that Girls are fond of.
|
||
|
||
The King, who delighted in Musick, had frequent Consorts at Court, to
|
||
which I was sometimes carried, and set in my Box on a Table to hear them:
|
||
But, the Noise was so great, that I could hardly distinguish the Tunes. I am
|
||
confident that all the Drums and Trumpets of a Royal Army, beating and
|
||
sounding together just at your Ears, could not equal it. My practice was to
|
||
have my Box removed from the Places where the Performers sat, as far as
|
||
I could, then to shut the Doors and Windows of it, and draw the Window-
|
||
Curtains; after which I found their Musick not disagreeable.
|
||
|
||
I had learned in my Youth to play a little upon the Spinet Glumdalclitch
|
||
kept one in her Chamber, and a Master attended twice a Week to teach her:
|
||
I call it a Spinet, because it somewhat resembled that Instrument, and was
|
||
play'd upon in the same Manner. A fancy came into my Head that I would
|
||
entertain the King and Queen with an English Tune upon this Instrument.
|
||
But this appeared extremely difficult: For, the Spinet was near sixty Foot
|
||
long, each key being almost a Foot wide, so that, with my Arms extended, I
|
||
could not reach to above five Keys, and to press them down required a
|
||
good smart Stroak with my Fist, which would be too great a Labour, and
|
||
to no Purpose. The Method I contrived was this. I prepared two round
|
||
Sticks about the Bigness of common Cudgels; they were thicker at one End
|
||
than the other, and I covered the thicker Ends with a Piece of a Mouse's
|
||
Skin, that by rapping on them, I might neither damage the Tops of the
|
||
Keys, nor interrupt the Sound. Before the Spinet a Bench was placed about
|
||
four Foot below the Keys, and I was put upon the Bench. I ran sideling
|
||
upon it that Way and this, as fast as I could, banging the proper Keys with
|
||
my two Sticks, and made a Shift to play a Jigg, to the great Satisfaction of
|
||
both their Majesties: But it was the most violent Exercise I ever underwent,
|
||
and yet I could not strike above sixteen Keys, nor, consequently, play the
|
||
Bass and Treble together, as other Artists do; which was a great
|
||
Disadvantage to my Performance.
|
||
|
||
The King, who, as I before observed, was a Prince of excellent
|
||
Understanding, would frequently order that I should be brought in my
|
||
Box, and set upon the Table in his Closet: He would then command me to
|
||
bring one of my Chairs out of the Box, and sit down within three Yards
|
||
Distance upon the Top of the Cabinet, which brought me almost to a level
|
||
with his Face. In this Manner I had several Conversations with him. I one
|
||
Day took the Freedom to tell his Majesty, that the Contempt he discovered
|
||
towards Europe, and the rest of the World, did not seem answerable to
|
||
those excellent Qualities of the Mind he was Master of. That Reason did not
|
||
extend it self with the Bulk of the Body: On the contrary, we observed in
|
||
our Country, that the tallest Persons were usually least provided with it.
|
||
That among other Animals, Bees and Ants had the Reputation of more
|
||
Industry, Art and Sagacity, than many of the larger Kinds; and that, as
|
||
inconsiderable as he took me to be, I hoped I might live to do his Majesty
|
||
some signal Service. The King heard me with Attention, and began to
|
||
conceive a much better Opinion of me than he had ever before. He desired
|
||
I would give him as exact an Account of the Government of England, as I
|
||
possibly could; because, as fond as Princes commonly are of their own
|
||
Customs (for so he conjectured of other Monarchs, by my former
|
||
Discourses), he should be glad to hear of any Thing that might deserve
|
||
Imitation.
|
||
|
||
Imagine with thy self, courteous Reader, how often I then wished for the
|
||
Tongue of Demosthenes or Cicero, that might have enabled me to celebrate
|
||
the Praise of my own dear native Country in a Stile equal to its Merits and
|
||
Felicity.
|
||
|
||
I began my Discourse by informing his Majesty that our Dominions
|
||
consisted of two Islands, which composed three mighty Kingdoms under
|
||
one Sovereign, beside our Plantations in America. I dwelt long upon the
|
||
Fertility of our Soil, and the Temperature of our Climate. I then spoke at
|
||
large upon the Constitution of an English Parliament, partly made up of an
|
||
illustrious Body called the House of Peers, Persons of the noblest Blood,
|
||
and of the most ancient and ample Patrimonies. I described that
|
||
extraordinary Care always taken of their Education in Arts and Arms, to
|
||
qualify them for being Counsellors born to the King and Kingdom; to have
|
||
a share in the Legislature; to be Members of the highest Court of
|
||
Judicature, from whence there could be no Appeal; and to be Champions
|
||
always ready for the Defence of their Prince and Country, by their Valour,
|
||
Conduct, and Fidelity. That these were the Ornament and Bulwark of the
|
||
Kingdom, worthy Followers of their most renowned Ancestors, whose
|
||
Honour had been the Reward of their Virtue, from which their Posterity
|
||
were never once known to degenerate. To these we joined several holy
|
||
Persons, as part of that Assembly, under the Title of Bishops, whose
|
||
peculiar Business it is to take care of Religion, and of those who instruct
|
||
the People therein. These were searched, and sought out, through the whole
|
||
Nation, by the Prince and his wisest Counsellors, among such of the
|
||
Priesthood as were most deservedly distinguished by the Sanctity of their
|
||
Lives, and the depth of their Erudition; who were indeed the spiritual
|
||
Fathers of the Clergy and the People.
|
||
|
||
That, the other Part of the Parliament consisted of an Assembly called the
|
||
House of Commons, who were all principal Gentlemen, freely picked and
|
||
culled out by the People themselves, for their great Abilities and Love of
|
||
their Country, to represent the Wisdom of the whole Nation. And these two
|
||
Bodies make up the most august Assembly in Europe, to whom, in
|
||
Conjunction with the Prince, the whole Legislature is Committed.
|
||
|
||
I then descended to the Courts of Justice, over which the Judges, those
|
||
venerable Sages and Interpreters of the Law presided, for determining the
|
||
disputed Rights and Properties of Men, as well as for the Punishment of
|
||
Vice, and Protection of Innocence. I mentioned the prudent Management of
|
||
our Treasury; the Valour and Atchievements of our Forces by Sea and
|
||
Land. I computed the Number of our People, by reckoning how many
|
||
Millions there might be of each religious Sect, or political Party among us.
|
||
I did not omit even our Sports and Pastimes, or any other Particular which
|
||
I thought might redound to the Honour of my Country. And I finished all
|
||
with a brief historical Account of Affairs and Events in England for about
|
||
an hundred Years past.
|
||
|
||
This Conversation was not ended under five Audiences, each of several
|
||
Hours, and the King heard the whole with great Attention, frequently
|
||
taking Notes of what I spoke, as well as Memorandums of all Questions he
|
||
intended to ask me.
|
||
|
||
When I had put an End to these long Discourses, his Majesty in a sixth
|
||
Audience consulting his Notes, proposed many Doubts, Queries, and
|
||
Objections, upon every Article. He asked what Methods were used to
|
||
cultivate the Minds and Bodies of our young Nobility, and in what kind of
|
||
Business they commonly spent the first and teachable Part of their Lives.
|
||
What Course was taken to supply that Assembly when any Noble Family
|
||
became extinct. What Qualifications were necessary in those who were to
|
||
be created new Lords: Whether the Humour of the Prince, a Sum of Money
|
||
to a Court Lady or a Prime Minister, or a Design of strengthening a Party
|
||
opposite to the publick Interest, ever happened to be Motives in those
|
||
Advancements. What Share of Knowledge these Lords had in the Laws of
|
||
their Country, and how they came by it, so as to enable them to decide the
|
||
Properties of their Fellow-Subjects in the last Resort. Whether they were
|
||
always so free from Avarice, Partialities, or Want, that a Bribe, or some
|
||
other sinister View, could have no Place among them. Whether those holy
|
||
Lords I spoke of were always promoted to that Rank upon account of their
|
||
Knowledge in religious Matters, and the Sanctity of their Lives, had never
|
||
been Compliers with the Times while they were common Priests, or slavish
|
||
prostitute Chaplains to some Nobleman, whose Opinions they continued
|
||
servilely to follow after they were admitted into that Assembly.
|
||
|
||
He then desired to know what Arts were practiced in electing those whom I
|
||
called Commoners: Whether a Stranger with a strong Purse might not
|
||
influence the vulgar Voters to choose him before their own Landlord, or
|
||
the most considerable Gentleman in the Neighbourhood. How it came to
|
||
pass, that People were so violently bent upon getting into this Assembly,
|
||
which I allowed to be a great Trouble and Expense, often to the Ruin of
|
||
their Families, without any Salary or Pension: Because this appeared such
|
||
an exalted Strain of Virtue and publick Spirit, that his Majesty seemed to
|
||
doubt it might possibly not be always sincere: and he desired to know
|
||
whether such zealous Gentlemen could have any Views of refunding
|
||
themselves for the Charges and Trouble they were at, by sacrificing the
|
||
publick Good to the Designs of a weak and vicious Prince in Conjunction
|
||
with a corrupted Ministry. He multiplied his Questions, and sifted me
|
||
thoroughly upon every Part of this Head, proposing numberless Enquiries
|
||
and Objections, which I think it not prudent or convenient to repeat.
|
||
|
||
Upon what I said in relation to our Courts of Justice, his Majesty desired to
|
||
be satisfied in several Points: And this I was the better able to do, having
|
||
been formerly almost ruined by a long Suit in Chancery, which was
|
||
decreed for me with Costs. He asked, what Time was usually spent in
|
||
determining between Right and Wrong, and what Degree of Expence.
|
||
Whether Advocates and Orators had Liberty to plead in Causes manifestly
|
||
known to be unjust, vexatious, or oppressive. Whether Party in Religion or
|
||
Politicks were observed to be of any Weight in the Scale of Justice.
|
||
Whether those pleading Orators were Persons educated in the general
|
||
Knowledge of Equity, or only in provincial, national, and other local
|
||
Customs. Whether they or their Judges had any Part in penning those Laws
|
||
which they assumed the Liberty of interpreting and glossing upon at their
|
||
Pleasure. Whether they had ever at different Times pleaded for and against
|
||
the same Cause, and cited Precedents to prove contrary Opinions. Whether
|
||
they were a rich or a poor Corporation. Whether they received any
|
||
pecuniary Reward for pleading or delivering their Opinions. And
|
||
particularly whether they were ever admitted as Members in the lower
|
||
Senate.
|
||
|
||
He fell next upon the Management of our Treasury; and said, he thought
|
||
my Memory had failed me, because I computed our Taxes at about five or
|
||
six Millions a Year, and when I came to mention the Issues, he found they
|
||
sometimes amounted to more than double; for the Notes he had taken were
|
||
very particular in this Point, because he hoped, as he told me, that the
|
||
Knowledge of our Conduct might be useful to him, and he could not be
|
||
deceived in his Calculations. But, if what I told him were true, he was still
|
||
at a Loss how a Kingdom could run out of its Estate like a private Person.
|
||
He asked me, who were our Creditors; and where we should find Money to
|
||
pay them. He wonder'd to hear me talk of such chargeable and extensive
|
||
Wars; that certainly we must be a quarrelsome People, or live among very
|
||
bad Neighbours, and that our Generals must needs be richer than our
|
||
Kings. He asked what Business we had out of our own Islands, unless upon
|
||
the Score of Trade or Treaty, or to defend the Coasts with our Fleet.
|
||
Above all, he was amazed to hear me talk of a mercenary standing Army in
|
||
the midst of Peace, and among a free People. He said, if we were governed
|
||
by our own Consent in the Persons of our Representatives, he could not
|
||
imagine of whom we were afraid, or against whom we were to fight; and
|
||
would hear my Opinion, whether a private Man's House might not better
|
||
be defended by himself, his Children, and Family, than by half a dozen
|
||
rascals picked up at a venture in the Streets, for small Wages, who might
|
||
get a hundred times more by cutting their Throats.
|
||
|
||
He laughed at my odd Kind of Arithmetick (as he was pleased to call it) in
|
||
reckoning the Numbers of our People by a Computation drawn from the
|
||
several Sects among us in Religion and Politicks. He said, he knew no
|
||
Reason, why those who entertain Opinions prejudicial to the Publick,
|
||
should be obliged to change, or should not be obliged to conceal them. And
|
||
as it was Tyranny in any Government to require the first, so it was
|
||
Weakness not to enforce the second: For a Man may be allowed to keep
|
||
poisons in his Closet, but not to vend them about for Cordials.
|
||
|
||
He observed, that among the Diversions of our Nobility and Gentry, I had
|
||
mentioned Gaming. He desired to know at what Age this Entertainment was
|
||
usually taken up, and when it was laid down; how much of their Time it
|
||
employed; whether it ever went so high as to affect their Fortunes:
|
||
Whether mean vicious People, by their Dexterity in that Art, might not
|
||
arrive at great Riches, and sometimes keep our very Nobles in Dependance,
|
||
as well as habituate them to vile Companions, wholly take them from the
|
||
Improvement of their Minds, and force them, by the Losses they have
|
||
received, to learn and practice that infamous Dexterity upon others.
|
||
|
||
He was perfectly astonished with the historical Account I gave him of our
|
||
Affairs during the last Century, protesting it was only a Heap of
|
||
Conspiracies, Rebellions, Murders, Massacres, Revolutions, Banishments,
|
||
the very worst Effects that Avarice, Faction, Hypocrisy, Perfidiousness,
|
||
Cruelty, Rage, Madness, Hatred, Envy, Lust, Malice, or Ambition could
|
||
produce.
|
||
|
||
His Majesty in another Audience was at the Pains to recapitulate the Sum of
|
||
all I had spoken, compared the Questions he made with the Answers I had
|
||
given; then taking me into his Hands, and stroaking me gently, delivered
|
||
himself in these Words, which I shall never forget nor the Manner he
|
||
spoke them in: My little Friend Grildrig, you have made a most admirable
|
||
Panegyric upon your Country: You have clearly proved that Ignorance,
|
||
Idleness, and Vice may be sometimes the only Ingredients for qualifying a
|
||
Legislator: That Laws are best explained, interpreted, and applied by those
|
||
whose Interest and Abilities lie in perverting, confounding, and eluding
|
||
them. I observe among you some Lines of an Institution, which in its
|
||
Original might have been tolerable, but these half erazed, and the rest
|
||
wholly blurred and blotted by Corruptions. It doth not appear from all you
|
||
have said, how any one Virtue is required towards the Procurement of any
|
||
one Station among you, much less that Men are ennobled on Account of
|
||
their Virtue, that Priests are advanced for their Piety or Learning, Soldiers
|
||
for their Conduct or Valour, Judges for their Integrity, Senators for the
|
||
Love of their Country, or Counsellors for their Wisdom. As for yourself,
|
||
(continued the King,) who have spent the greatest Part of your Life in
|
||
Travelling, I am well disposed to hope you may hitherto have escaped
|
||
many Vices of your Country. But by what I have gathered from your own
|
||
Relation, and the Answers I have with much Pain wringed and extorted
|
||
from you, I cannot but conclude the Bulk of your Natives to be the most
|
||
pernicious Race of little odious Vermin that Nature ever suffered to crawl
|
||
upon the Surface of the Earth.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The Author's Love of his Country. He makes a Proposal of much
|
||
Advantage to the King, which is rejected. The King's great Ignorance in
|
||
Politicks. The Learning of the Country very imperfect and confined. Their
|
||
Laws and millitary Affairs, and Parties in the State.
|
||
|
||
Nothing but an extreme Love of Truth could have hinder'd me from
|
||
concealing this Part of my Story. It was in vain to discover my
|
||
Resentments, which were always turned into Ridicule; and I was forced to
|
||
rest with Patience while my noble and most beloved Country was so
|
||
injuriously treated. I am heartily sorry as any of my Readers can possibly
|
||
be, that such an Occasion was given: But this Prince happened to be so
|
||
curious and inquisitive upon every Particular, that it could not consist
|
||
either with Gratitude or good Manners to refuse giving him what
|
||
Satisfaction I was able. Yet thus much I may be allowed to say in my own
|
||
Vindication, that I artfully eluded many of his Questions, and gave to every
|
||
Point a more favourable Turn by many Degrees than the Strictness of
|
||
Truth would allow. For I have always borne that laudable Partiality to my
|
||
own Country, which Dionysius Halicarnassensis with so much Justice
|
||
recommends to an Historian : I would hide the Frailties and Deformities of
|
||
my political Mother, and place her Virtues and Beauties in the most
|
||
advantageous Light. This was my sincere Endeavour in those many
|
||
Discourses I had with that mighty Monarch, although it unfortunately
|
||
failed of Success.
|
||
|
||
But great Allowances should be given to a King who lives wholly secluded
|
||
from the rest of the World, and must therefore be altogether unacquainted
|
||
with the Manners and Customs that most prevail in other Nations: The want
|
||
of which Knowledge will ever produce many Prejudices, and a certain
|
||
Narrowness of thinking, from which we and the politer Countries of
|
||
Europe are wholly exempted. And it would be hard, indeed, if so remote a
|
||
Prince's Notions of Virtue and Vice were to be offered as a standard for all
|
||
Mankind.
|
||
|
||
To confirm what I have now said, and further, to shew the miserable
|
||
Effects of a confined Education, I shall here insert a Passage which will
|
||
hardly obtain Belief. In hopes to ingratiate my self farther into his
|
||
Majesty's Favour, I told him of an Invention discovered between three and
|
||
four hundred Years ago, to make a certain Powder, into a Heap of which
|
||
the smallest Spark of Fire falling, would kindle the whole in a Moment,
|
||
although it were as big as a Mountain, and make it all fly up in the Air
|
||
together, with a Noise and Agitation greater than Thunder. That a proper
|
||
Quantity of this Powder rammed into a hollow Tube of Brass or Iron,
|
||
according to its Bigness, would drive a Ball of Iron or Lead with such
|
||
Violence and Speed, as nothing was able to sustain its Force. That the
|
||
largest Balls thus discharged, would not only destroy whole Ranks of an
|
||
Army at once, but batter the strongest Walls to the Ground, sink down
|
||
Ships, with a Thousand Men in each, to the Bottom of the Sea; and, when
|
||
linked together by a Chain, would cut through Masts and Rigging, divide
|
||
hundreds of Bodies in the Middle, and lay all waste before them. That we
|
||
often put this Powder into large hollow Balls of Iron, and discharged them
|
||
by an Engine into some City we were besieging, which would rip up the
|
||
Pavements, tear the Houses to pieces, burst and throw Splinters on every
|
||
Side, dashing out the Brains of all who came near. That I knew the
|
||
Ingredients very well, which were cheap, and common; I understood the
|
||
Manner of compounding them, and could direct his Workmen how to make
|
||
those Tubes of a Size proportionable to all other Things in his Majesty's
|
||
Kingdom, and the largest need not be above an hundred Foot long; twenty
|
||
or thirty of which Tubes, charged with the proper Quantity of Powder and
|
||
Balls, would batter down the Walls of the strongest Town in his Dominions
|
||
in a few Hours, or destroy the whole Metropolis, if ever it should pretend
|
||
to dispute his absolute Commands. This I humbly offered to his Majesty, as
|
||
a small Tribute of Acknowledgment in Return of so many Marks that I had
|
||
received of his Royal Favour and Protection.
|
||
|
||
The King was struck with Horror at the Description I had given of those
|
||
terrible Engines, and the Proposal I had made. He was amazed how so
|
||
impotent and grovelling an Insect as I (these were his Expressions) could
|
||
entertain such inhuman Ideas, and in so Familiar a Manner as to appear
|
||
wholly unmoved at all the Scenes of Blood and Desolation, which I had
|
||
painted as the common Effects of those destructive Machines, whereof he
|
||
said some evil Genius, Enemy to Mankind, must have been the first
|
||
Contriver. As for himself, he protested that although few Things delighted
|
||
him so much as new Discoveries in Art or in Nature, yet he would rather
|
||
lose half his Kingdom than be privy to such a Secret, which he commanded
|
||
me, as I valued my Life, never to mention any more.
|
||
|
||
A strange Effect of narrow Principles and short Views! that a Prince
|
||
possessed of every Quality which procures Veneration, Love, and Esteem;
|
||
of strong Parts, great Wisdom, and profound Learning, endued with
|
||
admirable Talents for Government, and almost adored by his Subjects,
|
||
should from a nice unnecessary Scruple, whereof in Europe we can have
|
||
no Conception, let slip an Opportunity to put into his Hands, that would
|
||
have made him absolute Master of the Lives, the Liberties, and the
|
||
Fortunes of his People. Neither do I say this with the least Intention to
|
||
detract from the many Virtues of that excellent King, whose Character I
|
||
am sensible will on this account be very much lessened in the Opinion of an
|
||
English Reader: But I take this Defect among them to have risen from their
|
||
Ignorance, they not having hitherto reduced Politicks into a Science, as the
|
||
more acute Wits of Europe have done. For I remember very well, in a
|
||
Discourse one Day with the King, when I happened to say there were
|
||
several thousand Books among us written upon the Art of Government, it
|
||
gave him (directly contrary to my Intention) a very mean Opinion of our
|
||
Understandings. He professed both to abominate and despise all Mystery,
|
||
Refinement, and Intrigue, either in a Prince or a Minister. He could not tell
|
||
what I meant by Secrets of State, where an Enemy or some Rival Nation
|
||
were not in the Case. He confined the Knowledge of Governing within very
|
||
narrow Bounds; to common Sense and Reason, to Justice and Lenity, to the
|
||
speedy Determination of civil and criminal Causes; with some other
|
||
obvious Topicks, which are not worth considering. And, he gave it for his
|
||
Opinion, that whoever could make two Ears of Corn, or two blades of
|
||
Grass to grow upon a Spot of Ground where only one grew before, would
|
||
deserve better of Mankind, and do more essential Service to his Country
|
||
than the whole Race of Politicians put together.
|
||
|
||
The Learning of this People is very defective, consisting only in Morality,
|
||
History, Poetry, and Mathematicks, wherein they must be allowed to excel.
|
||
But, the last of these is wholly applied to what may be useful in Life, to the
|
||
Improvement of Agriculture and all mechanical Arts; so that among us it
|
||
would be little esteemed. And as to Ideas, Entities, Abstractions and
|
||
Transcendentals, I could never drive the least Conception into their heads.
|
||
|
||
No Law of that Country must exceed in Words the Number of Letters in
|
||
their Alphabet, which consists only of two and twenty. But, indeed, few of
|
||
them extend even to that Length. They are expressed in the most plain and
|
||
simple Terms, wherein those People are not mercurial enough to discover
|
||
above one Interpretation: And to write a Comment upon any Law is a
|
||
capital Crime. As to the Decision of civil Causes, or Proceedings against
|
||
Criminals, their Precedents are so few, that they have little Reason to boast
|
||
of any extraordinary Skill in either.
|
||
|
||
They have had the Art of Printing, as well as the Chinese, Time out of
|
||
mind: But their Libraries are not very large; for that of the King's which is
|
||
reckoned the biggest, doth not amount to above a thousand Volumes, placed
|
||
in a Gallery twelve hundred Foot long, from whence I had Liberty to
|
||
borrow what Books I pleased. The Queen's Joiner had contrived in one of
|
||
Glumdalclitch's Rooms a kind of wooden Machine five and twenty Foot
|
||
high, formed like a standing Ladder; the Steps were each fifty Foot long: It
|
||
was indeed a moveable Pair of Stairs, the lowest End placed at ten Foot
|
||
Distance from the Wall of the Chamber. The Book I had a Mind to read
|
||
was put up leaning against the Wall: I first mounted to the upper Step of
|
||
the Ladder, and turning my Face towards the Book, began at the Top of the
|
||
Page, and so walking to the Right and Left about eight or ten Paces,
|
||
according to the Length of the Lines, till I had gotten a little below the
|
||
Level of mine Eyes, and then descending gradually till I came to the
|
||
Bottom: After which I mounted again, and began the other Page in the
|
||
same manner, and so turned over the Leaf, which I could easily do with
|
||
both my Hands, for it was as thick and stiff as Paste-board, and in the
|
||
largest Folio's not above eighteen or twenty Foot long.
|
||
|
||
Their Stile is clear, masculine, and smooth, but not florid, for they avoid
|
||
nothing more than multiplying unnecessary Words, or using various
|
||
Expressions. I have perused many of their Books, especially those in
|
||
History and Morality. Among the rest I was much diverted with a little old
|
||
Treatise, which always lay in Glumdalclitch's Bed-Chamber, and belonged
|
||
to her Governess, a grave elderly Gentlewoman, who dealt in Writings of
|
||
Morality and Devotion. The Book treats of the Weakness of Human Kind,
|
||
and is in little Esteem, except among the Women and the Vulgar. However,
|
||
I was curious to see what an Author of that Country could say upon such a
|
||
Subject. This Writer went through all the usual Topicks of European
|
||
Moralists, shewing how diminutive, contemptible, and helpless an Animal
|
||
was Man in his own Nature; how unable to defend himself from the
|
||
Inclemencies of the Air, or the Fury of wild Beasts: How much he was
|
||
excelled by one Creature in Strength, by another in Speed, by a third in
|
||
Foresight, by a fourth in Industry. He added, that Nature was degenerated
|
||
in these latter declining Ages of the World, and could now produce only
|
||
small abortive Births in comparison of those in ancient Times. He said, it
|
||
was very reasonable to think, not only that the Species of Men were
|
||
originally much larger, but also, that there must have been Giants in
|
||
former Ages, which, as it is asserted by History and Tradition, so it has
|
||
been confirmed by huge Bones and Skulls casually dug up in several Parts
|
||
of the Kingdom, far exceeding the common dwindled Race of Man in our
|
||
Days. He argued, that the very Laws of Nature absolutely required we
|
||
should have been made in the Beginning, of a Size more large and robust,
|
||
not so liable to Destruction from every little Accident of a Tile falling
|
||
from an House, or a Stone cast from the Hand of a Boy, or of being
|
||
drowned in a little Brook. From this way of Reasoning, the Author drew
|
||
several moral Applications useful in the Conduct of Life, but needless here
|
||
to repeat. For my own part, I could not avoid reflecting how universally
|
||
this Talent was spread, of drawing Lectures in Morality, or, indeed, rather
|
||
Matter of Discontent and Repining, from the Quarrels we raise with
|
||
Nature. And, I believe, upon a strict Enquiry, those Quarrels might be
|
||
shewn as ill-grounded among us, as they are among that People.
|
||
|
||
As to their Military Affairs, they boast that the King's Army consists of an
|
||
hundred and seventy six thousand Foot, and thirty two thousand Horse: If
|
||
that may be called an Army which is made up of Tradesmen in the several
|
||
Cities, and Farmers in the Country, whose Commanders are only the
|
||
Nobility and Gentry, without Pay or Reward. They are, indeed, perfect
|
||
enough in their Exercises, and under very good Discipline, wherein I saw
|
||
no great Merit; for how should it be otherwise, where every Farmer is
|
||
under the Command of his own Landlord, and every Citizen under that of
|
||
the principal Men in his own City, chosen after the Manner of Venice by
|
||
Ballot?
|
||
|
||
I have often seen the Militia of Lorbrulgrud drawn out to exercise in a
|
||
great Field near the City, of twenty Miles square. They were, in all, not
|
||
above twenty five thousand Foot, and six thousand Horse; but it was
|
||
impossible for me to compute their Number, considering the space of
|
||
Ground they took up. A Cavalier mounted on a large Steed, might be about
|
||
one hundred Foot high. I have seen this whole Body of Horse, upon a
|
||
Word of Command, draw their Swords at once, and brandish them in the
|
||
Air. Imagination can figure nothing so grand, so surprising, and so
|
||
astonishing: It looked as if ten thousand Flashes of Lightning were darting
|
||
at the same Time from every Quarter of the Sky.
|
||
|
||
I was curious to know how this Prince, to whose Dominions there is no
|
||
Access from any other Country, came to think of Armies, or to teach his
|
||
People the Practice of military Discipline. But I was soon informed, both
|
||
by Conversation and reading their Histories: For, in the Course of many
|
||
Ages they have been troubled with the same Disease, to which the whole
|
||
race of Mankind is subject; the Nobility often contending for Power, the
|
||
People for Liberty, and the King for absolute Dominion. All which,
|
||
however, happily tempered by the Laws of the Kingdom, have been
|
||
sometimes violated by each of the three Parties, and have once or more
|
||
occasioned Civil Wars, the last whereof was happily put an End to by this
|
||
Prince's Grandfather by a general Composition; and the Militia, then
|
||
settled with common Consent, has been ever since kept in the strictest Duty.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The King and Queen make a Progress to the Frontiers. The Author attends
|
||
them. The Manner in which he leaves the Country very particularly
|
||
related. He returns to England.
|
||
|
||
I had always a strong Impulse that I should some Time recover my
|
||
Liberty, though it was impossible to conjecture by what Means, or to form
|
||
any Project with the least Hope of succeeding. The Ship in which I sailed
|
||
was the first ever known to be driven within Sight of that Coast, and the
|
||
King had given strict Orders, that if at any time another appeared, it should
|
||
be taken ashore, and, with all its Crew and Passengers brought in a
|
||
Tumbril to Lorbrulgrud. He was strongly bent to get me a Woman of my
|
||
own Size, by whom I might propagate the Breed: But, I think I should
|
||
rather have died than undergone the Disgrace of leaving a Posterity to be
|
||
kept in Cages like tame Canary Birds, and perhaps, in Time, sold about the
|
||
Kingdom to Persons of Quality for Curiosities. I was, indeed, treated with
|
||
much Kindness: I was the Favourite of a great King and Queen, and the
|
||
Delight of the whole Court, but it was upon such a Foot as ill became the
|
||
Dignity of Human Kind. I could never forget those domestick Pledges I had
|
||
left behind me. I wanted to be among People with whom I could converse
|
||
upon even Terms, and walk about the Streets and Fields without Fear of
|
||
being trodden to Death like a Frog or a young Puppy. But my Deliverance
|
||
came sooner than I expected, and, in a Manner not very common: The
|
||
whole Story and Circumstances of which, I shall faithfully relate.
|
||
|
||
I had now been two Years in this Country; and, about the Beginning of the
|
||
third, Glumdalclitch and I attended the King and Queen in a Progress to the
|
||
South Coast of the Kingdom. I was carried, as usual, in my Travelling-
|
||
Box, which, as I have already described, was a very convenient Closet of
|
||
twelve Foot wide. And I had ordered a Hammock to be fixed by silken
|
||
Ropes from the four Corners at the Top, to break the Jolts, when a Servant
|
||
carried me before him on Horseback, as I sometimes desired, and would
|
||
often sleep in my Hammock while we were upon the Road. On the Roof of
|
||
my Closet, not directly over the middle of the Hammock, I ordered the
|
||
Joyner to cut out a hole a Foot square, to give me Air in hot Weather, as I
|
||
slept; which Hole I shut, at Pleasure, with a Board that drew backwards and
|
||
forwards through a Groove.
|
||
|
||
When we came to our Journey's End, the King thought proper to pass a
|
||
few Days at a Palace he hath near Flanflasnic, a City within eighteen
|
||
English Miles of the Sea-side. Glumdalclitch and I were much fatigued; I
|
||
had gotten a small Cold, but the poor Girl was so ill as to be confined to
|
||
her Chamber. I longed to see the Ocean, which must be the only Scene of
|
||
my Escape, if ever it should happen. I pretended to be worse than I really
|
||
was, and desired Leave to take the fresh Air of the Sea, with a Page whom
|
||
I was very fond of, and who had sometimes been trusted with me. I shall
|
||
never forget with what unwillingness Glumdalclitch consented, nor the
|
||
strict Charge she gave the Page to be careful of me, bursting at the same
|
||
Time into a Flood of Tears, as if she had some Foreboding of what was to
|
||
happen. The Boy took me out in my Box about half an hours Walk from
|
||
the Palace towards the Rocks on the Sea-shore. I ordered him to set me
|
||
down, and lifting up one of my Sashes, cast many a wistful melancholy
|
||
Look towards the Sea. I found my self not very well, and told the Page that
|
||
I had a Mind to take a Nap in my Hammock, which I hoped would do me
|
||
good. I got in, and the Boy shut the Window close down to keep out the
|
||
Cold. I soon fell asleep, and all I can conjecture is, that while I slept, the
|
||
Page, thinking no Danger could happen, went among the Rocks to look for
|
||
Bird's Eggs, having before observed him from my Window searching
|
||
about, and picking up one or two in the Clefts. Be that as it will, I found
|
||
my self suddenly awaked with a violent Pull upon the Ring which was
|
||
fastened at the Top of my Box for the Conveniency of Carriage. I felt my
|
||
Box raised very high in the Air, and then born forward with prodigious
|
||
Speed. The first Jolt had like to have shaken me out of my Hammock, but
|
||
afterwards the Motion was easy enough. I called out several Times as loud
|
||
as I could raise my Voice, but all to no Purpose. I looked towards my
|
||
Windows, and could see nothing but the Clouds and Sky. I heard a Noise
|
||
just over my Head like the clapping of Wings, and then began to perceive
|
||
the woful Condition I was in, that some Eagle had got the Ring of my Box
|
||
in his Beak, with an Intent to let it fall on a Rock like a Tortoise in a Shell,
|
||
and then pick out my Body, and devour it. For the Sagacity and Smell of
|
||
this Bird enable him to discover his Quarry at a great Distance, though
|
||
better concealed than I could be within a Two-Inch Board.
|
||
|
||
In a little Time I observed the Noise of Flutter of Wings to increase very
|
||
fast, and my Box was tossed up and down, like a Sign-Post on a windy Day.
|
||
I heard several Bangs or Buffets, as I thought, given to the Eagle, (for such
|
||
I am certain it must have been that held the Ring of my Box in his Beak,)
|
||
and then all on a sudden felt my self falling perpendicularly down for
|
||
above a Minute, but with such incredible Swiftness that I almost lost my
|
||
Breath. My Fall was stopped by a terrible Squash, that sounded louder to
|
||
mine Ears than the Cataract of Niagara; after which I was quite in the dark
|
||
for another Minute, and then my Box began to rise so high that I could see
|
||
Light from the Tops of my Windows. I now perceived that I was fallen
|
||
into the Sea. My Box, by the Weight of my Body, the Goods that were in,
|
||
and the broad Plates of Iron fixed for Strength at the four Corners of the
|
||
Top and Bottom, floated about five Foot deep in Water. I did then, and do
|
||
now, suppose that the Eagle which flew away with my Box was pursued by
|
||
two or three others, and forced to let me drop while he was defending
|
||
himself against the rest, who hoped to share in the Prey. The Plates of Iron
|
||
fasten'd at the Bottom of the Box (for those were the strongest) preserved
|
||
the Balance while it fell, and hinder'd it from being broken on the Surface
|
||
of the Water. Every Joint of it was well grooved; and the Door did not
|
||
move on Hinges, but up and down like a Sash, which kept my Closet so
|
||
tight that very little Water came in. I got with much Difficulty out of my
|
||
Hammock, having first ventured to draw back the Slip-board on the Roof
|
||
already mentioned, contrived on Purpose to let in Air, for want of which I
|
||
found my self almost stifled.
|
||
|
||
How often did I then wish my self with my dear Glumdalclitch, from
|
||
whom one single Hour had so far divided me! And I may say, with Truth,
|
||
that in the midst of my own Misfortunes I could not forbear lamenting my
|
||
poor Nurse, the Grief she would suffer for my Loss, the Displeasure of the
|
||
Queen, and the Ruin of her Fortune. Perhaps many Travellers have not
|
||
been under greater Difficulties and Distress than I was at this Juncture,
|
||
expecting every Moment to see my Box dashed in Pieces, or at least overset
|
||
by the first violent Blast, or a rising Wave. A Breach in one single Pane of
|
||
Glass would have been immediate Death: Nor could anything have
|
||
preserved the Windows, but the strong Lettice-Wires placed on the out-side
|
||
against Accidents in Travelling. I saw the Water ooze in at several
|
||
Crannies, although the Leaks were not considerable, and I endeavoured to
|
||
stop them as well as I could. I was not able to lift up the Roof of my Closet,
|
||
which otherwise I certainly should have done, and sate on the Top of it,
|
||
where I might, at least, preserve my self some Hours longer than by being
|
||
shut up, as I may call it, in the Hold. Or if I escaped these Dangers, for a
|
||
Day or two, what could I expect but a miserable Death of Cold and
|
||
Hunger! I was four Hours under these Circumstances, expecting, and
|
||
indeed wishing, every Moment to be my last.
|
||
|
||
I have already told the Reader, that there were two strong Staples fixed
|
||
upon that Side of my Box which had no Window, and into which the
|
||
Servant who used to carry me on horseback would put a leathern Belt, and
|
||
buckle it about his Waste. Being in this disconsolate State, I heard, or at
|
||
least thought, I heard some kind of grating Noise on that Side of my Box
|
||
where the Staples were fixed, and soon after I began to fancy that the Box
|
||
was pulled, or towed along in the Sea; for I now and then felt a sort of
|
||
tugging, which made the Waves rise near the Tops of my Windows, leaving
|
||
me almost in the dark. This gave me some faint Hopes of Relief, although I
|
||
was not able to imagine how it could be brought about. I ventured to
|
||
unscrew one of my Chairs, which were always fastned to the Floor; and
|
||
having made a hard Shift to screw it down again directly under the slipping
|
||
Board that I had lately opened, I mounted on the Chair, and, putting my
|
||
Mouth as near as I could to the Hole, I called for Help in a loud Voice, and
|
||
in all the Languages I understood. I then fastned my Handkerchief to a
|
||
Stick I usually carried, and thrusting it up the Hole, waved it several Times
|
||
in the Air, that if any Boat or Ship were near, the Seamen might conjecture
|
||
some unhappy Mortal to be shut up in the Box.
|
||
|
||
I found no Effect from all I could do, but plainly perceived my Closet to
|
||
be moved along; and in the Space of an Hour, or better, that side of the
|
||
Box where the Staples were, and had no Window, struck against something
|
||
that was hard. I apprehended it to be a Rock, and found my self tossed
|
||
more than ever. I plainly heard a Noise upon the Cover of my Closet, like
|
||
that of a Cable, and the grating of it as it passed through the Ring. I then
|
||
found my self hoisted up by Degrees, at least three Foot higher than I was
|
||
before. Whereupon, I again thrust up my Stick and Handkerchief, calling
|
||
for Help till I was almost hoarse. In return to which, I heard a great Shout
|
||
repeated three Times, giving me such Transports of Joy, as are not to be
|
||
conceived but by those who feel them. I now heard a Trampling over my
|
||
Head, and somebody calling through the Hole with a loud Voice in the
|
||
English Tongue, If there be any Body below, let them speak. I answered, I
|
||
was an Englishman, drawn by ill Fortune into the greatest Calamity that
|
||
ever any Creature underwent, and begged by all that was moving, to be
|
||
delivered out of the Dungeon I was in. The Voice replied, I was safe, for
|
||
my Box was fasten'd to their Ship; and the Carpenter should immediately
|
||
come and saw an Hole in the Cover, large enough to pull me out. I
|
||
answered, that was needless, and would take up too much Time, for there
|
||
was no more to be done, but let one of the Crew put his Finger into the
|
||
Ring, and take the Box out of the Sea into the Ship, and so into the
|
||
Captain's Cabbin. Some of them upon hearing me talk so wildly, thought I
|
||
was mad; others laughed; for indeed it never came into my Head that I was
|
||
now among People of my own Stature and Strength. The Carpenter came,
|
||
and in a few Minutes sawed a Passage about four Foot square, then let
|
||
down a small Ladder, upon which I mounted, and from thence was taken
|
||
into the Ship in a very weak Condition.
|
||
|
||
The Sailors were all in Amazement, and asked me a thousand Questions,
|
||
which I had no Inclination to answer. I was equally confounded at the Sight
|
||
of so many Pigmies, for such I took them to be, after having so long
|
||
accustomed mine Eyes to the monstrous Objects I had left. But the Captain,
|
||
Mr. Thomas Wilcocks, an honest worthy Shropshire Man, observing I was
|
||
ready to faint, took me into his Cabbin, gave me a Cordial to comfort me,
|
||
and made me turn in upon his own Bed, advising me to take a little Rest, of
|
||
which I had great Need. Before I went to sleep I gave him to understand
|
||
that I had some valuable Furniture in my Box too good to be lost; a fine
|
||
Hammock, an handsome Field-Bed, two Chairs, a Table, and a Cabinet:
|
||
That my Closet was hung on all Sides, or rather quilted with Silk and
|
||
Cotton : That if he would let one of the Crew bring my Closet into his
|
||
Cabbin, I would open it there before him, and shew him my Goods. The
|
||
Captain hearing me utter these Absurdities, concluded I was raving:
|
||
However, (I suppose to pacify me,) he promised to give Order as I desired,
|
||
and going upon Deck sent some of his Men down into my Closet, from
|
||
whence (as I afterwards found) they drew up all my Goods, and stripped
|
||
off the quilting; but the Chairs, Cabinet, and Bed-sted, being screwed to the
|
||
Floor, were much damaged by the Ignorance of the Seamen, who tore them
|
||
up by Force. Then they knocked off some of the Boards for the Use of the
|
||
Ship, and when they had got all they had a mind for, let the Hulk drop into
|
||
the Sea, which by Reason of many Breaches made in the Bottom and Sides,
|
||
sunk to rights. And indeed I was glad not to have been a Spectator of the
|
||
Havock they made; because I am confident it would have sensibly touched
|
||
me, by bringing former Passages into my Mind, which I had rather forget.
|
||
|
||
I slept some Hours, but perpetually disturbed with Dreams of the Place I
|
||
had left, and the Dangers I had escaped. However, upon waking I found my
|
||
self much recovered. It was now about eight a-Clock at Night, and the
|
||
Captain ordered Supper immediately, thinking I had already fasted too
|
||
long. He entertained me with great Kindness, observing me not to look
|
||
wildly, or talk inconsistently; and when we were left alone, desired I would
|
||
give him a Relation of my Travels, and by what Accident I came to be set
|
||
adrift in that monstrous wooden Chest. He said, that about twelve a Clock
|
||
at Noon, as he was looking through his Glass, he spied it at a Distance, and
|
||
thought it was a Sail, which he had a Mind to make, being not much out of
|
||
his Course, in hopes of buying some Biscuit, his own beginning to fall
|
||
short. That upon coming nearer, and finding his Error, he sent out his
|
||
Long-Boat to discover what I was; that his Men came back in a Fright,
|
||
swearing they had seen a swimming House. That he laughed at their Folly,
|
||
and went himself in the Boat, ordering his Men to take a strong Cable
|
||
along with them. That the Weather being calm, he rowed round me several
|
||
Times, observed my Windows, and the Wire-Lattices that defended them.
|
||
That he discovered two Staples upon one Side, which was all of Boards,
|
||
without any Passage for Light. He then commanded his Men to row up to
|
||
that Side, and fastening a Cable to one of the Staples, ordered them to tow
|
||
my Chest (as they called it) towards the Ship. When it was there, he gave
|
||
Directions to fasten another Cable to the Ring fixed in the Cover, and to
|
||
raise up my Chest with Pullies, which all the Sailors were not able to do
|
||
above two or three Foot. He said, they saw my Stick and Handkerchief
|
||
thrust out of the Hole, and concluded that some unhappy Men must be shut
|
||
up in the Cavity. I asked whether he or the Crew had seen any prodigious
|
||
Birds in the Air about the Time he first discovered me. To which he
|
||
answered, that discoursing this Matter with the Sailors while I was asleep,
|
||
one of them said he had observed three Eagles flying towards the North,
|
||
but remarked nothing of their being larger than the usual Size, which I
|
||
suppose must be imputed to the great Height they were at; and he could not
|
||
guess the Reason of my Question. I then asked the Captain how far he
|
||
reckoned we might be from Land; he said, by the best Computation he
|
||
could make, we were at least an hundred Leagues. I assured him, that he
|
||
must be mistaken by almost half, for I had not left the Country from where
|
||
I came above two Hours before I dropt into the Sea. Whereupon he began
|
||
again to think that my Brain was disturbed, of which he gave me a Hint,
|
||
and advised me to go to Bed in a Cabbin he had provided. I assured him I
|
||
was well refreshed with his good Entertainment and Company, and as
|
||
much in my Senses as ever I was in my Life. He then grew serious, and
|
||
desired to ask me freely whether I were not troubled in Mind by the
|
||
Consciousness of some enormous Crime, for which I was punished at the
|
||
Command of some Prince, by exposing me in that Chest, as great Criminals
|
||
in other Countries have been forced to Sea in a leaky Vessel without
|
||
Provisions: For although he should be sorry to have taken so ill a Man into
|
||
his Ship, yet he would engage his Word to set me safe on Shore in the first
|
||
Port where we arrived. He added, that his Suspicions were much increased
|
||
by some very absurd Speeches I had delivered at first to the Sailors, and
|
||
afterwards to himself, in Relation to my Closet or Chest, as well as by my
|
||
odd Looks and Behaviour while I was at Supper.
|
||
|
||
I begged his Patience to hear me tell my Story, which I faithfully did from
|
||
the last time I left England to the Moment he first discovered me. And as
|
||
Truth always forceth its Way into rational Minds, so this honest worthy
|
||
Gentleman, who had some Tincture of Learning, and very good Sense, was
|
||
immediately convinced of my Candour and Veractiy. But further to
|
||
confirm all I had said, I entreated him to give Order that my Cabinet
|
||
should be brought, of which I had the Key in my Pocket, (for he had
|
||
already informed me how the Seamen disposed of my Closet.) I opened it
|
||
in his own Presence, and shewed him the small Collection of Rarities I
|
||
made in the Country from whence I had been so strangely delivered. There
|
||
was a Comb I had contrived out of the Stumps of the King's Beard, and
|
||
another of the same Materials, but fixed into a Paring of her Majesty's
|
||
Thumb-nail, which served for the Back. There was a Collection of Needles
|
||
and Pins from a Foot to half a Yard long: Four Wasp Stings, like Joiners
|
||
Tacks: Some Combings of the Queen's Hair: A gold Ring which one Day
|
||
she made me a Present of in a most obliging Manner, taking it from her
|
||
little Finger, and throwing it over my Head like a Collar. I desired the
|
||
Captain would please to accept this Ring in return of his Civilities, which
|
||
he absolutely refused. I shewed him a Corn that I had cut off with my own
|
||
Hand, from a Maid of Honour's Toe, it was about the Bigness of a Kentish
|
||
Pippin, and grown so hard that when I returned to England, I got it
|
||
hollowed into a Cup, and set in Silver. Lastly, I desired him to see the
|
||
Breeches I had then on, which were made of a Mouse's Skin.
|
||
|
||
I could force nothing on him but a Footman's Tooth, which I observed him
|
||
to examine with great Curiosity, and found he had a fancy for it. He
|
||
received it with Abundance of Thanks, more than such a Trifle could
|
||
deserve. It was drawn by an unskillful Surgeon in a Mistake, from one of
|
||
Glumdalclitch's Men, who was afflicted with the Tooth-ach, but it was as
|
||
sound as any in his Head. I got it cleaned, and put it into my Cabinet. It was
|
||
about a Foot long, and four Inches in Diameter.
|
||
|
||
The Captain was very well satisfied with this plain Relation I had given
|
||
him, and said, he hoped when we returned to England, I would oblige the
|
||
World by putting it in Paper, and making it publick. My Answer was, that
|
||
I thought we were already overstocked with Books of Travels: That
|
||
nothing could now pass which was not extraordinary; wherein I doubted
|
||
some Authors less consulted Truth than their own Vanity, or Interest, or
|
||
the Diversion of ignorant Readers. That my Story could contain little
|
||
besides common Events, without those ornamental Descriptions of strange
|
||
Plants, Trees, Birds, and other Animals, or of the barbarous Customs and
|
||
Idolatry of savage People, with which most Writers abound. However, I
|
||
thanked him for his good Opinion, and promised to take the Matter into my
|
||
Thoughts.
|
||
|
||
He said, he wondered at one Thing very much, which was, to hear me
|
||
speak so loud, asking me whether the King or Queen of that Country were
|
||
thick of Hearing. I told him, it was what I had been used to for above two
|
||
Years past; and that I admired as much at the Voices of him and his Men,
|
||
who seemed to me only to whisper, and yet I could hear them well enough.
|
||
But when I spoke in that Country, it was like a Man talking in the Street to
|
||
another looking out from the Top of a flteeple, unless when I was placed
|
||
on a Table, or held in any Person's Hand, I told him, I had likewise
|
||
observed another Thing, that when I first got into the Ship, and the Sailors
|
||
stood all about me, I thought they were the most little contemptible
|
||
Creatures I had ever beheld. For, indeed, while I was in that Prince's
|
||
Country, I could never endure to look in a Glass after mine Eyes had been
|
||
accustomed to such prodigious Objects, because the Comparison gave me so
|
||
despicable a Conceit of my self. The Captain said, that while we were at
|
||
Supper, he observed me look at every Thing with a sort of Wonder, and
|
||
that I often seemed hardly able to contain my Laughter, which he knew not
|
||
well how to take, but imputed it to some Disorder in my Brain. I answered,
|
||
it was very true; and I wondered how I could forbear, when I saw his
|
||
Dishes of the Size of a silver Three-pence, a Leg of Pork hardly a
|
||
Mouthful, a Cup not so big as a Nutshell; and so I went on, describing the
|
||
rest of his Houshold-stuff and Provisions after the same Manner. For
|
||
although the Queen had ordered a little Equipage of all things necessary for
|
||
me while I was in her Service, yet my Ideas were wholly taken up with
|
||
what I saw on every side of me, and I winked at my own Littleness as
|
||
People do at their own faults. The Captain understood my Raillery very
|
||
well, and merrily replied with the old English Proverb, that he doubted
|
||
mine Eyes were bigger than my Belly, for he did not observe my Stomach
|
||
so good, although I had fasted all Day; and continuing in his Mirth,
|
||
protested he would have gladly given an hundred Pounds to have seen my
|
||
Closet in the Eagle's Bill, and afterwards in its fall from so great an height
|
||
into the Sea; which would certainly have been a most astonishing Object,
|
||
worthy to have the Description of it transmitted to future Ages: And the
|
||
Comparison of Phaeton was so obvious, that he could not forbear applying
|
||
it, although I did not much admire the Conceit.
|
||
|
||
The Captain having been at Tonquin was in his return to England driven
|
||
North eastward to the Latitude of 44 Degrees, and of Longitude 143. But
|
||
meeting a Trade Wind two Days after I came on board him, we sailed
|
||
Southward a long time, and coasting New-Holland kept our Course West-
|
||
south-west, and then South-south-west till we doubled the Cape of Good-
|
||
hope. Our Voyage was very prosperous, but I shall not trouble the Reader
|
||
with a Journal of it. The Captain called in at one or two Ports and sent in
|
||
his Long-boat for Provisions and fresh Water, but I never went out of the
|
||
Ship till we came into the Downs, which was on the 3d. Day of June 1706,
|
||
about nine Months after my Escape. I offered to leave my Goods in
|
||
Security for Payment of my Freight; but the Captain protested he would
|
||
not receive one Farthing. We took kind leave of each other, and I made
|
||
him promise he would come to see me at my House in Redriff. I hired a
|
||
Horse and Guide for five Shillings, which I borrowed of the Captain.
|
||
|
||
As I was on the Road, observing the Littleness of the Houses, the Trees, the
|
||
Cattle and the People, I began to think my self in Lilliput. I was afraid of
|
||
trampling on every Traveller I met, and often called aloud to have them
|
||
stand out of the way, so that I had like to have gotten one or two broken
|
||
Heads for my impertinence.
|
||
|
||
When I came to my own House, for which I was forced to enquire, one of
|
||
the Servants opening the Door, I bent down to go in (like a Gooss under a
|
||
Gate) for fear of striking my Head. My Wife ran out to embrace me, but I
|
||
stooped lower than her Knees, thinking she could otherwise never be able
|
||
to reach my Mouth. My Daughter kneeled to ask me blessing, but I could
|
||
not see her till she arose, having been so long used to stand with my Head
|
||
and Eyes erect to above sixty Foot; and then I went to take her up with one
|
||
Hand, by the Waste. I looked down upon the Servants, and one or two
|
||
Friends who were in the House, as if they had been Pigmies, and I a Giant.
|
||
I told my Wife, she had been too thrifty, for I found she had starved
|
||
herself and her Daughter to nothing. In short, I behaved my self so
|
||
unaccountably, that they were all of the Captain's Opinion when he first
|
||
saw me, and concluded I had lost my Wits. This I mention as an Instance of
|
||
the great Power of Habit and Prejudice.
|
||
|
||
In a little time I and my Family and Friends came to a right Understanding:
|
||
But my Wife protested I should never go to Sea any more; although my
|
||
evil Destiny so ordered that she had not Power to hinder me, as the Reader
|
||
may know hereafter. In the mean time I here conclude the Second Part of
|
||
my unfortunate Voyages.
|
||
|
||
THE END OF THE SECOND PART.
|
||
|
||
PART III: A VOYAGE TO LAPUTA, BALNIBARBI, LUGGNAGG,
|
||
GLUBBDUBDRIB, AND JAPAN
|
||
|
||
[Plate III: Laputa]
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The Author sets out on his Third Voyage; is taken by Pyrates. The Malice
|
||
of a Dutchman. His Arrival at an Island. He is received into Laputa.
|
||
|
||
I HAD NOT been at home above ten Days, when Captain William
|
||
Robinson, a Cornish Man, Commander of the Hope-well, a stout Ship of
|
||
three Hundred Tuns, came to my House. I had formerly been Surgeon of
|
||
another Ship where he was Master, and a fourth Part Owner, in a Voyage
|
||
to the Levant. He had always treated me more like a Brother than an
|
||
inferior Officer; and hearing of my Arrival made me a Visit, as I
|
||
apprehended only out of Friendship, for nothing passed more than what is
|
||
usual after long Absences. But repeating his Visits often, expressing his Joy
|
||
to find me in good Health, asking whether I were now settled for Life,
|
||
adding that he intended a Voyage to the East-Indies, in two Months, at last
|
||
he plainly invited me, though with some Apololgies, to be Surgeon of the
|
||
Ship. That I should have another Surgeon under me, besides our two
|
||
Mates; that my Salary should be double to the usual Pay; and that having
|
||
experienced my Knowledge in Sea-Affairs to be at least equal to his, he
|
||
would enter into any Engagement to follow my Advice, as much as if I had
|
||
Share in the Command.
|
||
|
||
He said so many other obliging things, and I knew him to be so honest a
|
||
Man, that I could not reject his Proposal; the Thirst I had of seeing the
|
||
World, notwithstanding my past Misfortunes, continuing as violent as ever.
|
||
The only Difficulty that remained, was to persuade my Wife, whose
|
||
Consent however I at last obtained by the Prospect of Advantage she
|
||
proposed to her Children.
|
||
|
||
We set out the 5th Day of August, 1706, and arrived at Fort St. George,
|
||
the 11th of April 1707. We stayed there three Weeks to refresh our Crew,
|
||
many of whom were sick. From thence we went to Tonquin, where the
|
||
Captain resolved to continue some Time; because many of the Goods he
|
||
intended to buy were not ready, nor could he expect to be dispatched in
|
||
several Months. Therefore in hopes to defray some of the Charges he must
|
||
be at, he bought a Sloop, loaded it with several Sorts of Goods, wherewith
|
||
the Tonquinese usually trade to the neighbouring Islands; and putting
|
||
Fourteen Men on Board, whereof three were of the Country, he appointed
|
||
me Master of the Sloop, and gave me Power to traffick, while he transacted
|
||
his Affairs at Tonquin.
|
||
|
||
We had not sailed above three Days, when a great Storm arising, we were
|
||
driven five Days to the North-North-East, and then to the East; after which
|
||
we had fair Weather, but still with a pretty strong Gale from the West.
|
||
Upon the tenth Day we were chased by two Pyrates, who soon overtook us;
|
||
for my Sloop was so deep loaden, that she sailed very slow; neither were
|
||
we in a Condition to defend our selves.
|
||
|
||
We were boarded about the same Time by both the Pyrates, who entered
|
||
furiously at the Head of their Men; but finding us all prostrate upon our
|
||
Faces (for so I gave Order,) they pinioned us with strong Ropes, and
|
||
setting a Guard upon us, went to search the Sloop.
|
||
|
||
I observed among them a Dutchman, who seemed to be of some Authority,
|
||
though he were not Commander of either Ship. He knew us by our
|
||
Countenances to be Englishmen, and jabbering to us in his own Language,
|
||
swore we should be tyed Back to Back, and thrown into the Sea. I spoke
|
||
Dutch tolerably well; I told him who we were, and begged him in
|
||
consideration of our being Christians and Protestants, of neighbouring
|
||
Countries, in strict Alliance, that he would move the Captains to take some
|
||
Pity on us. This inflamed his Rage; he repeated his Threatnings, and
|
||
turning to his Companions, spoke with great Vehemence, in the Japanese
|
||
Language, as I suppose; often using the Word Christianos.
|
||
|
||
The largest of the two Pyrate Ships was commanded by a Japanese Captain,
|
||
who spoke a little Dutch, but very imperfectly. He came up to me, and
|
||
after several Questions, which I answered in great Humility, he said we
|
||
should not die. I made the Captain a very low Bow, and then turning to the
|
||
Dutchman , said, I was sorry to find more Mercy in a Heathen, than in a
|
||
Brother Christian. But I had soon Reason to repent those foolish Words;
|
||
for that malicious Reprobate, having often endeavoured in vain to persuade
|
||
both the Captains that I might be thrown into the Sea (which they would
|
||
not yield to after the promise made me, that I should not die), however
|
||
prevailed so far as to have a Punishment inflicted on me, worse in all
|
||
human Appearance than Death it self. My Men were sent by an equal
|
||
Division into both the Pyrate-Ships, and my Sloop new manned. As to my
|
||
self, it was determined that I should be set a-drift, in a small Canoe, with
|
||
Paddles and a Sail, and four Days Provisions; which last the Japanese
|
||
Captain was so kind to double out of his own Stores, and would permit no
|
||
Man to Search me. I got down into the Canoe, while the Dutchman standing
|
||
upon the Deck, loaded me with all the Curses and injurious Terms his
|
||
Language could afford.
|
||
|
||
About an Hour before we saw the Pyrates, I had taken an Observation, and
|
||
found we were in the Latitude of 46 N. and of longitude 183. When I was
|
||
at some Distance from the Pyrates, I discovered by my Pocket-Glass
|
||
several Islands to the South-East. I set up my Sail, the Wind being fair,
|
||
with a Design to reach the nearest of those Islands, which I made a Shift to
|
||
do in about three Hours. It was all rocky; however I got many Birds Eggs;
|
||
and striking Fire, I kindled some Heath and dry Sea Weed, by which I
|
||
roasted my Eggs. I eat no other Supper, being resolved to spare my
|
||
Provisions as much as I could. I passed the Night under the Shelter of a
|
||
Rock, strowing some Heath under me, and slept pretty well.
|
||
|
||
The next Day I sailed to another Island, and thence to a third and fourth,
|
||
sometimes using my Sail, and sometimes my Paddles. But not to trouble the
|
||
Reader with a particular Account of my Distresses; let it suffice that on the
|
||
5th Day, I arrived at the last Island in my Sight, which lay South-South-
|
||
East to the former.
|
||
|
||
This Island was at a greater Distance than I expected, and I did not reach it
|
||
in less than five Hours. I encompassed it almost round before I could find a
|
||
convenient Place to land in, which was a small Creek, about three Times
|
||
the Wideness of my Canoe. I found the Island to be all rocky, only a little
|
||
intermingled with Tufts of Grass and sweet smelling Herbs. I took out my
|
||
small Provisions, and after having refreshed myself, I secured the
|
||
Remainder in a Cave, whereof there were great Numbers. I gathered
|
||
plenty of Eggs upon the Rocks, and got a Quantity of dry Seaweed and
|
||
parched Grass, which I designed to kindle the next Day, and roast my Eggs
|
||
as well as I could. (For I had about me my Flint, Steel, Match, and
|
||
Burning-glass.) I lay all Night in the Cave where I had lodged my
|
||
Provisions. My Bed was the same dry Grass and Sea-weed which I intended
|
||
for Fewel. I slept very little; for the Disquiets of my Mind prevailed over
|
||
my Wearyness, and kept me awake. I considered how impossible it was to
|
||
preserve my Life, in so desolate a Place; and how miserable my End must
|
||
be. Yet I found my self so listless and desponding that I had not the Heart
|
||
to rise; and before I could get Spirits enough to creep out of my Cave, the
|
||
Day was far advanced. I walked a while among the Rocks, the Sky was
|
||
perfectly clear, and the Sun so hot, that I was forced to turn my Face from
|
||
it: When all of a Sudden it became obscured, as I thought, in a Manner
|
||
very different from what happens by the Interposition of a Cloud. I turned
|
||
back, and perceived a vast Opake Body between me and the Sun, moving
|
||
forwards towards the Island: It seemed to be about two Miles high, and hid
|
||
the Sun six or seven Minutes, but I did not observe the Air to be much
|
||
colder, or the Sky more darkned, than if I had stood under the shade of a
|
||
Mountain. As it approached nearer over the Place where I was, it appeared
|
||
to be a firm Substance, the Bottom flat, smooth, and shining very bright
|
||
from the Reflexion of the Sea below. I stood upon a Height about two
|
||
Hundred Yards from the Shoar, and saw this vast Body descending almost
|
||
to a Parallel with me, at less than an English Mile Distance. I took out my
|
||
Pocket-Perspective, and could plainly discover Numbers of People moving
|
||
up and down the Sides of it, which appeared to be sloping, but what those
|
||
People were doing, I was not able to distinguish.
|
||
|
||
The natural Love of Life gave me some inward Motions of Joy; and I was
|
||
ready to entertain a Hope, that this Adventure might some Way or other
|
||
help to deliver me from the desolate Place and Condition I was in. But, at
|
||
the same Time, the Reader can hardly conceive my Astonishment, to
|
||
behold an Island in the Air, inhabited by Men, who were able (as it should
|
||
seem) to raise or sink, or put it into a progressive Motion, as they pleased.
|
||
But not being, at that Time, in a Disposition to philosophise upon this
|
||
Phaenomenon, I rather chose to observe what Course the Island would
|
||
take; because it seemed for a while to stand still. Yet, soon after it advanced
|
||
nearer; and I could see the Sides of it, encompassed with several Gradations
|
||
of Galleries and Stairs, at certain Intervals, to descend from one to the
|
||
other. In the lowest Gallery, I beheld some People fishing with long
|
||
Angling Rods, and others looking on. I waved my Cap, (for my Hat was
|
||
long since worn out,) and my Handkerchief towards the Island; and upon
|
||
its nearer approach, I called and shouted with the utmost Strength of my
|
||
Voice; and then looking circumspectly, I beheld a Crowd gather to that
|
||
Side which was most in my View. I found by their pointing towards me
|
||
and to each other, that they plainly discovered me, although they made no
|
||
Return to my Shouting. But I could see four or five Men running in great
|
||
Haste up the Stairs to the top of the Island, who then disappeared. I
|
||
happened rightly to conjecture, that these were sent for Orders to some
|
||
Person in Authority upon this Occasion.
|
||
|
||
The Number of People increased; and in less than half an Hour the Island
|
||
was moved and raised in such a Manner, that the lowest Gallery appeared
|
||
in a Parallel of less than an Hundred Yards Distance from the Height where
|
||
I stood. I then put my self into the most supplicating Postures, and spoke in
|
||
the humblest Accent, but received no Answer. Those who stood nearest
|
||
over against me, seemed to be Persons of Distinction, as I supposed by
|
||
their Habit. They conferred earnestly with each other, looking often upon
|
||
me. At length one of them called out in a clear, polite, smooth Dialect, not
|
||
unlike in Sound to the Italian; and therefore I returned an Answer in that
|
||
Language, hoping at least that the Cadence might be more agreeable to his
|
||
Ears. Although neither of us understood the other, yet my Meaning was
|
||
easily known, for the People saw the Distress I was in.
|
||
|
||
They made Signs for me to come down from the Rock, and go towards the
|
||
Shoar, which I accordingly did; and the flying Island being raised to a
|
||
convenient Height, the Verge directly over me, a Chain was let down from
|
||
the lowest Gallery, with a Seat fastned to the Bottom, to which I fixed my
|
||
self, and was drawn up by Pullies.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The Humours and Dispositions of the Laputians described. An Account of
|
||
their Learning. Of the King and his Court. The Author's Reception there.
|
||
The Inhabitants subject to Fears and Disquietudes. An Account of the
|
||
Women.
|
||
|
||
[A]T MY ALIGHTING I was surrounded by a Crowd of People, but those
|
||
who stood nearest seemed to be of better Quality. They beheld me with all
|
||
the Marks and Circumstances of wonder; neither indeed was I much in
|
||
their Debt; having never till then seen a Race of Mortals so singular in
|
||
their Shapes, Habits, and Countenances. Their Heads were all reclined
|
||
either to the Right, or the Left; one of their Eyes turned inward, and the
|
||
other directly up to the Zenith. Their outward Garments were adorned
|
||
with the Figures of Suns, Moons, and Stars, interwoven with those of
|
||
Fiddles, Flutes, Harps, Trumpets, Guittars, Harpsichords, and many more
|
||
Instruments of Musick, unknown to us in Europe. I observed here and
|
||
there many in the Habit of Servants, with a blown Bladder fastned like a
|
||
Flail to the End of a short Stick, which they carried in their Hands. In each
|
||
Bladder was a small Quantity of dried Pease, or little Pebbles, (as I was
|
||
afterwards informed.) With these Bladders they now and then flapped the
|
||
Mouths and Ears of those who stood near them, of which Practice I could
|
||
not then conceive the Meaning. It seems the Minds of these People are so
|
||
taken up with intense Speculations, that they neither can speak, nor attend
|
||
to the Discourses of others, without being rouzed by some external Taction
|
||
upon the Organs of Speech and Hearing; for which Reason those Persons
|
||
who are able to afford it always keep a Flapper (the Original is Climenole)
|
||
in their Family, as one of their Domesticks; nor ever walk abroad or make
|
||
Visits without him. And the Business of this Officer is, when two or more
|
||
Persons are in Company, gently to strike with his Bladder the Mouth of
|
||
him who is to speak, and the right Ear of him or them to whom the
|
||
Speaker addresses himself. This Flapper is likewise employed diligently to
|
||
attend his Master in his Walks, and upon Occasion to give him a soft Flap
|
||
on his Eyes; because he is always so wrapped up in Cogitation, that he is in
|
||
manifest Danger of falling down every Precipice, and bouncing his Head
|
||
against every Post; and in the Streets, of jostling others, or being jostled
|
||
himself into the Kennel.
|
||
|
||
It was necessary to give the Reader this Information, without which he
|
||
would be at the same Loss with me, to understand the Proceedings of these
|
||
People, as they conducted me up the Stairs, to the Top of the Island, and
|
||
from thence to the Royal Palace. While we were ascending, they forgot
|
||
several Times what they were about, and left me to my self, till their
|
||
Memories were again rouzed by their Flappers; for they appeared
|
||
altogether unmoved by the Sight of my foreign Habit and Countenance, and
|
||
by the Shouts of the Vulgar, whose Thoughts and Minds were more
|
||
disengaged.
|
||
|
||
At last we entered the Palace, and proceeded into the Chamber of Presence;
|
||
where I saw the King seated on his Throne, attended on each Side by
|
||
Persons of prime Quality. Before the Throne, was a large Table filled with
|
||
Globes and Spheres, and Mathematical Instruments of all Kinds. His
|
||
Majesty took not the least Notice of us, although our Entrance were not
|
||
without sufficient Noise, by the Concourse of all Persons belonging to the
|
||
Court. But he was then deep in a Problem, and we attended at least an
|
||
Hour, before he could solve it. There stood by him on each Side, a young
|
||
Page, with Flaps in their Hands; and when they saw he was at Leisure, one
|
||
of them gently struck his Mouth, and the other his right Ear; at which he
|
||
Started like one awakened on the sudden, and looking towards me and the
|
||
Company I was in, recollected the Occasion of our coming, whereof he had
|
||
been informed before. He spoke some Words, whereupon immediately a
|
||
young Man with a flap came up to my Side, and flapped me gently on the
|
||
Right Ear; but I made Signs, as well as I could, that I had no Occasion for
|
||
such an Instrument; which, as I afterwards found, gave his Majesty and the
|
||
whole Court a very mean Opinion of my Understanding. The King, as far
|
||
as I could conjecture, asked me several Questions, and I addressed my self
|
||
to him in all the Languages I had. When it was found, that I could neither
|
||
understand nor be understood, I was conducted by the his Order to an
|
||
Apartment in his Palace, (this Prince being distinguished above all his
|
||
Predecessors for his Hospitality to Strangers, ) where two Servants were
|
||
appointed to attend me. My Dinner was brought, and four Persons of
|
||
Quality, whom I remembered to have seen very near the King's Person,
|
||
did me the Honour to dine with me. We had two Courses, of three Dishes
|
||
each. In the first Course, there was a Shoulder of Mutton, cut into an
|
||
AEquilateral Triangle; a Piece of Beef into a Rhomboides; and a Pudding
|
||
into a Cycloid. The second Course was two Ducks, trussed up into the
|
||
Form of Fiddles; Sausages and Puddings resembling Flutes and Haut-boys,
|
||
and a Breast of Veal in the Shape of a Harp. The Servants cut our Bread
|
||
into Cones, Cylinders, Parallelograms, and several other Mathematical
|
||
Figures.
|
||
|
||
While we were at Dinner, I made bold to ask the Names of several Things
|
||
in their Language; and those noble Persons, by the Assistance of their
|
||
Flappers, delighted to give me Answers, hoping to raise my Admiration of
|
||
their great Abilities, if I could be brought to converse with them. I was
|
||
soon able to call for Bread and Drink, or whatever else I wanted.
|
||
|
||
After Dinner my Company withdrew, and a Person was sent to me by the
|
||
King's Order, attended by a Flapper. He brought with him Pen, Ink, and
|
||
Paper, and three or four Books; giving me to understand by Signs, that he
|
||
was sent to teach me the Language. We sat together four Hours, in which
|
||
Time I wrote down a great Number of Words in Columns, with the
|
||
Translations over against them. I likewise made a Shift to learn several
|
||
short Sentences. For my tutor would order one of my Servants to fetch
|
||
something, to turn about, to make a Bow, to sit, or stand, or walk, and the
|
||
like. Then I took down the Sentence in Writing. He shewed me also in one
|
||
of his Books, the Figures of the Sun, Moon, and Stars, the Zodiack, the
|
||
Tropics, and Polar Circles, together with the Denominations of many
|
||
Figures of Planes and Solids. He gave me the Names and Descriptions of all
|
||
the Musical Instruments, and the general Terms of Art in playing on each
|
||
of them. After he had left me, I placed all my Words with their
|
||
Interpretations in alphabetical Order. And thus in a few Days, by the help
|
||
of a very Faithful Memory, I got some Insight into their Language.
|
||
|
||
The Word, which I interpret the Flying or Floating Island, is in the
|
||
Original Laputa; whereof I could never learn the true Etymology. Lap in
|
||
the old obsolete Language signifieth High, and Untuh a Governor; from
|
||
which they say by Corruption was derived Laputa, from Lapuntuh. But I
|
||
do not approve of this Derivation, which seems to be a little strained. I
|
||
ventured to offer to the Learned among them a Conjecture of my own, that
|
||
Laputa was quasi Lap outed; Lap signifying properly the dancing of the
|
||
Sun Beams in the Sea; and outed a Wing, which however I shall not
|
||
obtrude, but submit to the judicious Reader.
|
||
|
||
Those to whom the King had entrusted me, observing how ill I was clad,
|
||
ordered a Taylor to come next Morning, and take my Measure for a Suit of
|
||
Cloths. This Operator did his Office after a different Manner from those of
|
||
his Trade in Europe. He first took my Altitude by a Quadrant, and then
|
||
with Rule and Compasses, described the Dimensions and Out-Lines of my
|
||
whole Body; all which he entered upon Paper, and in six Days brought my
|
||
Cloths very ill made, and quite out of Shape, by happening to mistake a
|
||
Figure in the Calculation. But my Comfort was, that I observed such
|
||
Accidents very frequent, and little regarded.
|
||
|
||
During my Confinement for want of Cloaths, and by an Indisposition that
|
||
held me some Days longer, I much enlarged my Dictionary; and when I
|
||
went next to Court, was able to understand many Things the King spoke,
|
||
and to return him some Kind of Answers. His Majesty had given Orders
|
||
that the Island should move North-East and by East, to the vertical Point
|
||
over Lagado, the Metropolis of the whole Kingdom, below upon the firm
|
||
Earth. It was about Ninety Leagues distant, and our Voyage lasted four
|
||
Days and an Half. I was not in the least sensible of the progressive Motion
|
||
made in the Air by the Island. On the second Morning, about Eleven
|
||
o'Clock, the King himself in Person, attended by his Nobility, Courtiers,
|
||
and Officers, having prepared all their Musical Instruments, played on
|
||
them for three Hours without Intermission; so that I was quite stunned with
|
||
the Noise; neither could I possibly guess the Meaning, till my Tutor
|
||
informed me. He said, that the People of their Island had their Ears adapted
|
||
to hear the Musick of the Spheres, which always played at certain Periods;
|
||
and the Court was now prepared to bear their Part in whatever Instrument
|
||
they most excelled.
|
||
|
||
In our Journey towards Lagado the Capital City, his Majesty ordered that
|
||
the Island should stop over certain Towns and Villages, from whence he
|
||
might receive the Petitions of his Subjects. And to this Purpose, several
|
||
Packthreads were let down with small Weights at the Bottom. On these
|
||
Packthreads, the People strung their Petitions, which mounted up directly
|
||
like the Scraps of Paper fastned by School-boys at the End of the String
|
||
that holds their Kite. Sometimes we received wine and Victuals from
|
||
below, which were drawn up by Pullies.
|
||
|
||
The Knowledge I had in Mathematicks gave me great Assistance in
|
||
acquiring their Phraseology, which depended much upon that Science and
|
||
Musick; and in the latter I was not unskilled. Their Ideas are perpetually
|
||
conversant in Lines and Figures. If they would, for Example, praise the
|
||
Beauty of a Woman, or any other Animal, they describe it by Rhombs,
|
||
Circles, Parallelograms, Ellipses, and other Geometrical Terms; or by
|
||
Words of Art drawn from Musick, needless here to repeat. I observed in
|
||
the King's Kitchen all sorts of Mathematical and Musical Instruments, after
|
||
the Figures of which they cut up the Joynts that were served to his
|
||
Majesty's Table.
|
||
|
||
Their Houses are very ill built, the Walls bevil without one right Angle in
|
||
any Apartment; and this Defect ariseth from the Contempt they bear to
|
||
practical Geometry; which they despise as vulgar and mechanick, those
|
||
Instructions they give being too refined for the Intellectuals of their
|
||
Workmen; which occasions perpetual Mistakes. And although they are
|
||
dexterous enough upon a Piece of Paper in the Management of the Rule,
|
||
the Pencil, and the Divider, yet in the common Actions and Behaviour of
|
||
Life, I have not seen a more clumsy, awkward, and unhandy People, nor so
|
||
slow and perplexed in their Conceptions upon all other Subjects, except
|
||
those of Mathematicks and Musick. They are very bad Reasoners, and
|
||
vehemently given to Opposition, unless when they happen to be of the right
|
||
Opinion, which is seldom their Case. Imagination, Fancy, and Invention,
|
||
they are wholly Strangers to, nor have any Words in their Language by
|
||
which those Ideas can be expressed; the whole Compass of their Thoughts
|
||
and Mind, being shut up within the two forementioned Sciences.
|
||
|
||
Most of them, and especially those who deal in the Astronomical Part, have
|
||
great Faith in judicial Astrology, although they are ashamed to own it
|
||
publickly. But, what I chiefly admired, and thought altogether
|
||
unaccountable, was the strong Disposition I observed in them towards
|
||
News and Politicks, perpetually enquiring into public Affairs, giving their
|
||
Judgements in Matters of State; and passionately disputing every Inch of a
|
||
Party Opinion. I have indeed observed the same Disposition among most of
|
||
the Mathematicians I have known in Europe; although I could never
|
||
discover the least Analogy between the two Sciences; unless those People
|
||
suppose, that because the smallest Circle hath as many Degrees as the
|
||
largest, therefore the Regulation and Management of the World require no
|
||
more Abilities than the handling and turning of a Globe. But, I rather take
|
||
this Quality to spring from a very common Infirmity of human Nature,
|
||
inclining us to be more curious and conceited in Matters where we have
|
||
least Concern, and for which we are least adapted either by Study or
|
||
Nature.
|
||
|
||
These People are under continual Disquietudes, never enjoying a Minute's
|
||
Peace of Mind; and their Disturbances proceed from Causes which very
|
||
little affect the rest of Mortals. Their Apprehensions arise from several
|
||
Changes they dread in the Celestial Bodies. For Instance; that the Earth by
|
||
the continual Approaches of the Sun towards it, must in Course of Time be
|
||
absorbed or swallowed up. That the Face of the Sun will by Degrees be
|
||
encrusted with its own Effluvia, and give no more Light to the World.
|
||
That, the Earth very narrowly escaped a Brush from the Tail of the last
|
||
Comet, which would have infallibly reduced it to Ashes; and that the next,
|
||
which they have calculated for One and Thirty Years hence, will probably
|
||
destroy us. For, if in its Perihelion it should approach within a certain
|
||
Degree of the Sun, (as by their Calculations they have Reason to dread) it
|
||
will conceive a Degree of Heat ten Thousand Times more intense than that
|
||
of red hot glowing Iron; and in its Absence from the Sun, carry a blazing
|
||
Tail Ten Hundred Thousand and Fourteen Miles long; through which if the
|
||
Earth should pass at the Distance of one Hundred Thousand Miles from the
|
||
Nucleus or main Body of the Comet, it must in its Passage be set on Fire,
|
||
and reduced to Ashes. That the Sun daily spending its Rays without any
|
||
Nutriment to supply them, will at last be wholly consumed and annihilated;
|
||
which must be attended with the Destruction of this Earth, and of all the
|
||
Planets that receive their Light from it.
|
||
|
||
They are so perpetually alarmed with the Apprehensions of these and the
|
||
like impending Dangers, that they can neither sleep quietly in their Beds,
|
||
nor have any Relish for the common Pleasures or Amusements of Life.
|
||
When they meet an Acquaintance in the Morning, the first Question is
|
||
about the Sun's Health; how he looked at his Setting and Rising, and what
|
||
Hopes they have to avoid the Stroak of the approaching Comet. This
|
||
conversation they are apt to run into with the same Temper that boys
|
||
discover, in delighting to hear terrible Stories of Sprites and Hobgoblins,
|
||
which they greedily listen to, and dare not go to Bed for fear.
|
||
|
||
The Women of the Island have Abundance of Vivacity: they contemn their
|
||
Husbands, and are exceedingly fond of Strangers, whereof there is always a
|
||
considerable Number from the Continent below, attending at Court, either
|
||
upon Affairs of the several Towns and Corporations, or their own
|
||
particular Occasions; but are much despised, because they want the same
|
||
Endowments. Among these the Ladies chuse their Gallants: But the
|
||
Vexation is, that they act with too much Ease and Security; for the Husband
|
||
is always so rapt in Speculation, that the Mistress and Lover may proceed
|
||
to the greatest Familiarities before his Face, if he be but provided with
|
||
Paper and Implements, and without his Flapper at his Side.
|
||
|
||
The Wives and Daughters lament their Confinement to the Island, although
|
||
I think it the most delicious Spot of Ground in the World; and although
|
||
they live here in the greatest Plenty and Magnificence, and are allowed to
|
||
do whatever they please: They long to see the World, and take the
|
||
Diversions of the Metropolis, which they are not allowed to do without a
|
||
particular License from the King; and this is not easy to obtain, because the
|
||
People of Quality have found by frequent Experience, how hard it is to
|
||
persuade their Women to return from below. I was told, that a great Court
|
||
Lady, who had several Children, is married to the prime Minister, the
|
||
richest Subject in the Kingdom, a very graceful Person, extremely fond of
|
||
her, and lives in the finest Palace of the Island; went down to Lagado, on
|
||
the Pretense of Health, there hid herself for several Months, till the King
|
||
sent a Warrant to search for her; and she was found in an obscure Eating-
|
||
House all in rags, having pawned her Cloths to maintain an old deformed
|
||
Footman, who beat her every Day, and in whose Company she was taken
|
||
much against her Will. And although her Husband received her with all
|
||
possible Kindness, and without the least Reproach; she soon after contrived
|
||
to steal down again with all her Jewels, to the same Gallant, and has not
|
||
been heard of since.
|
||
|
||
This may perhaps pass with the Reader rather for an European or English
|
||
Story, than for one of a Country so remote. But he may please to consider,
|
||
that the Caprices of Womankind are not limited by any Climate or Nation;
|
||
and that they are much more uniform than can be easily imagined.
|
||
|
||
In about a Month's Time I had made a tolerable Proficiency in their
|
||
Language, and was able to answer most of the King's Questions, when I
|
||
had the Honour to attend him. His Majesty discovered not the least
|
||
Curiosity to enquire into the Laws, Government, History, Religion, or
|
||
Manners of the Countries where I had been; but confined his Questions to
|
||
the State of Mathematicks, and received the Account I gave him with great
|
||
Contempt and Indifference, though often rouzed by his Flapper on each
|
||
Side.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
A Ph<50>nomenon solved by modern Philosophy and Astronomy. The
|
||
Laputias great Improvements in the latter. The King's Method of
|
||
suppressing Insurrections.
|
||
|
||
I DESIRED Leave of this Prince to see the Curiosities of the Island; which
|
||
he was graciously pleased to grant, and ordered my Tutor to attend me. I
|
||
chiefly wanted to know to what Cause in Art or in Nature, it owed its
|
||
several Motions; whereof I will now give a philosophical Account to the
|
||
Reader.
|
||
|
||
The flying or floating Island is exactly circular; its Diameter 7837 Yards,
|
||
or about four Miles and an Half, and consequently contains ten Thousand
|
||
Acres. It is three Hundred Yards thick. The Bottom or under Surface,
|
||
which appears to those who view it from below, is one even regular Plate
|
||
of Adamant, shooting up to the Height of about two Hundred Yards. Above
|
||
it lye the several Minerals in their usual Order; and over all is a Coat of
|
||
rich Mould, ten or twelve Foot deep. The Declivity of the upper Surface,
|
||
from the Circumference to the Center, is the natural Cause why all the
|
||
Dews and Rains which fall upon the Island, are conveyed in small Rivulets
|
||
toward the Middle, where they are emptyed into four large Basons, each of
|
||
about Half a Mile in Circuit, and two Hundred Yards distant from the
|
||
Center. From these Basons the Water is continually exhaled by the Sun in
|
||
the Day-time, which effectually prevents their overflowing. Besides, as it is
|
||
in the Power of the Monarch to raise the Island above the Region of Clouds
|
||
and Vapors, he can prevent the falling of Dews and Rains whenever he
|
||
pleases. For the highest Clouds cannot rise above two Miles, as Naturalists
|
||
agree, at least they were never known to do so in that Country.
|
||
|
||
At the Center of the Island there is a Chasm about fifty Yards in Diameter,
|
||
from whence the Astronomers descend into a large Dome, which is
|
||
therefore called Flandona Gagnole, or the Astronomer's Cave; situated at
|
||
the Depth of an Hundred Yards beneath the upper Surface of the Adamant.
|
||
In this Cave are Twenty Lamps continually burning, which from the
|
||
Reflection of the Adamant cast a strong Light into every Part. The Place is
|
||
stored with great Variety of Sextants, Quadrants, Telescopes, Astrolabes,
|
||
and other Astronomical Instruments. But the greatest Curiosity, upon
|
||
which the Fate of the Island depends, is a Loadstone of a prodigious Size,
|
||
in Shape resembling a Weaver's Shuttle. It is in Length six Yards, and in
|
||
the thickest Part at least three Yards over. This Magnet is sustained by a
|
||
very strong Axle of Adamant passing through its Middle, upon which it
|
||
plays, and is poized so exactly that the weakest Hand can turn it. It is
|
||
hooped round with a hollow Cylinder of Adamant, four Foot deep, as
|
||
many thick, and twelve Yards in Diameter, placed horizontally, and
|
||
supported by Eight Adamantine Feet, each six Yards high. In the Middle of
|
||
the Concave Side there is a Groove Twelve Inches deep, in which the
|
||
Extremities of the Axle are lodged, and turned round as there is Occasion.
|
||
|
||
The Stone cannot be moved from its Place by any Force, because the Hoop
|
||
and its Feet are one continued Piece with that Body of Adamant which
|
||
constitutes the Bottom of the Island.
|
||
|
||
By means of this Load-stone, the Island is made to rise and fall, and move
|
||
from one Place to another. For, with respect to that Part of the Earth over
|
||
which the Monarch presides, the Stone is endued at one of its Sides with an
|
||
attractive Power, and at the other with a repulsive. Upon placing the
|
||
Magnet erect with its attracting End towards the Earth, the Island descends;
|
||
but when the repelling Extremity points downwards, the Island mounts
|
||
directly upwards. When the Position of the Stone is oblique, the Motion of
|
||
the Island is so too. For in this Magnet the Forces always act in Lines
|
||
parallel to its Direction.
|
||
|
||
[Plate 4: Balnibarbi]
|
||
|
||
By this oblique Motion the Island is conveyed to different Parts of the
|
||
Monarch's Dominions. To explain the Manner of its Progress, let A B
|
||
represent a Line drawn cross the Dominions of Balnibarbi; let the Line c d
|
||
represent the Loadstone, of which let d be the repelling End, and c the
|
||
attracting End, the Island being over C; let the Stone be placed in the
|
||
Position c d, with its repelling End downwards; then the Island will be
|
||
driven upwards obliquely towards D. When it is arrived at D, let the Stone
|
||
be turned upon its Axle till its attracting End points towards E, and then
|
||
the Island will be carried obliquely towards E; where if the Stone be again
|
||
turned upon its Axle till it stands in the Position E F, with its repelling
|
||
Point downwards, the Island will rise obliquely towards F, where by
|
||
directing the attracting End towards G, the Island may be carried to G, and
|
||
from G to H, by turning the Stone, so as to make its repelling Extremity
|
||
point directly downwards. And thus by changing the Situation of the Stone
|
||
as often as there is Occasion, the Island is made to rise and fall by Turns in
|
||
an oblique Direction; and by those alternate Risings and Fallings (the
|
||
Obliquity being not considerable), is conveyed from one Part of the
|
||
Dominions to the other.
|
||
|
||
But it must be observed, that this Island cannot move beyond the Extent of
|
||
the Dominions below; nor can it rise above the Height of four Miles. For
|
||
which the Astronomers (who have written large Systems concerning the
|
||
Stone) assign the following Reason: That the Magnetick Virtue does not
|
||
extend beyond the Distance of four Miles, and that the Mineral which acts
|
||
upon the Stone in the Bowels of the Earth, and in the Sea about six Leagues
|
||
distant from the Shoar, is not diffused through the whole Globe, but
|
||
terminated with the Limits of the King's Dominions: And it was easy from
|
||
the great Advantage of such a superior Situation, for a Prince to bring
|
||
under his Obedience whatever Country lay within the Attraction of that
|
||
Magnet.
|
||
|
||
When the Stone is put parallel to the Plane of the Horizon, the Island
|
||
standeth still; for in that Case, the Extremities of it being at equal Distance
|
||
from the Earth, act with equal Force, the one in drawing downwards, the
|
||
other in pushing upwards; and consequently no Motion can ensue.
|
||
|
||
This Load-stone is under the Care of certain Astronomers, who from Time
|
||
to Time give it such Positions as the Monarch directs. They spend the
|
||
greatest Part of their Lives in observing the celestial Bodies, which they do
|
||
by the Assistance of Glasses, far excelling ours in Goodness. For, although
|
||
their largest Telescopes do not exceed three Feet, they magnify much more
|
||
than those of a Hundred with us, and shew the Stars with greater Clearness.
|
||
This Advantage hath enabled them to extend their Discoveries much farther
|
||
than our Astronomers in Europe. They have made a Catalogue of ten
|
||
Thousand fixed Stars, whereas the largest of ours do not contain above one
|
||
third Part of that Number. They have likewise discovered two lesser Stars,
|
||
or Satellites, which revolve about Mars; whereof the innermost is distant
|
||
from the Center of the primary Planet exactly three of his Diameters, and
|
||
the outermost five; the former revolves in the space of ten Hours, and the
|
||
latter in Twenty-one and an Half; so that the Squares of their periodical
|
||
Times, are very near in the same Proportion with the Cubes of their
|
||
Distance from the Center of Mars; which evidently shews them to be
|
||
governed by the same Law of Gravitation, that influences the other
|
||
heavenly Bodies.
|
||
|
||
They have observed Ninety-three different Comets, and settled their
|
||
Periods with great Exactness. If this be true, (and they affirm it with great
|
||
Confidence) it is much to be wished that their Observations were made
|
||
publick, whereby the Theory of Comets, which at present is very lame and
|
||
defective, might be brought to the same Perfection with other Parts of
|
||
Astronomy.
|
||
|
||
The King would be the most absolute Prince in the Universe, if he could
|
||
but prevail on a Ministry to join with him, but these having their Estates
|
||
below on the Continent, and considering that the Office of a Favourite hath
|
||
a very uncertain Tenure, would never consent to the enslaving their
|
||
Country.
|
||
|
||
If any Town should engage in Rebellion or Mutiny, fall into violent
|
||
Factions, or refuse to pay the usual Tribute; the King hath two Methods of
|
||
reducing them to Obedience. The first and the mildest Course is by keeping
|
||
the Island hovering over such a Town, and the Lands about it; whereby he
|
||
can deprive them of the Benefit of the Sun and the Rain, and consequently
|
||
afflict the Inhabitants with Dearth and Diseases. And if the Crime deserve
|
||
it, they are at the same time pelted from above with great Stones, against
|
||
which they have no Defence, but by creeping into Cellars or Caves, while
|
||
the Roofs of their Houses are beaten to Pieces. But if they still continue
|
||
obstinate, or offer to raise Insurrections, he proceeds to the last Remedy,
|
||
by letting the Island drop directly upon their Heads, which makes a
|
||
universal Destruction both of Houses and Men. However, this is an
|
||
Extremity to which the Prince is seldom driven, neither indeed is he
|
||
willing, to put it in Execution; nor dare his Ministers advise him to an
|
||
Action, which as it would render them odious to the People, so it would be
|
||
a great Damage to their own Estates that lie all below; for the Island is the
|
||
King's Demesne.
|
||
|
||
But there is still indeed a more weighty Reason, why the Kings of this
|
||
Country have been always averse from executing so terrible an Action,
|
||
unless upon the utmost Necessity. For if the Town intended to be destroyed
|
||
should have in it any tall Rocks, as it generally falls out in the larger Cities;
|
||
a Situation probably chosen at first with a View to prevent such a
|
||
Catastrophe:; Or if it abound in high Spires or Pillars of Stone, a sudden
|
||
Fall might endanger the Bottom or under Surface of the Island, which,
|
||
although it consists as I have said, of one entire Adamant two hundred
|
||
Yards thick, might happen to crack by too great a Choque, or burst by
|
||
approaching too near the Fires from the Houses below; as the Backs both of
|
||
Iron and Stone will often do in our Chimneys. Of all this the People are
|
||
well apprized, and understand how far to carry their Obstinacy, where
|
||
their Liberty or Property is concerned. And the King, when he is highest
|
||
provoked, and most determined to press a City to Rubbish, orders the
|
||
Island to descend with great Gentleness, out of a Pretence of Tenderness to
|
||
his People, but indeed for fear of breaking the Adamantine Bottom; in
|
||
which Case it is the Opinion of all their Philosophers, that the Load-stone
|
||
could no longer hold it up, and the whole Mass would fall to the Ground.
|
||
|
||
[About three Years before my Arrival among them, while the King was in
|
||
his Progress over his Dominions, there happened an extraordinary
|
||
Accident which had like to have put a Period to the Fate of that Monarchy,
|
||
at least as it is now instituted. Lindalino the second City in the Kingdom
|
||
was the first his Majesty visited in his Progress. Three Days after his
|
||
Departure, the Inhabitants, who had often complained of great
|
||
Oppressions, shut the Town Gates, seized on the Governor, and with
|
||
incredible Speed and Labour erected four large Towers, one at every
|
||
Corner of the City (which is an exact Square) equal in Heigth to a strong
|
||
pointed Rock that stands directly in the Center of the City. Upon the Top of
|
||
each Tower, as well as upon the Rock, they fixed a great Loadstone, and in
|
||
case their Design should fail, they had provided a vast Quantity of the most
|
||
combustible Fewel, hoping to burst therewith the adamantine Bottom of the
|
||
Island, if the Loadstone Project should miscarry.
|
||
|
||
It was eight Months before the King had perfect Notice that the
|
||
Lindalinians were in Rebellion. He then commanded that the Island should
|
||
be wafted over the City. The People were unanimous, and had laid in Store
|
||
of Provisions, and a great River runs through the middle of the Town. The
|
||
King hovered over them several Days to deprive them of the Sun and the
|
||
Rain. He ordered many Packthreads to be let down, yet not a Person
|
||
offered to send up a Petition, but instead thereof, very bold Demands, the
|
||
Redress of all their Grievances, great Immunitys, the Choice of their own
|
||
Governor, and other like Exorbitances. Upon which his Majesty
|
||
commanded all the Inhabitants of the Island to cast great Stones from the
|
||
lower Gallery into the Town; but the Citizens had provided against this
|
||
Mischief by conveying their Persons and Effects into the four Towers, and
|
||
other strong Buildings, and Vaults under Ground.
|
||
|
||
The King being now determined to reduce this proud People, ordered that
|
||
the Island should descend gently within fourty Yards of the Top of the
|
||
Towers and Rock. This was accordingly done; but the Officers employed in
|
||
that Work found the Descent much speedier than usual, and by turning the
|
||
Loadstone could not without great Difficulty keep it in a firm Position, but
|
||
found the Island inclining to fall. They sent the King immediate
|
||
Intelligence of this astonishing Event and begged his Majesty's Permission
|
||
to raise the Island higher; the King consented, a general Council was called,
|
||
and the Officers of the Loadstone ordered to attend. One of the oldest and
|
||
expertest among them obtained leave to try an Experiment. He took a
|
||
strong Line of an hundred Yards, and the Island being raised over the
|
||
Town above the attracting Power they had felt, He fastened a Piece of
|
||
Adamant to the End of his Line, which had in it a Mixture of Iron mineral,
|
||
of the same Nature with that whereof the Bottom or lower Surface of the
|
||
Island is composed, and from the lower Gallery let it down slowly towards
|
||
the Top of the Towers. The Adamant was not descended four Yards,
|
||
before the Officer felt it drawn so strongly downward, that he could hardly
|
||
pull it back. He then threw down several small Pieces of Adamant, and
|
||
observed that they were all violently attracted by the Top of the Tower.
|
||
The same Experiment was made on the other three Towers, and on the
|
||
Rock with the same Effect.
|
||
|
||
This Incident broke entirely the King's Measures and (to dwell no longer
|
||
on other Circumstances) he was forced to give the Town their own
|
||
Conditions.
|
||
|
||
I was assured by a great Minister, that if the Island had descended so near
|
||
the Town, as not to be able to raise it self, the Citizens were determined to
|
||
fix it for ever, to kill the King and all his Servants, and entirely change the
|
||
Government.]
|
||
|
||
By a fundamental Law of this Realm, neither the King, nor either of his
|
||
two elder Sons, are permitted to leave the Island; nor the Queen, till she is
|
||
past Child-bearing.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The Author leaves Laputa, is conveyed to Balnibarbi, arrives at the
|
||
Metropolis. A Description of the Metropolis and the Country adjoining.
|
||
The Author hospitably received by a great Lord. His Conversation with
|
||
that Lord.
|
||
|
||
ALTHOUGH I CANNOT say that I was ill treated in this Island, yet I must
|
||
confess I thought my self too much neglected, not without some Degree of
|
||
Contempt. For neither Prince nor People appeared to be curious in any
|
||
Part of Knowledge, except Mathematicks and Musick, wherein I was far
|
||
their inferior, and upon that Account very little regarded.
|
||
|
||
On the other Side, after having seen all the Curiosities of the Island, I was
|
||
very desirous to leave it, being heartily weary of those People. They were
|
||
indeed excellent in two Sciences for which I have great Esteem, and
|
||
wherein I am not unversed; but at the same time so abstracted and involved
|
||
in Speculation, that I never met with such disagreeable Companions. I
|
||
conversed only with Women, Tradesmen, Flappers, and Court-Pages,
|
||
during two Months of my Abode there, by which at last I rendered my self
|
||
extremely contemptible; yet these were the only People from whom I could
|
||
ever receive a reasonable Answer.
|
||
|
||
I had obtained by hard Study a good Degree of Knowledge in their
|
||
Language: I was weary of being confined to an Island where I received so
|
||
little Countenance; and resolved to leave it with the first Opportunity.
|
||
|
||
There was a great Lord at Court, nearly related to the King, and for that
|
||
Reason alone used with respect. He was universally reckoned the most
|
||
ignorant and stupid Person among them. He had performed many eminent
|
||
services for the Crown, had great natural and acquired Parts, adorned with
|
||
Integrity and Honour, but so ill an Ear for Musick, that his Detractors
|
||
reported he had been often known to beat Time in the wrong Place; neither
|
||
could his Tutors without extreme Difficulty teach him to demonstrate the
|
||
most easy Proposition in the Mathematicks. He was pleased to shew me
|
||
many Marks of Favour, often did me the Honour of a Visit, desired to be
|
||
informed in the Affairs of Europe, the Laws and Customs, the Manners
|
||
and Learning of the several Countries where I had travelled. He listened to
|
||
me with great Attention, and made very wise Observations on all I spoke.
|
||
He had two Flappers attending him for State, but never made use of them
|
||
except at Court, and in Visits of Ceremony; and would always command
|
||
them to withdraw when we were alone together.
|
||
|
||
I entreated this illustrious Person to intercede in my Behalf with his
|
||
Majesty for Leave to depart; which he accordingly did, as he was pleased to
|
||
tell me, with Regret: For, indeed he had made me several Offers very
|
||
advantageous, which however I refused with Expressions of the highest
|
||
Acknowledgment.
|
||
|
||
On the 16th Day of February, I took Leave of his Majesty and the Court.
|
||
The King made me a Present to the Value of about two Hundred Pounds
|
||
English; and my Protector his Kinsman as much more, together with a
|
||
Letter of Recommendation to a Friend of his in Lagado, the Metropolis:
|
||
The Island being then hovering over a Mountain about two Miles from it, I
|
||
was let down from the lowest Gallery, in the same Manner as I had been
|
||
taken up.
|
||
|
||
The Continent, as far as it is subject to the Monarch of the Flying Island,
|
||
passeth under the general Name of Balnibarbi; and the Metropolis, as I said
|
||
before, is called Lagado. I felt some little Satisfaction in finding my self on
|
||
firm Ground. I walked to the City without any Concern, being clad like
|
||
one of the Natives, and sufficiently instructed to converse with them. I soon
|
||
found out the Person's House to whom I was recommended; presented my
|
||
Letter from his Friend the Grandee in the Island, and was received with
|
||
much Kindness. This great Lord, whose Name was Munodi, ordered me an
|
||
Apartment in his own House, where I continued during my Stay, and was
|
||
entertained in a most hospitable Manner.
|
||
|
||
The next Morning after my Arrival, he took me in his Chariot to see the
|
||
Town, which is about half the Bigness of London, but the Houses very
|
||
strangely built, and most of them out of Repair. The People in the Streets
|
||
walked fast, looked wild, their Eyes fixed, and were generally in Rags. We
|
||
passed through one of the Town Gates, and went about three Miles into the
|
||
Country, where I saw many Labourers working with several Sorts of Tools
|
||
in the Ground, but he was not able to conjecture what they were about;
|
||
neither did I observe any Expectation either of Corn or Grass, although the
|
||
Soil appeared to be excellent. I could not forbear admiring at these odd
|
||
Appearances both in Town and Country; and I made bold to desire my
|
||
Conductor, that he would be pleased to explain to me what could be meant
|
||
by so many busy Heads, Hands, and Faces, both in the Streets and the
|
||
Fields, because I did not discover any good Effects they produced; but on
|
||
the contrary, I never knew a Soil so unhappily cultivated, Houses so ill
|
||
contrived and so ruinous, or a People whose Countenances and Habit
|
||
expressed so much Misery and Want.
|
||
|
||
This Lord Munodi was a Person of the first Rank, and had been some
|
||
Years Governor of Lagado; but by a Cabal of Ministers was discharged for
|
||
Insufficiency. However, the King treated him with Tenderness, as a well-
|
||
meaning Man, but of a low contemptible Understanding.
|
||
|
||
When I gave that free Censure of the Country and its Inhabitants, he made
|
||
no further Answer than by telling me, that I had not been long enough
|
||
among them to form a Judgement: and that the different Nations of the
|
||
World had different Customs; with other common Topicks to the same
|
||
Purpose. But when we returned to his Palace, he asked me how I liked the
|
||
Building, what Absurdities I observed, and what Quarrel I had with the
|
||
Dress or Looks of his Domesticks. This he might safely do; because every
|
||
Thing about him was magnificent, regular, and polite. I answered, that his
|
||
Excellency's Prudence, Quality, and Fortune, had exempted him from
|
||
those Defects which Folly and Beggary had produced in others. He said, if
|
||
I would go with him to his Country House, about Twenty Miles distant,
|
||
where his Estate lay, there would be more Leisure for this Kind of
|
||
Conversation. I told his Excellency that I was entirely at his Disposal; and
|
||
accordingly we set out next Morning.
|
||
|
||
During our Journey, he made me observe the several Methods used by
|
||
Farmers in managing their Lands; which to me were wholly unaccountable:
|
||
For except in some very few Places, I could not discover one Ear of Corn,
|
||
or Blade of Grass. But, in three Hours travelling, the Scene was wholly
|
||
altered; we came into a most beautiful Country; Farmers Houses at small
|
||
Distances, neatly built, the Fields enclosed, containing Vineyards,
|
||
Corngrounds, and Meadows. Neither do I remember to have seen a more
|
||
delightful Prospect. His Excellency observed my Countenance to clear up;
|
||
he told me with a Sigh that there his Estate began, and would continue the
|
||
same till we should come to his House. That his Countrymen ridiculed and
|
||
despised him for managing his Affairs no better, and for setting so ill an
|
||
Example to the Kingdom; which however was followed by very few, such
|
||
as were old, and wilful, and weak like himself.
|
||
|
||
We came at length to the House, which was indeed a noble Structure, built
|
||
according to the best Rules of ancient Architecture. The Fountains,
|
||
Gardens, Walks, Avenues, and Groves were all disposed with exact
|
||
Judgement and Taste. I gave due Praises to every Thing I saw, whereof his
|
||
Excellency took not the least Notice till after Supper; when, there being no
|
||
third Companion, he told me with a very melancholy Air, that he doubted
|
||
he must thrown down his Houses in Town and Country, to rebuild them
|
||
after the present Mode; destroy all his Plantations, and cast others into such
|
||
a Form as modern Usage required; and give the same Directions to all his
|
||
Tenants, unless he would submit to incur the Censure of Pride, Singularity,
|
||
Affectation, Ignorance, Caprise; and perhaps increase his Majesty's
|
||
Displeasure.
|
||
|
||
That the Admiration I appeared to be under, would cease or diminish when
|
||
he had informed me of some Particulars, which probably I never heard of
|
||
at Court, the People there being too much taken up in their own
|
||
Speculations, to have Regard to what passed here below.
|
||
|
||
The Sum of his Discourse was to this Effect. That about Forty Years ago,
|
||
certain Persons went up to Laputa, either upon Business or Diversion; and
|
||
after five Months Continuance came back with a very little Smattering in
|
||
Mathematicks, but full of Volatile Spirits acquired in that Airy Region.
|
||
That these Persons upon their Return, began to dislike the Management of
|
||
every Thing below; and fell into Schemes of putting all Arts, Sciences,
|
||
Languages, and Mechanicks upon a new Foot. To this End they procured a
|
||
Royal Patent for erecting an Academy of PROJECTORS in Lagado: And
|
||
the Humour prevailed so strongly among the People, that there is not a
|
||
Town of any Consequence in the Kingdom without such an Academy. In
|
||
these Colleges, the Professors contrive new Rules and Methods of
|
||
Agriculture and Building, and new Instruments and Tools for all Trades
|
||
and Manufactures, whereby, as they undertake, one Man shall do the Work
|
||
of Ten; a Palace may be built in a Week, of Materials so durable as to last
|
||
for ever without repairing. All the Fruits of the Earth shall come to
|
||
Maturity at whatever Season we think fit to chuse, and increase an Hundred
|
||
Fold more than they do at present; with innumerable other happy
|
||
Proposals. The only Inconvenience is, that none of these Projects are yet
|
||
brought to Perfection; and in the mean time, the whole Country lies
|
||
miserably waste, the Houses in Ruins, and the People without Food or
|
||
Cloaths. By all which, instead of being discouraged, they are Fifty Times
|
||
more violently bent upon prosecuting their Schemes, driven equally on by
|
||
Hope and Despair: That, as for himself, being not of an enterprizing Spirit,
|
||
he was content to go on in the old Forms; to live in the Houses his
|
||
Ancestors had built, and act as they did in every Part of Life without
|
||
Innovation. That, some few other Persons of Quality and Gentry had done
|
||
the same; but were looked on with an eye of Contempt and ill Will, as
|
||
enemies to Art, Ignorant, and ill Commonwealthmen, preferring their own
|
||
Ease and Sloth before the general Improvement of their Country.
|
||
|
||
His Lordship added, that he would not by any further Particulars prevent
|
||
the Pleasure I should certainly take in viewing the grand Academy, whither
|
||
he was resolved I should go. He only desired me to observe a ruined
|
||
Building upon the Side of a Mountain about three Miles distant, of which
|
||
he gave me this Account. That he had a very convenient Mill within Half a
|
||
Mile of his House, turned by a Current from a large River, and sufficient
|
||
for his own Family as well as a great Number of his Tenants. That, about
|
||
seven Years ago, a Club of those Projectors came to him with Proposals to
|
||
destroy this Mill, and build another on the Side of that Mountain, on the
|
||
long Ridge whereof a long Canal must be cut for a Repository of Water, to
|
||
be conveyed up by Pipes and Engines to supply the Mill: Because the Wind
|
||
and Air upon a Height agitated the Water, and thereby made it fitter for
|
||
Motion: And because the Water descending down a Declivity would turn
|
||
the Mill with half the Current of a River whose Course is more upon a
|
||
Level. He said, that being then not very well with the Court, and pressed by
|
||
many of his Friends, he complyed with the Proposal; and after employing
|
||
an Hundred Men for two Years, the Work miscarryed, the Projectors went
|
||
off, laying the Blame entirely upon him; railing at him ever since, and
|
||
putting others upon the same Experiment, with equal Assurance of Success,
|
||
as well as equal Disappointment.
|
||
|
||
In a few Days we came back to Town; and his Excellency, considering the
|
||
bad Character he had in the Academy, would not go with me himself, but
|
||
recommended me to a Friend of his to bear me Company thither. My Lord
|
||
was pleased to represent me as a great Admirer of Projects, and a Person
|
||
of much Curiosity and easy Belief; which indeed was not without Truth,
|
||
for I had my self been a Sort of Projector in my younger Days.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The Author permitted to see the grand Academy of Lagado. The Academy
|
||
largely described. The Arts wherein the Professors employ themselves.
|
||
|
||
THIS ACADEMY is not an entire single Building, but a Continuation of
|
||
several Houses on both Sides of a Street; which growing waste, was
|
||
purchased and applyed to that Use.
|
||
|
||
I was received very kindly by the Warden, and went for many Days to the
|
||
Academy. Every Room hath in it one or more Projectors; and I believe I
|
||
could not be in fewer than five Hundred Rooms.
|
||
|
||
The first Man I saw was of a meager Aspect, with sooty Hands and Face,
|
||
his Hair and Beard long, ragged and singed in several Places. His Cloathes,
|
||
Shirt, and Skin were all of the same Colour. He had been Eight Years upon
|
||
a Project for extracting Sun-Beams out of Cucumbers, which were to be
|
||
put into Vials hermetically sealed, and let out to warm the Air in raw
|
||
inclement Summers. He told me he did not doubt in Eight Years more he
|
||
should be able to supply the Governors Gardens with Sun-shine at a
|
||
reasonable Rate; but he complained that his stock was low, and intreated me
|
||
to give him something as an Encouragement to Ingenuity, especially since
|
||
this had been a very dear Season for Cucumbers. I made him a small
|
||
Present, for my Lord had furnished me with Money on Purpose, because
|
||
he knew their Practice of begging from all who go to see them.
|
||
|
||
I went into another Chamber, but was ready to hasten back, being almost
|
||
overcome with a horrible Stink. My Conductor pressed me forward,
|
||
conjuring me in a Whisper to give no Offence, which would be highly
|
||
resented; and therefore I durst not so much as stop my Nose. The Projector
|
||
of this Cell was the most ancient Student of the Academy. His Face and
|
||
Beard were of a pale Yellow; his Hands and Clothes daubed over with
|
||
Filth. When I was presented to him, he gave me a close Embrace (a
|
||
Compliment I could well have excused.) His Employment from his first
|
||
coming into the Academy, was an Operation to reduce human Excrement
|
||
to its original Food, by separating the several Parts, removing the Tincture
|
||
which it receives from the Gall, making the Odour exhale, and scumming
|
||
off the Saliva. He had a weekly Allowance from the Society, of a Vessel
|
||
filled with human Ordure about the Bigness of a Bristol Barrel.
|
||
|
||
I saw another at work to calcine Ice into Gunpowder; who likewise shewed
|
||
me a Treatise he had written concerning the Malleability of Fire, which he
|
||
intended to publish.
|
||
|
||
There was a most ingenious Architect who had contrived a new Method for
|
||
building Houses, by beginning at the Roof, and working downwards to the
|
||
Foundation; which he justified to me by the like Practice of those two
|
||
prudent Insects, the Bee and the Spider.
|
||
|
||
There was a Man born blind, who had several Apprentices in his own
|
||
Condition: Their Employment was to mix Colours for Painters, which
|
||
their Master taught them to distinguish by feeling and smelling. It was
|
||
indeed my Misfortune to find them at that Time not very perfect in their
|
||
Lessons; and the Professor himself happened to be generally mistaken: This
|
||
Artist is much encouraged and esteemed by the whole Fraternity.
|
||
|
||
In another Apartment I was highly pleased with a Projector, who had
|
||
found a Device of plowing the Ground with Hogs, to save the Charges of
|
||
Plows, Cattle, and Labour. The Method in this: In an Acre of Ground you
|
||
bury at six Inches Distance, and eight deep, a Quantity of Acorns, Dates,
|
||
Chestnuts, and other Maste or Vegetables whereof these Animals are
|
||
fondest; then you drive six Hundred or more of them into the Field, where
|
||
in a few Days they will root up the whole Ground in search of their Food,
|
||
and make it fit for sowing, at the same time manuring it with their Dung. It
|
||
is true, upon Experiment they found the Charge and Trouble very great,
|
||
and they had little or no Crop. However, it is not doubted that this
|
||
Invention may be capable of great Improvement.
|
||
|
||
I went into another Room, where the Walls and Ceiling were all hung
|
||
round with Cobwebs, except a narrow passage for the Artist to go in and
|
||
out. At my Entrance he called aloud to me not to disturb his Webs. He
|
||
lamented the fatal Mistake the World had been so long in of using Silk-
|
||
Worms, while we had such plenty of domestick Insects, who infinitely
|
||
excelled the Former, because they understood how to weave as well as spin.
|
||
And he proposed farther, that by employing Spiders, the Charge of dying
|
||
Silks should be wholly saved; whereof I was fully convinced when he
|
||
shewed me a vast Number of Flies most beautifully coloured, wherewith he
|
||
fed his Spiders; assuring us, that the Webs would take a Tincture from
|
||
them; and as he had them of all Hues, he hoped to fit every Body's Fancy,
|
||
as soon as he could find proper Food for the Flies, of certain Gums, Oyls,
|
||
and other glutinous Matter to give a Strength and Consistence to the
|
||
Threads.
|
||
|
||
There was an Astronomer who had undertaken to place a Sun-Dial upon
|
||
the great Weather-Cock on the Town-House, by adjusting the annual and
|
||
diurnal Motions of the Earth and Sun, so as to answer and coincide with all
|
||
accidental Turnings of the Wind.
|
||
|
||
I was complaining of a small fit of the Cholick; upon which my Conductor
|
||
led me into a Room, where a great Physician resided, who was famous for
|
||
curing that Disease by contrary Operations from the same Instrument. He
|
||
had a large Pair of Bellows with a long slender Muzzle of Ivory. This he
|
||
conveyed eight Inches up the Anus, and drawing in the Wind, he affirmed
|
||
he could make the Guts as lank as a dried Bladder. But when the Disease
|
||
was more stubborn and violent, he let in the Muzzle while the Bellows
|
||
were full of Wind, which he discharged into the Body of the Patient, then
|
||
withdrew the Instrument to replenish it, clapping his Thumb strongly
|
||
against the Orifice of the Fundament; and this being repeated three or four
|
||
Times, the adventitious Wind would rush out, bringing the noxious along
|
||
with it (like Water put into a Pump), and the Patient recover. I saw him try
|
||
both Experiments upon a Dog, but could not discern any Effect from the
|
||
former. After the latter, the Animal was ready to burst, and made so
|
||
violent a Discharge, as was very offensive to me and my Companions. The
|
||
Dog died on the Spot, and we left the Doctor endeavouring to recover him
|
||
by the same Operation.
|
||
|
||
I visited many other Apartments, but shall not trouble my Reader with all
|
||
the Curiosities I observed, being studious of Brevity.
|
||
|
||
I had hitherto seen only one side of the Academy, the other being
|
||
appropriated to the Advancers of speculative Learning, of which I shall say
|
||
something when I have Mentioned one illustrious Person more, who is
|
||
called among them the universal Artist. He told us he had been thirty Years
|
||
employing his Thoughts for the Improvement of human Life. He had two
|
||
large Rooms full of wonderful Curiosities, and fifty Men at work. Some
|
||
were condensing Air into a dry tangible Substance, by extracting the Nitre,
|
||
and letting the Aqueous or fluid Particles percolate; others softening
|
||
Marble for Pillows and Pincushions; others petrifying the Hoofs of a living
|
||
Horse to preserve them from foundring. The Artist himself was at that
|
||
time busy upon two great Designs; the first, to sow Land with Chaff,
|
||
wherein he affirmed the true seminal Virtue to be contained, as he
|
||
Demonstrated by several Experiments which I was not skilful enough to
|
||
comprehend. The other was, by a certain Composition of Gums, Minerals,
|
||
and Vegetables outwardly applied, to prevent the Growth of Wool upon
|
||
two young Lambs; and he hoped in a reasonable Time to propagate the
|
||
Breed of naked Sheep all over the Kingdom.
|
||
|
||
We crossed a Walk to the other Part of the Academy, where, as I have
|
||
already said, the Projectors in speculative Learning resided.
|
||
|
||
The first Professor I saw was in a very large Room, with forty Pupils
|
||
about him. After Salutation, observing me to look earnestly upon a Frame,
|
||
which took up the greatest part of both the Length and Breadth of the
|
||
Room, he said perhaps I might wonder to see him employed in a Project
|
||
for improving speculative Knowledge by practical and mechanical
|
||
Operations. But the World would soon be sensible of its Usefulness, and he
|
||
flattered himself that a more noble exalted Thought never sprung in any
|
||
other Man's Head. Every one knew how laborious the usual Method is of
|
||
attaining to Arts and Sciences; whereas by his Contrivance, the most
|
||
ignorant Person at a reasonable Charge, and with a little bodily Labour,
|
||
may write Books in Philosophy, Poetry, Politicks, Law, Mathematicks and
|
||
Theology, without the least Assistance from Genius or Study. He then led
|
||
me to the Frame, about the Sides whereof all his Pupils stood in Ranks. It
|
||
was twenty Foot Square, placed in the middle of the Room. The Superficies
|
||
was composed of several bits of Wood, about the bigness of a Dye, but
|
||
some larger than others. They were all linked together by slender Wires.
|
||
These bits of Wood were covered on every Square with Paper pasted on
|
||
them, and on these Papers were written all the Words of their Language, in
|
||
their several Moods, Tenses, and Declensions, but without any Order. The
|
||
Professor then desired me to observe, for he was going to set his Engine at
|
||
Work. The Pupils at his Command took each of them hold of an Iron
|
||
Handle, whereof there were fourty fixed round the Edges of the Frame,
|
||
and giving them a sudden turn, the whole Disposition of the Words was
|
||
entirely changed. He then commanded six and thirty of the Lads to read the
|
||
several Lines softly as they appeared upon the Frame; and where they
|
||
found three or four Words together that might make part of a Sentence,
|
||
they dictated to the four remaining Boys who were Scribes. This Work was
|
||
repeated three or four Times, and at every turn the Engine was so
|
||
contrived that the Words shifted into new Places, as the Square bits of
|
||
Wood moved upside down.
|
||
|
||
[Plate 5: The Literary Engine]
|
||
|
||
Six Hours a-day the young Students were employed in this Labour, and the
|
||
Professor shewed me several Volumes in large Folio already collected, of
|
||
broken Sentences, which he intended to piece together, and out of those
|
||
rich Materials to give the World a compleat Body of all Arts and Sciences;
|
||
which however might be still improved, and much expedited, if the Publick
|
||
would raise a Fund for making and employing five hundred such Frames in
|
||
Lagado, and oblige the Managers to contribute in common their several
|
||
Collections.
|
||
|
||
He assured me, that this Invention had employed all his Thoughts from his
|
||
Youth, that he had emptyed the whole Vocabulary into his Frame, and
|
||
made the strictest Computation of the general Proportion there is in Books
|
||
between the Numbers of Particles, Nouns, and Verbs, and other Parts of
|
||
Speech.
|
||
|
||
I made my humblest Acknowledgement to this illustrious Person for his
|
||
great Communicativeness, and promised if ever I had the good Fortune to
|
||
return to my Native Country, that I would do him Justice, as the sole
|
||
Inventer of this wonderful Machine; the Form and Contrivance of which I
|
||
desired Leave to delineate upon Paper, as in the Figure here annexed. I told
|
||
him, although it were the Custom of our Learned in Europe to steal
|
||
Inventions from each other, who had thereby at least this Advantage, that it
|
||
became a Controversy which was the right Owner, yet I would take such
|
||
Caution, that he should have the Honour entire without a Rival.
|
||
|
||
We next went to the School of Languages, where three Professors sate in
|
||
Consultation upon improving that of their own country.
|
||
|
||
The first Project was to shorten Discourse by cutting Polysyllables into
|
||
one, and leaving out Verbs and Participles, because in reality all things
|
||
imaginable are but Nouns.
|
||
|
||
The other, was a Scheme for entirely abolishing all Words whatsoever; and
|
||
this was urged as a great Advantage in Point of Health as well as Brevity.
|
||
For it is plain, that every Word we speak is in some Degree a Diminution
|
||
of our Lungs by Corrosion, and consequently contributes to the shortning
|
||
of our Lives. An Expedient was therefore offered, that since Words are
|
||
only Names for Things, it would be more convenient for all Men to carry
|
||
about them, such Things as were necessary to express the particular
|
||
Business they are to discourse on. And this Invention would certainly have
|
||
taken Place, to the great Ease as well as Health of the Subject, if the
|
||
Women in conjunction with the Vulgar and Illiterate had not threatned to
|
||
raise a Rebellion, unless they might be allowed the Liberty to speak with
|
||
their Tongues, after the manner of their Ancestors; such constant
|
||
irreconcilable Enemies to Science are the common People. However, many
|
||
of the most Learned and Wise adhere to the New Scheme of expressing
|
||
themselves by Things, which hath only this Inconvenience attending it, that
|
||
if a Man's Business be very great, and of various kinds, he must be obliged
|
||
in Proportion to carry a greater bundle of Thingsupon his Back, unless he
|
||
can afford one or two strong Servants to attend him. I have often beheld
|
||
two of those Sages almost sinking under the Weight of their Packs, like
|
||
Pedlars among us; who, when they met in the Streets, would lay down their
|
||
Loads, open their Sacks, and hold Conversation for an Hour together; then
|
||
put up their Implements, help each other to resume their Burthens, and
|
||
take their Leave.
|
||
|
||
But for short Conversations a Man may carry Implements in his Pockets
|
||
and under his Arms, enough to supply him, and in his House he cannot be
|
||
at a loss: Therefore the Room where Company meet who practise this Art,
|
||
is full of all Things ready at Hand, requisite to furnish Matter for this kind
|
||
of artificial Converse.
|
||
|
||
Another great Advantage proposed by this Invention, was that it would
|
||
serve as a Universal Language to be understood in all civilized Nations,
|
||
whose Goods and Utensils are generally of the same kind, or nearly
|
||
resembling, so that their Uses might easily be comprehended. And thus
|
||
Embassadors would be qualified to treat with foreign Princes or Ministers
|
||
of State to whose Tongues they were utter Strangers.
|
||
|
||
I was at the Mathematical School, where the Master taught his Pupils after
|
||
a Method scarce imaginable to us in Europe. The Proposition and
|
||
Demonstration were fairly written on a thin Wafer, with ink composed of a
|
||
Cephalick Tincture. This the Student was to swallow upon a fasting
|
||
Stomach, and for three Days following eat nothing but Bread and Water.
|
||
As the Wafer digested, the Tincture mounted to his Brain, bearing the
|
||
Proposition along with it. But the Success hath not hitherto been
|
||
answerable, partly by some Error in the Quantum or Composition, and
|
||
partly by the Perverseness of Lads, to whom this Bolus is so nauseous, that
|
||
they generally steal aside, and discharge it upwards before it can operate,
|
||
neither have they been yet persuaded to use so long an Abstinence as the
|
||
Prescription required.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
A further Account of the Academy. The Author proposes some
|
||
Improvements which are honourably received.
|
||
|
||
IN THE SCHOOL of Political Projectors I was but ill entertained, the
|
||
Professors appearing in my Judgement wholly out of their Senses, which is
|
||
a Scene that never fails to make me melancholy. These unhappy People
|
||
were proposing Schemes for persuading Monarchs to chuse Favourites
|
||
upon the Score of their Wisdom, Capacity, and Virtue; of teaching
|
||
Ministers to consult the Publick Good; of rewarding Merit, great Abilities,
|
||
eminent Services; of instructing Princes to know their true Interest by
|
||
placing it on the same Foundation with that of their People: Of chusing for
|
||
Employments Persons qualified to exercise them; with many other wild
|
||
impossible Chimaeras, that never entred before into the heart of Man to
|
||
conceive, and confirmed in me the old Observation, that there is nothing so
|
||
extravagant and irrational which some Philosophers have not maintained
|
||
for Truth.
|
||
|
||
But, however I shall so far do Justice to this Part of the Academy, as to
|
||
acknowledge that all of them were not so visionary. There was a most
|
||
Ingenious Doctor who seemed to be perfectly versed in the whole Nature
|
||
and System of Government. This illustrious Person had very usefully
|
||
employed his Studies in finding out effectual Remedys for all Diseases and
|
||
Corruptions, to which the several kinds of publick Administration are
|
||
subject by the Vices or Infirmities of those who govern, as well as by the
|
||
Licentiousness of those who are to obey. For instance; whereas all Writers
|
||
and Reasoners have agreed, that there is a strict universal Resemblance
|
||
between the Natural and the Politcal Body; can there be anything more
|
||
evident, than that the Health of both must be preserved, and the Diseases
|
||
cured by the same Prescriptions? It is allowed that Senates and great
|
||
Councils are often troubled with redundant, ebullient, and other peccant
|
||
Humours, with many Diseases of the Head, and more of the Heart; with
|
||
strong Convulsions, with grievous Contractions of the Nerves and Sinews
|
||
in both Hands, but especially the Right: With Spleen, Flatus, Vertigos, and
|
||
Deliriums; with Scrophulous Tumours full of f<>tid purulent Matter; with
|
||
sower frothy Ructations, with Canine Appetites and crudeness of Digestion,
|
||
besides many others needless to mention. This Doctor therefore proposed,
|
||
that upon the Meeting of a Senate, certain Physicians should attend at the
|
||
three first Days of their sitting, and at the Close of each day's Debate, feel
|
||
the Pulses of every Senator; after which having maturely considered, and
|
||
consulted upon the Nature of the several Maladies, and the Methods of
|
||
Cure, they should on the fourth Day return to the Senate House, attended
|
||
by their Apothecaries stored with proper Medicines, and before the
|
||
Members sate, administer to each of them Lenitives, Aperitives,
|
||
Abstersives, Currosives, Restringents, Palliatives, Laxatives, Cephalalgicks,
|
||
Ictericks, Apophlegmaticks, Acousticks, as their several Cases required,
|
||
and according as these Medicines should operate, repeat, alter, or omit
|
||
them at the next Meeting.
|
||
|
||
This Project could not be of any great Expense to the Publick, and would
|
||
in my poor Opinion, be of much Use for the Dispatch of Business in those
|
||
Countries where Senates have any share in the Legislative Power; beget
|
||
Unanimity, shorten Debates, open a few Mouths which are now closed, and
|
||
close many more which are now open; curb the Petulancy of the Young,
|
||
and correct the Positiveness of the Old; rouze the Stupid, and damp the
|
||
Pert.
|
||
|
||
Again, Because it is a general Complaint that the Favourites of Princes are
|
||
troubled with short and weak Memories; the same Doctor proposed, that
|
||
whoever attended a First Minister, after having told his business with the
|
||
utmost Brevity, and in the plainest Words; should at his Departure give the
|
||
said Minister a Tweak by the Nose, or a kick in the Belly, or tread on his
|
||
Corns, or lug him thrice by both Ears, or run a Pin into his Breech, or
|
||
pinch his Arm black and blew, to prevent Forgetfulness: and at every
|
||
Levee Day repeat the same Operation, till the Business were done or
|
||
absolutely refused.
|
||
|
||
He likewise directed, that every Senator in the great Council of a Nation,
|
||
after he had delivered his Opinion, and argued in the Defence of it, should
|
||
be obliged to give his Vote directly contrary; because if that were done, the
|
||
Result would infallibly terminate in the Good of the Publick.
|
||
|
||
When Parties in a State are violent, he offered a wonderful Contrivance to
|
||
reconcile them. The Method is this. You take an Hundred Leaders of each
|
||
Party, you dispose of them into Couples of such whose Heads are nearest of
|
||
a size; then let two nice operators saw off the Occiput of each Couple at the
|
||
same time, in such a manner that the Brain may be equally divided. Let the
|
||
Occiputs thus cut off be interchanged, applying each to the Head of his
|
||
opposite Party-man. It seems indeed to be a Work that requireth some
|
||
exactness, but the Professor assured us, that if it were dexterously
|
||
performed, the Cure would be infallible. For he argued thus; that the two
|
||
half Brains being left to debate the Matter between themselves within the
|
||
space of one Scull, would soon come to a good Understanding, and produce
|
||
that Moderation, as well as Regularity of Thinking, so much to be wished
|
||
for in the Heads of those who imagine they come into the World only to
|
||
watch and govern its Motion: And as to the difference of Brains in
|
||
Quantity or Quality, among those who are Directors in Faction; the Doctor
|
||
assured us from his own knowledge, that it was a perfect Trifle.
|
||
|
||
I heard a very warm Debate between two Professors, about the most
|
||
commodious and effectual Ways and Means of raising Money without
|
||
grieving the Subject. The first affirmed the justest Method would be to lay
|
||
a certain Tax upon Vices and Folly, and the Sum fixed upon every Man, to
|
||
be rated after the fairest Manner by a Jury of his Neighbours. The second
|
||
was of an Opinion directly contrary, to Tax those Qualities of Body and
|
||
Mind for which Men chiefly value themselves, the Rate to be more or less
|
||
according to the Degrees of excelling, the decision whereof should be left
|
||
entirely to their own Breast. The highest Tax was upon Men who are the
|
||
greatest Favourites of the other Sex, and the Assessments according to the
|
||
Number and Natures of the Favours they have received; for which they are
|
||
allowed to be their own Vouchers. Wit, Valour, and Politeness were
|
||
likewise proposed to be largely taxed and collected in the same manner, by
|
||
every Person's giving his own Word for the Qantum of what he possessed.
|
||
But as to Honour, Justice, Wisdom, and Learning, they should not be taxed
|
||
at all, because they are Qualifications of so singular a Kind, that no Man
|
||
will either allow them in his Neighbour, or value them in himself.
|
||
|
||
The Women were proposed to be taxed according to their Beauty and skill
|
||
in Dressing, wherein they had the same Priviledge with the Men, to be
|
||
determined by their own Judgement. But Constancy, Chastity, good Sense,
|
||
and good Nature were not rated, because they would not bear the Charge
|
||
of Collecting.
|
||
|
||
To keep Senators in the Interest of the Crown, it was proposed that the
|
||
Members should raffle for Employments, every Man first taking an Oath,
|
||
and giving Security that he would Vote for the Court, whether he won or
|
||
no, after which the Losers had in their Turn the liberty of Raffling upon
|
||
the next Vacancy. Thus Hope and Expectation would be kept alive, none
|
||
would complain of broken Promises, but impute their disappointments
|
||
wholly to Fortune, whose Shoulders are broader and stronger than those of
|
||
a Ministry.
|
||
|
||
Another Professor shewed me a large Paper of Instructions for discovering
|
||
Plots and Conspiracies against the Governments. He advised great
|
||
Statesmen to examine into the Dyet of all suspected Persons; their times of
|
||
eating; upon which side they lay in Bed; with which hand they wiped their
|
||
Posteriors; take a strict View of their Excrements, and from the Colour,
|
||
the Odour, the Taste, the Consistence, the Crudeness, or Maturity of
|
||
Digestion, form a Judgement of their Thoughts and Designs. Because Men
|
||
are never so Serious, Thoughtful, and Intent, as when they are at Stool,
|
||
which he found by frequent Experiment: For in such Conjunctures, when
|
||
he used meerly as a Trial to consider which was the best way of murdering
|
||
the King, his Ordure would have A Tincture of Green, but quite different
|
||
when he thought only of raising an Insurrection or burning the Metropolis.
|
||
|
||
The whole Discourse was written with great Acuteness, containing many
|
||
Observations both curious and useful for Politicians, but as I conceived not
|
||
altogether compleat. This I ventured to tell the Author, and offered if he
|
||
pleased to supply him with some Additions. He received my Proposition
|
||
with more Compliance than is usual among Writers, especially those of the
|
||
projecting Species, professing he would be glad to receive farther
|
||
Information.
|
||
|
||
I told him, that in the Kingdom of Tribnia, by the Natives called
|
||
Langden, where I had long sojourned, the Bulk of the People consisted
|
||
wholly of Discoverers, Witnesses, Informers, Accusers, Prosecutors,
|
||
Evidences, Swearers; together with their several subservient and subaltern
|
||
Instruments; all under the Colours, the Conduct, and pay of Ministers, and
|
||
their deputies. The Plots in that Kingdom are usually the Workmanship of
|
||
those Persons who desire to raise their own Characters of profound
|
||
Politicians; to restore new Vigor to a crazy Administration; to stifle or
|
||
divert general Discontents; to fill their Coffers with Forfeitures; and
|
||
raise or sink the Opinion of publick Credit, as either shall best answer
|
||
their private Advantage. It is first agreed and settled among them, what
|
||
suspected Persons shall be accused of a Plot: Then, effectual Care is taken
|
||
to secure all their Letters and other Papers, and put the Owners in Chains.
|
||
These Papers are delivered to a Set of Artists, very dexterous in finding
|
||
out the mysterious Meanings of Words, Syllables and Letters. For
|
||
Instance, they can decypher a Close-stool to signify a Privy-Council; a
|
||
Flock of Geese, a Senate; a lame Dog, an Invader; the Plague, a standing
|
||
Army; a Buzzard, a Minister; the Gout, a High Priest; a Gibbet, a Secretary
|
||
of State; a Chamber pot, a Committee of Grandees; a Sieve, a Court Lady;
|
||
a Broom, a Revolution; a Mouse-trap, an Employment; a bottomless Pit,
|
||
the Treasury; a Sink, a C---t; a Cap and Bells, a Favourite; a broken Reed,
|
||
a Court of Justice; an empty Tun, a General; a running Sore, the
|
||
Administration.
|
||
|
||
When this Method fails, they have two others more effectual; which the
|
||
Learned among them call Acrosticks and Anagrams. First, they can
|
||
decypher all initial Letters into political Meanings. Thus, N, shall signify
|
||
a Plot; B, a regiment of Horse; L,. a Fleet at Sea. Or, secondly, by
|
||
transposing the Letters of the Alphabet, in any suspected Paper, they can
|
||
discover the deepest Designs of a discontented Party. So for Example, if I
|
||
should say in a Letter to a Friend, Our Brother Tom has just got the
|
||
Piles; a Man of Skill in this Art would discover how the same Letters
|
||
which compose that Sentence, may be analysed into the following words:
|
||
Resist, ----- a Plot is brought home ----- The Tour. And this is the
|
||
Anagrammatick Method.
|
||
|
||
The Professor made me great Acknowledgments for communicating these
|
||
Observations, and promised to make honourable Mention of me in his
|
||
Treatise.
|
||
|
||
I saw nothing in this Country that could invite me to a longer Continuance;
|
||
and began to think of returning home to England.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The Author leaves Lagado, arrives at Maldonada. No Ship ready. He takes
|
||
a short Voyage to Glubbdubdrib. His Reception by the Governor
|
||
|
||
[T]he Continent of which this Kingdom is a part, extends itself, as I have
|
||
reason to believe, Eastward to that unknown Tract of America, Westward
|
||
of California, and North to the Pacifick Ocean, which is not above an
|
||
hundred and fifty Miles from Lagado; where there is a good Port and
|
||
much Commerce with the great Island of Luggnagg, situated to the North-
|
||
West about 29 Degrees North Latitude, and 140 Longitude. This Island of
|
||
Luggnagg stands South-Eastwards of Japan, about an hundred Leagues
|
||
distant. There is a strict Alliance between the Japanese Emperor and the
|
||
King of Luggnagg, which affords frequent Opportunities of sailing from
|
||
one Island to the other. I determined therefore to direct my Course this
|
||
Way, in order to my Return to Europe. I hired two Mules with a Guide to
|
||
shew me the way, and carry my small Baggage. I took Leave of my noble
|
||
Protector, who had shewn me so much Favour, and made me a generous
|
||
Present at my Departure.
|
||
|
||
My Journey was without any Accident or Adventure worth relating. When
|
||
I arrived at the Port of Maldonada, (for so it is called) there was no Ship in
|
||
the Harbour bound for Luggnagg, nor like to be in some time. The Town
|
||
is about as large as Portsmouth. I soon fell into some Acquaintance, and
|
||
was very hospitably received. A Gentleman of Distinction said to me that
|
||
since the Ships bound for Luggnagg could not be ready in less than a
|
||
Month, it might be no disagreeable Amusement for me to take a Trip to the
|
||
little Island of Glubbdubdrib, about five Leagues off to the South-West. He
|
||
offered himself and a Friend to accompany me, and that I should be
|
||
provided with a small convenient Barque for the Voyage.
|
||
|
||
GLUBBDUBDRIB, as nearly as I can interpret the Word, signifies the
|
||
Island of Sorcerers or Magicians. It is about one third as large as the Isle of
|
||
Wight, and extremely Fruitful: It is governed by the Head of a certain
|
||
Tribe, who are all Magicians. This Tribe marries only among each other,
|
||
and the eldest in Succession is Prince or Governor. He hath a noble Palace,
|
||
and a Park of about three thousand Acres, surrounded by a Wall of hewn
|
||
Stone twenty Foot high. In this Park are several small enclosures for
|
||
Cattle, Corn, and Gardening.
|
||
|
||
The Governor and his Family are served and attended by Domesticks of a
|
||
Kind somewhat unusual. By his Skill in Necromancy, he hath a Power of
|
||
calling whom he pleaseth from the Dead, and commanding their Service
|
||
for twenty-four Hours, but no longer; nor can he call the same Persons up
|
||
again in less than three Months, except upon very extraordinary Occasions.
|
||
|
||
When we arrived at the Island, which was about Eleven in the Morning,
|
||
one of the Gentlemen who accompanied me, went to the Governour, and
|
||
desired admittance for a Stranger, who came on Purpose to have the
|
||
Honour of attending on his Highness. This was immediately granted, and
|
||
we all three entered the Gate of the Palace between two rows of Guards,
|
||
armed and dressed after a very antick Manner, and something in their
|
||
Countenances that made my Flesh creep with a Horror I cannot express.
|
||
We passed through several Apartments between Servants of the same Sort,
|
||
ranked on each side as before, till we came to the Chamber of Presence,
|
||
where after three profound Obeysances, and a few general Questions, we
|
||
were permitted to sit on three Stools near the lowest Step of his Highness's
|
||
Throne. He understood the Language of Balnibarbi, although it were
|
||
different from that of his Island. He desired me to give him some Account
|
||
of my Travels; and to let me see that I should be treated without
|
||
Ceremony, he dismissed all his Attendants with a Turn of his Finger, at
|
||
which to my great Astonishment they vanished in an Instant, like Visions in
|
||
a Dream, when we awake on a sudden. I could not recover my self in some
|
||
Time, till the Governor assured me that I should receive no Hurt; and
|
||
observing my two Companions to be under no Concern, who had been
|
||
often entertained in the same Manner, I began to take Courage; and related
|
||
to his Highness a short History of my several Adventures, yet not without
|
||
some Hesitation, and frequently looking behind me to the Place where I had
|
||
seen those domestick Spectres. I had the Honour to dine with the Governor,
|
||
where a new set of Ghosts served up the Meat, and waited at Table. I now
|
||
observed myself to be less terrified than I had been in the Morning. I
|
||
stayed till Sun-set, but humbly desired his Highness to excuse me for not
|
||
accepting his Invitation of lodging in the Palace. My two Friends and I lay
|
||
at a private House in the Town adjoining, which is the Capital of this little
|
||
Island; and the next Morning we returned to pay our Duty to the
|
||
Governor, as he was pleased to command us.
|
||
|
||
After this Manner we continued in the Island for ten Days, most Part of
|
||
every Day with the Governor, and at Night in our Lodging. I soon grew so
|
||
familiarized to the Sight of Spirits, that after the third or fourth Time they
|
||
gave me no Emotion at all; or if I had any Apprehensions left, my
|
||
Curiosity prevailed over them. For his Highness the Governor ordered me
|
||
to call up whatever Persons I would choose to name, and in whatever
|
||
Numbers among all the Dead from the Beginning of the World to the
|
||
present Time, and command them to answer any Questions I should think
|
||
fit to ask; with this Condition, that my Questions must be confined within
|
||
the Compass of the Times they lived in. And one Thing I might depend
|
||
upon, that they would certainly tell me Truth, for Lying was a Talent of no
|
||
Use in the lower World.
|
||
|
||
I made my humble Acknowledgments to his Highness for so great a
|
||
Favour. We were in a Chamber, from whence there was a fair Prospect
|
||
into the Park. And because my first Inclination was to be entertained with
|
||
Scenes of Pomp and Magnificence, I desired to see Alexander the Great, at
|
||
the Head of his Army just after the battle of Arbela; which upon a Motion
|
||
of the Governor's Finger immediately appeared in a large Field under the
|
||
Window, where we stood. Alexander was called up into the Room: Iit was
|
||
with great Difficulty that I understood his Greek, and had but little of my
|
||
own. He assured me upon his Honour that he was not poisoned, but died of
|
||
a Fever by excessive Drinking.
|
||
|
||
Next I saw Hannibal passing the Alps, who told me he had not a Drop of
|
||
Vinegar in his Camp.
|
||
|
||
I saw Cæsar and Pompey at the Head of their Troops just ready to
|
||
engage. I saw the former in his last great Triumph. I desired that the
|
||
Senate of Rome might appear before me in one large Chamber, and an
|
||
Assembly of somewhat a latter Age, in Counterview in another. The first
|
||
seemed to be an Assembly of Heroes and Demy-Gods; the other a Knot of
|
||
Pedlars, Pickpockets, High-way-men, and Bullies.
|
||
|
||
The Governor at my Request gave the Sign for Cæsar and Brutus to
|
||
advance towards us. I was struck with a profound Veneration at the Sight
|
||
of Brutus; and could easily discover the most consummate Virtue, the
|
||
greatest Intrepidity and Firmness of Mind, the truest Love of his Country,
|
||
and general Benevolence for Mankind in every Lineament of his
|
||
Countenance. I observed with much Pleasure, that these two Persons were
|
||
in good Intelligence with each other, and Cæsar freely confessed to
|
||
me that the greatest Actions of his own Life were not equal by many
|
||
Degrees to the Glory of taking it away. I had the Honour to have much
|
||
Conversation with Brutus; and was told that his Ancestor Junius, Socrates,
|
||
Epaminondas, Cato the Younger, Sir Thomas More and himself, were
|
||
perpetually together: A Sextumvirate to which all the Ages of the World
|
||
cannot add a Seventh.
|
||
|
||
It would be tedious to trouble the Reader with relating what vast Numbers
|
||
of illustrious Persons were called up, to gratify that insatiable Desire I had
|
||
to see the World in every Period of Antiquity placed before me. I chiefly
|
||
fed mine Eyes with beholding the Destroyers of Tyrants and Usurpers, and
|
||
the Restorers of Liberty to oppressed and injured Nations. But it is
|
||
impossible to express the Satisfaction I received in my own Mind, after
|
||
such a Manner as to make it a suitable Entertainment to the Reader.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
A further Account of Glubbdubdrib. Antient and Modern History
|
||
corrected.
|
||
|
||
HAVING A DESIRE to see those Antients, who were most renowned for
|
||
Wit and Learning, I set apart one Day on purpose. I proposed that Homer
|
||
and Aristotle might appear at the Head of all their Commentators; but these
|
||
were so numerous that some hundreds were forced to attend in the Court
|
||
and outward Rooms of the Palace. I knew and could distinguish those two
|
||
Heroes at first sight, not only from the Croud, but from each other. Homer
|
||
was the taller and comelier Person of the two, walked very erect for one of
|
||
his Age, and his Eyes were the most quick and piercing I ever beheld.
|
||
Aristotle stooped much, and made use of a Staff. His Visage was meager,
|
||
his Hair lank and thin, and his Voice hollow. I soon discovered that both of
|
||
were perfect Strangers to the rest of the Company, and had never seen or
|
||
heard of them before. And I had a Whisper from a Ghost, who shall be
|
||
nameless, that these Commentators always kept in the most distant Quarters
|
||
from their Principals in the lower World, through a Consciousness of
|
||
Shame and Guilt, because they had so horribly misrepresented the Meaning
|
||
of those Authors to Posterity. I introduced Didymus and Eustathius to
|
||
Homer, and prevailed on him to treat them better than perhaps they
|
||
deserved; for he soon found they wanted a Genius to enter into the Spirit of
|
||
a poet. But Aristotle was out of all Patience with the Account I gave him of
|
||
Scotus and Ramus, as I presented them to him; and he asked them whether
|
||
the rest of the Tribe were as great Dunces as themselves.
|
||
|
||
I then desired the Governor to call up Descartes and Gassendi, with whom
|
||
I prevailed to explain their Systems to Aristotle. This great Philosopher
|
||
freely acknowledged his own Mistakes in Natural Philosophy, because he
|
||
proceeded in many things upon Conjecture, as all Men must do; and he
|
||
found, that Gassendi, who had made the Doctrine of Epicurus as palatable
|
||
as he could, and the Vortices of Descartes were equally exploded. He
|
||
predicted the same Fate to Attraction, whereof the present Learned are
|
||
such zealous Asserters. He said, that new Systems of Nature were but new
|
||
Fashions, which would vary in every Age; and even those who pretend to
|
||
demonstrate them from Mathematical Principles, would flourish but a short
|
||
Period of Time, and be out of Vogue when that was determined.
|
||
|
||
I spent five Days in conversing with many others of the antient Learned. I
|
||
saw most of the first Roman Emperors. I prevailed on the Governor to call
|
||
up Eliogabalus's Cooks to dress us a Dinner, but they could not shew us
|
||
much of their Skill, for Want of Materials. A Helot of Agesilaus made us a
|
||
Dish of Spartan Broth, but I was not able to get down a second Spoonful.
|
||
|
||
The two Gentlemen who conducted me to the Island were pressed by their
|
||
private Affairs to return in three Days, which I employed in seeing some
|
||
of the modern Dead, who had made the greatest Figure for two or three
|
||
hundred Years past in our own and other Countries of Europe; and having
|
||
been always a great Admirer of old illustrious Families, I desired the
|
||
Governor call up a dozen or two of Kings with their Ancestors in order
|
||
for eight or nine Generations. But my Disappointment was grevious and
|
||
unexpected. For instead of a long Train with Royal Diadems, I saw in one
|
||
Family two Fidlers, three spruce Courtiers, and an Italian Prelate. In
|
||
another a Barber, an Abbot, and two Cardinals. I have too great a
|
||
Veneration for Crowned Heads to dwell any longer on so nice a Subject.
|
||
But as to Counts, Marquesses, Dukes, Earls, and the like I was not so
|
||
scrupulous. And I confess it was not without some Pleasure that I found my
|
||
self able to trace the particular Features, by which certain Families are
|
||
distinguished up to their Originals. I could plainly discover from whence
|
||
one Family derives a long Chin, why a second has abounded with Knaves
|
||
for two Generations, and Fools for two more; why a third happened to be
|
||
crack-brained, and a fourth to be Sharpers. Whence it came what Polydore
|
||
Virgil says of a certain great House, Nec Vir fortis, nec Femina Casta. How
|
||
Cruelty, Falsehood, and Cowardice grew to be Characteristicks by which
|
||
certain families are distinguished as much as by their Coat of Arms. Who
|
||
first brought the Pox into a noble House, which has lineally descended in
|
||
scrophulous Tumours to their Posterity. Neither could I wonder at all this,
|
||
when I saw such an Interruption of Lineages by Pages, Lackeys, Valets,
|
||
Coachmen, Gamesters, Captains and Pickpockets.
|
||
|
||
I was chiefly disgusted with modern History. For having strictly examined
|
||
all the Persons of greatest Name in the Courts of Princes for a hundred
|
||
Years past, I found how the World had been misled by prostitute Writers,
|
||
to ascribe the greatest Exploits in War to Cowards, the wisest Counsel to
|
||
Fools, Sincerity to Flatterers, Roman Virtue to Betrayers of their Country,
|
||
Piety to Atheists, Chastity to Sodomites, Truth to Informers. How many
|
||
innocent and excellent Persons had been condemned to Death or
|
||
Banishment, by the practising of great Ministers upon the Corruption of
|
||
Judges, and the Malice of Faction. How many Villains had been exalted to
|
||
the highest Places of Trust, Power, Dignity, and Profit: How great a Share
|
||
in the Motions and Events of Courts, Councils, and Senates might be
|
||
challenged by Bawds, Whores, Pimps, Parasites, and Buffoons: How low an
|
||
Opinion I had of human Wisdom and Integrity, when I was truly informed
|
||
of the Springs and Motives of great Enterprises and Revolutions in the
|
||
World, and of the contemptible Accidents to which they owed their
|
||
Success.
|
||
|
||
Here I discovered the Roguery and Ignorance of those who pretend to
|
||
write Anecdotes, or secret History, who send so many Kings to their
|
||
Graves with a Cup of Poison; will repeat the Discourse between a Prince
|
||
and Chief Minister, where no Witness was by; unlock the Thoughts and
|
||
Cabinets of Embassadors and Secretaries of State, and have the perpetual
|
||
Misfortune to be mistaken. Here I discovered the secret Causes of many
|
||
great Events that have surprized the World, how a Whore can Govern the
|
||
Back-stairs, the Back-stairs a Council, and the Council a Senate. A General
|
||
confessed in my Presence, that he got a Victory purely by the Force of
|
||
Cowardice and ill Conduct: and an Admiral that for Want of proper
|
||
Intelligence, he beat the Enemy to whom he intended to betray the Fleet.
|
||
Three Kings protested to me, that in their whole Reigns they never did
|
||
once prefer any Person of Merit, unless by Mistake or Treachery of some
|
||
Minister in whom they confided: Neither would they do it if they were to
|
||
live again; and they shewed with great Strength of Reason, that the Royal
|
||
Throne could not be supported without Corruption, because that positive,
|
||
confident, restive Temper, which Virtue infused into Man, was a perpetual
|
||
Clog to publick Business.
|
||
|
||
I had the Curiosity to enquire in a particular Manner, by what Method
|
||
great Numbers had procured to themselves high Titles of Honour, and
|
||
prodigious Estates; and I confined my Enquiry to a very modern Period;
|
||
however, without grating upon present Times, because I would be sure to
|
||
give no Offence even to Foreigners (for I hope the Reader need not be told
|
||
that I do not in the least intend my own Country in what I say upon this
|
||
Occasion), a great Number of Persons concerned were called up, and upon
|
||
a very slight Examination, discovered such a Scene of Infamy, that I cannot
|
||
reflect upon it without some Seriousness. Perjury, Oppression,
|
||
Subornation, Fraud, Panderism, and the like Infirmities, were amongst the
|
||
most excusable Arts they had to mention, and for these I gave, as it was
|
||
reasonable, great Allowance. But when some confessed they owed their
|
||
Greatness and Wealth to Sodomy or Incest, others to the prostituting of
|
||
their own Wives and Daughters; others to the betraying of their Country or
|
||
their Prince; some to Poisoning, more to the perverting of Justice in order
|
||
to destroy the Innocent: I hope I may be pardoned if these Discoveries
|
||
inclined me little to abate of that profound Veneration which I am naturally
|
||
apt to pay to Persons of high Rank, who ought to be treated with the utmost
|
||
respect due to their sublime Dignity, by us their Inferiors.
|
||
|
||
I had often read of some great Services done to Princes and States, and
|
||
desired to see the Persons by whom those Services were performed. Upon
|
||
Enquiry I was told that their Names were to be found on no Record, except
|
||
a few of them whom History has represented as the vilest Rogues and
|
||
Traitors. As to the rest, I had never once heard of them. They all appeared
|
||
with dejected Looks, and in the meanest Habit, most of them telling me
|
||
they died in Poverty and Disgrace, and the rest on a Scaffold or a Gibbet.
|
||
|
||
Among the rest there was one Person whose Case appeared a little singular.
|
||
He had a Youth about Eighteen Years old standing by his Side. He told me
|
||
he had for many Years been Commander of a Ship, and in the Sea Fight at
|
||
Actium had the good Fortune to break through the Enemy's great Line of
|
||
Battle, sink three of their Capital Ships, and take a fourth, which was the
|
||
sole Cause of Antony's Flight, and of the Victory that ensued; that the
|
||
Youth standing by him, his only Son, was killed in Action. He added, that
|
||
upon the Confidence of some Merit, the war being at an End, he went to
|
||
Rome, and solicited at the Court of Augustus to be preferred to a greater
|
||
Ship, whose Commander had been killed; but without any Regard to his
|
||
Pretensions, it was given to a Youth who had never seen the Sea, the Son of
|
||
Libertina, who waited on one of the Emperor's Mistresses. Returning back
|
||
to his own Vessel, he was charged with Neglect of Duty, and the Ship given
|
||
to a favourite Page of Publicola, the Vice-Admiral; whereupon he retired
|
||
to a poor Farm, at a great Distance from Rome, and there ended his Life. I
|
||
was so curious to know the Truth of this Story, that I desired Agrippa
|
||
might be called, who was Admiral in that Fight. He appeared, and
|
||
confirmed the whole Account, but with much more Advantage to the
|
||
Captain, whose Modesty had extenuated or concealed a great Part of his
|
||
Merit.
|
||
|
||
I was surprized to find Corruption grown so high and so quick in that
|
||
Empire, by the Force of Luxury so lately introduced, which made me less
|
||
wonder at many parallel Cases in other Countries, where Vices of all Kinds
|
||
have reigned so much longer, and where the whole Praise as well as Pillage
|
||
has been engrossed by the chief Commander, who perhaps had the least
|
||
Title to either.
|
||
|
||
As every Person called up made exactly the same Appearance he had done
|
||
in the World, it gave me melancholy Reflections to observe how much the
|
||
Race of human Kind was degenerate among us, within these Hundred Years
|
||
past. How the Pox under all its Consequences and Denominations had
|
||
altered every Lineament of an English Countenance, shortned the Size of
|
||
Bodies, unbraced the Nerves, relaxed the Sinews and Muscles, introduced a
|
||
sallow Complexion, and rendered the Flesh loose and rancid.
|
||
|
||
I descended so low as to desire that some English Yeomen of the old Stamp
|
||
might be summoned to appear, once so famous for the Simplicity of their
|
||
Manners, Dyet and Dress, for Justice in their Dealings, for their true Spirit
|
||
of Liberty, for their Valour and Love of their Country. Neither could I be
|
||
wholly unmov'd after comparing the Living with the Dead, when I
|
||
considered how all these pure native Virtues were prostituted for a Piece of
|
||
Money by their Grand-children, who in selling their Votes, and managing
|
||
at Elections have acquired every Vice and Corruption that can possibly be
|
||
learned in a Court.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IX.
|
||
|
||
The Author's Return to Maldonada. Sails to the Kingdom of Luggnagg.
|
||
The Author confined. He is sent for to Court. The manner of his
|
||
Admittance. The King's great Lenity to his Subjects.
|
||
|
||
THE DAY OF our Departure being come, I took Leave of his Highness the
|
||
Governor of Glubbdubdrib, and returned with my two Companions to
|
||
Maldonada, where after a Fortnight's waiting, a Ship was ready to sail for
|
||
Luggnagg. The two Gentlemen and some others were so generous and Kind
|
||
as to furnish me with Provisions, and see me on board. I was a Month in
|
||
this Voyage. We had one violent Storm and were under a Necessity of
|
||
steering Westward to get into the Trade-Wind, which holds for above sixty
|
||
Leagues. On the 21st of April, 1711, we sailed into the River of
|
||
Clumegnig, which is a Sea-port Town, at the South-East Point of
|
||
Luggnagg. We cast Anchor within a League of the Town, and made a
|
||
Signal for a Pilot. Two of them came on board in less than half an Hour,
|
||
by whom we were guided between certain Shoals and Rocks, which are
|
||
very dangerous in the Passage, to a large Basin, where a Fleet may ride in
|
||
Safety within a Cable's Length of the Town Wall.
|
||
|
||
Some of our Sailors, whether out of Treachery or Inadvertence, had
|
||
informed the Pilots that I was a Stranger and a Traveller, whereof these
|
||
gave Notice to a Custom-House Officer, by whom I was examined very
|
||
strictly upon my landing. This Officer spoke to me in the Language of
|
||
Balnibarbi, which by the Force of much Commerce is generally understood
|
||
in that Town, especially by Seamen, and those employed in the Customs. I
|
||
gave him a short Account of some Particulars, and made my Story as
|
||
plausible and consistent as I could; but I thought it necessary to disguise my
|
||
Country, and call my self an Hollander, because my Intentions were for
|
||
Japan, and I knew the Dutch were the only Europeans permitted to enter
|
||
into that Kingdom. I therefore told the Officer, that having been
|
||
shipwrecked on the Coast of Balnibarbi, and cast on a Rock, I was received
|
||
up into Laputa, or the flying Island (of which he had often heard), and was
|
||
now endeavouring to get to Japan, from whence I might find a
|
||
Convenience of returning to my own Country. The Officer said I must be
|
||
confined till he could receive Orders from Court, for which he would
|
||
write immediately, and hoped to receive an Answer in a fortnight. I was
|
||
carried to a convenient Lodging, with a Centry placed at the Door;
|
||
however I had the Liberty of a large Garden, and was treated with
|
||
Humanity enough, being maintained all the Time at the King's Charge. I
|
||
was visited by several Persons, chiefly out of Curiosity, because it was
|
||
reported that I came from Countries very remote of which they had never
|
||
heard.
|
||
|
||
I hired a young Man who came in the same Ship to be an interpreter; he
|
||
was a native of Luggnagg, but had lived some Years at Maldonada, and was
|
||
a perfect Master of both Languages. By his Assistance I was able to hold a
|
||
Conversation with those who came to visit me; but this consisted only of
|
||
their Questions, and my Answers.
|
||
|
||
The Dispatch came from Court about the Time we expected. It contain'd a
|
||
Warrant for conducting me and my Retinue to Traldragdubb or
|
||
Trildrogdrib, for it is pronounced both ways as near as I can remember,
|
||
by a Party of Ten Horse. All my Retinue was that poor Lad for an
|
||
Interpreter, whom I persuaded into my Service, and at my humble Request,
|
||
we had each of us a Mule to ride on. A Messenger was dispatch'd half a
|
||
Day's Journey before us, to give the King Notice of my Approach, and to
|
||
desire that his Majesty would please appoint a Day and Hour, when it
|
||
would be his gracious Pleasure that I might have the Honour to lick the
|
||
Dust before his Footstool. This is the Court Style, and I found it to be more
|
||
than Matter of Form: For upon my Admittance two Days after my Arrival,
|
||
I was commanded to crawl upon my Belly, and lick the Floor as I
|
||
advanced; but on Account of my being a Stranger, Care was taken to have
|
||
it made so clean that the Dust was not offensive. However, this was a
|
||
peculiar Grace, not allowed to any but Persons of the highest Rank, when
|
||
they desire an Admittance. Nay, sometimes the Floor is strewed with Dust
|
||
on purpose, when the Person to be admitted happens to have powerful
|
||
Enemies at Court. And I have seen a great Lord with his Mouth so
|
||
crammed, that when he had crept to the proper Distance from the Throne,
|
||
he was not able to speak a Word. Neither is there any Remedy, because it is
|
||
capital for those who receive an Audience to spit or wipe their Mouths in
|
||
his Majesty's Presence. There is indeed another Custom, which I cannot
|
||
altogether approve of. When the King has a Mind to put any of his Nobles
|
||
to Death in a gentle indulgent Manner; he commands to have the Floor
|
||
strowed with a certain brown Powder, of a deadly Composition, which
|
||
being licked up infallibly kills him in twenty-four Hours. But in Justice to
|
||
this Prince's great Clemency, and the Care he hath of his Subject's Lives
|
||
(wherein it were much to be wished that the Monarchs of Europe would
|
||
imitate him) it must be mentioned for his Honour, that strict Orders are
|
||
given to have the infected Parts of the Floor well washed after every such
|
||
Execution; which if his Domesticks neglect, they are in Danger of
|
||
incurring his Royal Displeasure. I my self heard him give Directions, that
|
||
one of his Pages should be whipt, whose Turn it was to give Notice about
|
||
washing the Floor after an Execution, but maliciously had omitted it; by
|
||
which Neglect a young Lord of great Hopes coming to an Audience, was
|
||
unfortunately poisoned, although the King at that Time had no Design
|
||
against his Life. But this good Prince was so gracious, as to forgive the
|
||
poor Page his Whipping, upon Promise that he would do so no more,
|
||
without special Orders.
|
||
|
||
To return from this Digression; when I had crept within four Yards of the
|
||
Throne, I raised my self gently upon my Knees, and then striking my
|
||
Forehead seven Times on the Ground, I pronounced the following Words,
|
||
as they had been taught me the Night before, Ickpling Gloffthrobb
|
||
Squutserumm blhiop Mlashnalt Zwin tnodbalkguffh Slhiophad Gurdlubh
|
||
Asht. This is the Compliment established by the Laws of the Land for all
|
||
Persons admitted to the King's Presence. It may be rendered into English
|
||
thus: May your celestial Majesty out-live the Sun, eleven Moons and an
|
||
half. To this the King returned some Answer, which although I could not
|
||
understand, yet I replied as I had been directed; Fluft drin Yalerick
|
||
Dwuldum prastrad mirplush, which properly signifies, My Tongue is in the
|
||
Mouth of my Friend; and by this Expression was meant that I desired leave
|
||
to bring my Interpreter; whereupon the young Man already mentioned was
|
||
accordingly introduced, by whose Intervention I answer'd as many
|
||
Questions as his Majesty could put in above an Hour. I spoke in the
|
||
Balnibarbian Tongue, and my Interpreter delivered my Meaning in that of
|
||
Luggnagg.
|
||
|
||
The King was much delighted with my Company, and ordered his
|
||
Bliffmarklub or high Chamberlain, to appoint a Lodging in the Court for
|
||
me and my Interpreter, with a daily Allowance for my Table, and a large
|
||
Purse of Gold for my common Expenses.
|
||
|
||
I stayed three Months in this Country out of perfect Obedience to his
|
||
Majesty, who was pleased highly to favour me, and made me very
|
||
honourable Offers. But, I thought it more consistent with Prudence and
|
||
Justice to pass the remainder of my Days with my Wife and Family.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER X.
|
||
|
||
The Luggnuggians commended. A particular Description of the
|
||
Struldbruggs, with many Conversations between the Author and some
|
||
eminent Persons upon that Subject.
|
||
|
||
THE LUGGNUGGIANS are a polite and generous People, and although
|
||
they are not without some Share of that Pride which is peculiar to all
|
||
Eastern Countries, yet they shew themselves courteous to Strangers,
|
||
especially such who are countenanced by the Court. I had many
|
||
Acquaintance among Persons of the best Fashion, and being always
|
||
attended by my Interpreter, the Conversation we had was not disagreeable.
|
||
|
||
One Day in much good Company I was asked by a Person of Quality,
|
||
whether I had seen any of their Struldbruggs, or Immortals. I said I had
|
||
not, and desired he would explain to me what he meant by such an
|
||
Appellation applied to a mortal Creature. He told me, that sometimes,
|
||
though very rarely, a Child happened to be born in a Family with a red
|
||
circular Spot in the Forehead, directly over the left Eyebrow, which was
|
||
an infallible Mark that it should never dye. The Spot, as he described it,
|
||
was about the Compass of a Silver Threepence, but in the Course of Time
|
||
grew larger, and changed its Colour; for at twelve Years old it became
|
||
Green, so continued till Five and Twenty, then turned to a deep Blue; at
|
||
Five and Forty it grew coal Black, and as large as an English Shilling, but
|
||
never admitted any further Alteration. He said these Births were so rare,
|
||
that he did not believe there could be above Eleven Hundred Struldbruggs
|
||
of both Sexes in the whole Kingdom, of which he computed about Fifty in
|
||
the Metropolis, and among the rest a young Girl born about three Years
|
||
ago. That these Productions were not peculiar to any Family, but a meer
|
||
Effect of Chance; and the Children of the Struldbruggs themselves, were
|
||
equally Mortal with the rest of the People.
|
||
|
||
I freely own my self to have been struck with inexpressible Delight upon
|
||
hearing this Account: And the Person who gave it me happening to
|
||
understand the Balnibarbian Language, which I spoke very well, I could
|
||
not forbear breaking out into Expressions perhaps a little too extravagant. I
|
||
cryed out as in a Rapture; Happy Nation where every Child hath at least a
|
||
Chance for being immortal! Happy People who enjoy so many living
|
||
Examples of antient Virtue, and have Masters ready to instruct them in the
|
||
Wisdom of all former Ages! But, happiest beyond all Comparison are those
|
||
excellent Struldbruggs, who born exempt from that universal Calamity of
|
||
human Nature, have their Minds free and disengaged, without the Weight
|
||
and Depression of Spirits caused by the continual Apprehension of Death. I
|
||
discovered my Admiration that I had not observed any of these illustrious
|
||
Persons at Court; the black Spot on the Fore-head being so remarkable a
|
||
Distinction, that I could not have easily overlooked it: And it was
|
||
impossible that his Majesty, a most judicious Prince, should not provide
|
||
himself with a good Number of such wise and able Counsellours. Yet
|
||
perhaps the Virtue of those Reverend Sages was too strict for the corrupt
|
||
and libertine Manners of a Court. And we often find by Experience, that
|
||
young Men are too opinionative and volatile to be guided by the sober
|
||
Dictates of their Seniors. However, since the King was pleased to allow me
|
||
Access to his Royal Person, I was resolved upon the very first Occasion to
|
||
deliver my Opinion to him on this Matter freely, and at large by the help
|
||
of my Interpreter; and whether he would please to take my Advice or no,
|
||
yet in one Thing I was determined, that his Majesty having frequently
|
||
offered me an Establishment in this Country, I would with great
|
||
Thankfulness accept the Favour, and pass my Life here in the Conversation
|
||
of those superiour Beings the Struldbruggs, if they would please to admit
|
||
me.
|
||
|
||
The Gentleman to whom I addressed my Discourse, because (as I have
|
||
already observed) he spoke the Language of Balnibarbi, said to me with a
|
||
sort of a Smile, which usually ariseth from Pity to the Ignorant, that he was
|
||
glad of any Occasion to keep me among them, and desired my Permission
|
||
to explain to the Company what I had spoke. He did so, and they talked
|
||
together for some time in their own Language, whereof I understood not a
|
||
Syllable, neither could I observe by their Countenances what impression
|
||
my Discourse had made on them. After a short Silence, the same Person
|
||
told me that his Friends and mine (so he thought fit to express himself)
|
||
were very much pleased with the judicious Remarks I had made on the
|
||
great Happiness and Advantages of immortal Life, and they were desirous
|
||
to know in a particular Manner, what Scheme of Living I should have
|
||
formed to my self, if it had fallen to my Lot to have been born a
|
||
Struldbrugg.
|
||
|
||
I answered, it was easy to be Eloquent on so copious and delightful a
|
||
Subject, especially to me who have been often apt to amuse my self with
|
||
Visions of what I should do if I were a King, a General, or a great Lord:
|
||
And upon this very Case I had frequently run over the whole System how I
|
||
should employ my self, and pass the Time if I were sure to live for ever.
|
||
|
||
That, if it had been my good Fortune to come into the World a
|
||
Struldbrugg, as soon as I could discover my own Happiness by
|
||
understanding the Difference between Life and Death, I would first resolve
|
||
by all Arts and Methods whatsoever to procure my self Riches. In the
|
||
Pursuit of which by Thrift and Management, I might reasonably expect, in
|
||
about two Hundred Years to be the wealthiest Man in the Kingdom. In the
|
||
second place, I would from my earliest Youth apply my self to the Study of
|
||
Arts and Sciences, by which I should arrive in time to excel all others in
|
||
Learning. Lastly I would carefully record every Action and Event of
|
||
Consequence that happened in the Publick, impartially draw the Characters
|
||
of the several Successions of Princes, and great Ministers of State, with my
|
||
own Observations on every Point. I would exactly set down the several
|
||
Changes in Customs, Languages, Fashions, Dress, Dyet and Diversions. By
|
||
all which Acquirements, I should be a living Treasury of Knowledge and
|
||
Wisdom, and certainly become the Oracle of the Nation.
|
||
|
||
I would never marry after Threescore, but live in an hospitable Manner,
|
||
yet still on the saving Side. I would entertain myself in forming and
|
||
directing the Minds of hopeful young Men, by convincing them from my
|
||
own Remembrance, Experience and Observation, fortified by numerous
|
||
Examples, of the Usefulness of Virtue in publick and private Life. But, my
|
||
Choice and constant Companions should be a sett of my own immortal
|
||
Brother hood, among whom I would elect a Dozen from the most Ancient
|
||
down to my own Contemporaries. Where any of these wanted Fortunes, I
|
||
would provide them with convenient Lodges round my own Estate, and
|
||
have some of them always at my Table, only mingling a few of the most
|
||
valuable among you Mortals, whom length of Time would harden me to
|
||
lose with little or no Reluctance, and treat your Posterity after the same
|
||
Manner; just as a Man diverts himself with the annual Succession of Pinks
|
||
and Tulips in his Garden, without regretting the Loss of those which
|
||
withered the preceding Year.
|
||
|
||
These Struldbruggs and I would mutually communicate our Observations
|
||
and Memorials through the Course of Time, remark the several Gradations
|
||
by which Corruption steals into the World, and oppose it in every Step, by
|
||
giving perpetual Warning and Instruction to Mankind; which, added to the
|
||
strong Influence of our own Example, would probably prevent that
|
||
continual Degeneracy of Human Nature so justly complained of in all Ages.
|
||
|
||
Add to all this the Pleasure of seeing the various Revolutions of States and
|
||
Empires, the Changes in the lower and upper World, antient Cities in
|
||
Ruins, and obscure Villages become the Seats of Kings. Famous Rivers
|
||
lessening into shallow Brooks, the Ocean leaving one Coast dry, and
|
||
overwhelming another: The Discovery of many Countries yet unknown.
|
||
Barbarity over-running the politest Nations, and the most barbarous
|
||
become civilized. I should then see the Discovery of the Longitude, the
|
||
perpetual Motion, the Universal Medicine, and many other great Inventions
|
||
brought to the utmost Perfection.
|
||
|
||
What wonderful Discoveries should we make in Astronomy, by outliving
|
||
and confirming our own Predictions, by observing the Progress and
|
||
Returns of Comets, with the Changes of Motion in the Sun, Moon, and
|
||
Stars.
|
||
|
||
I enlarged upon many other Topicks, which the natural Desire of endless
|
||
Life and sublunary Happiness could easily furnish me with. When I had
|
||
ended, and the Sum of my Discourse had been interpreted as before, to the
|
||
rest of the Company, there was a good deal of Talk among them the
|
||
Language of the Country, not without some Laughter at my Expense. At
|
||
last the same Gentleman who had been my Interpreter said, he was desired
|
||
by the rest to set me right in a few Mistakes, which I had fallen into
|
||
through the common Imbecility of human Nature, and upon that Allowance
|
||
was less answerable for them. That this Breed of Struldbruggs was peculiar
|
||
to their Country, for there were no such People either in Balnibarbi or
|
||
Japan, where he had the Honour to be Embassador from his Majesty, and
|
||
found the Natives in both these Kingdoms very hard to believe that the Fact
|
||
was possible, and it appeared from my Astonishment when he first
|
||
mentioned the Matter to me, that I received it as a thing wholly new, and
|
||
scarcely to be credited. That in the two Kingdoms above mentioned, where
|
||
during his Residence he had conversed very much, he observed long Life
|
||
to be the universal Desire and Wish of Mankind. That whoever had one
|
||
Foot in the Grave, was sure to hold back the other as strongly as he could.
|
||
That the eldest had still hopes of living one Day longer, and looked on
|
||
Death as the greatest Evil, from which Nature always prompted him to
|
||
retreat; only in this Island of Luggnagg, the Appetite for living was not so
|
||
eager, from the continual Example of the Struldbruggs before their Eyes.
|
||
|
||
That the System of Living contrived by me was unreasonable and unjust,
|
||
because it supposed a Perpetuity of Youth, Health, and Vigour, which no
|
||
Man could be so foolish to hope, however extravagant he may be in his
|
||
Wishes. That the Question therefore was not whether a Man would choose
|
||
to be always in the Prime of Youth, attended with Prosperity and Health,
|
||
but how he would pass a perpetual Life under all the usual Disadvantages
|
||
which old Age brings along with it. For although few Men will avow their
|
||
Desires of being immortal upon such hard Conditions, yet in the two
|
||
Kingdoms before-mentioned of Balnibarbi and Japan, he observed that
|
||
every Man desired to put off Death for sometime longer, let it approach
|
||
ever so late, and he rarely heard of any Man who died willingly, except he
|
||
were incited by the Extremity of Grief or Torture. And he appealed to me
|
||
whether in those Countries I had travelled as well as my own, I had not
|
||
observed the same general Disposition.
|
||
|
||
After this Preface he gave me a particular Account of the Struldbruggs
|
||
among them. He said they commonly acted like Mortals, till about thirty
|
||
Years old, after which by degrees they grew melancholy and dejected,
|
||
encreasing in both till they came to four-score. This he learned from their
|
||
own Confession; for otherwise there not being above two or three of that
|
||
Species born in an Age, they were too few to form a general Observation
|
||
by. When they came to four-score Years, which is reckoned the Extremity
|
||
of living in this Country, they had not only all the Follies and Infirmities of
|
||
other old Men, but many more which arose from the dreadful Prospect of
|
||
never dying. They were not only Opinionative, Peevish, Covetous, Morose,
|
||
Vain, Talkative, but uncapable of Friendship, and dead to all natural
|
||
Affection, which never descended below their Grand-children. Envy and
|
||
impotent Desires are their prevailing Passions. But those Objects against
|
||
which their Envy principally directed, are the Vices of the younger sort,
|
||
and the Deaths of the old. By reflecting on the former, they find
|
||
themselves cut off from all possibility of Pleasure; and whenever they see a
|
||
Funeral, they lament and repine that others have gone to a Harbour of Rest,
|
||
to which they themselves never can hope to arrive. They have no
|
||
Remembrance of anything but what they learned and observed in their
|
||
Youth and middle Age, and even that is very imperfect. And for the Truth
|
||
or Particulars of any Fact, it is safer to depend on common Traditions than
|
||
upon their best Recollections. The least miserable among them appear to be
|
||
those who turn to Dotage, and entirely lose their Memories; these meet
|
||
with more Pity and Assistance, because they want many bad Qualities
|
||
which abound in others.
|
||
|
||
If a Struldbrugg happen to marry one of his own kind, the Marriage is
|
||
dissolved of course by the Courtesy of the Kingdom, as soon as the
|
||
younger of the two come to be four-score. For the Law thinks it a
|
||
reasonable Indulgence, that those who are condemned without any Fault of
|
||
their own to a perpetual Continuance in the World, should not have their
|
||
Misery doubled by the Load of a Wife.
|
||
|
||
As soon as they have compleated the Term of eighty Years, they are look'd
|
||
on as dead in Law; their Heirs immediately succeed to their Estates, only a
|
||
small Pittance is reserved for their Support, and the poor ones are
|
||
maintained at the publick Charge. After that Period they are held incapable
|
||
of any Employment of Trust or Profit, they cannot purchase Lands or take
|
||
Leases, neither are they allowed to be Witnesses in any Cause, either Civil
|
||
or Criminal, not even for the Decision of Meers and Bounds.
|
||
|
||
At Ninety they lose their Teeth and Hair, they have at that age no
|
||
Distinction of Taste, but eat and drink whatever they can get, without
|
||
Relish or Appetite. The Diseases they were subject to still continuing
|
||
without encreasing or diminishing. In talking they forgot the common
|
||
Appellation of Things, and the Names of Persons, even of those who are
|
||
their nearest Friends and Relations. For the same Reason they never can
|
||
amuse themselves with reading, because their Memory will not serve to
|
||
carry them from the beginning of a Sentence to the end; and by this Defect
|
||
they are deprived of the only entertainment whereof they might otherwise
|
||
be capable.
|
||
|
||
The Language of this Country being always upon the Flux, the
|
||
Struldbruggs of one Age do not understand those of another, neither are
|
||
they able after two hundred Years to hold any Conversation (farther than
|
||
by a few general Words) with their Neighbours the Mortals; and thus they
|
||
lye under the Disadvantage of living like Foreigners in their own Country.
|
||
|
||
This was the Account given me of the Struldbruggs, as near as I can
|
||
remember. I afterwards saw five or six of different Ages, the youngest not
|
||
above two hundred Years old, who were brought me at several Times by
|
||
some of my Friends; but although they were told that I was a great
|
||
Traveller, and had seen all the World, they had not the least Curiosity to
|
||
ask me a Question; only desired I would give them Slumskudask, or a
|
||
Token of Remembrance, which is a modest way of begging, to avoid the
|
||
Law that strictly forbids it, because they are provided for by the Publick,
|
||
although indeed with a very scanty Allowance.
|
||
|
||
They are despised and hated by all sort of People; when one of them is
|
||
born, it is reckoned ominous, and their Birth is recorded very particularly;
|
||
so that you may know their Age by consulting the Registry, which however
|
||
hath not been kept above a thousand Years past, or at least hath been
|
||
destroyed by Time or publick Disturbances. But the usual way of
|
||
computing how old they are is by asking them what Kings or great Persons
|
||
they can remember, and then consulting History, for infallibly the last
|
||
Prince, in their Mind, did not begin his Reign after they were four-score
|
||
Years old.
|
||
|
||
They were the most mortifying Sight I ever beheld, and the Women more
|
||
horrible than the Men. Besides the usual Deformities in extreme old age,
|
||
they acquired an additional Ghastliness in Proportion to their Number of
|
||
Years, which is not to be described, and among half a Dozen I soon
|
||
distinguished which was the eldest, although there were not above a
|
||
Century or two between them.
|
||
|
||
The Reader will easily believe, that from what I had heard and seen, my
|
||
keen Appetite for Perpetuity of Life was much abated. I grew heartily
|
||
ashamed of the pleasing Visions I had formed, and thought no Tyrant could
|
||
invent a Death into which I would not run with Pleasure from such a Life.
|
||
The King heard of all that had passed between me and my Friends upon
|
||
this Occasion, and rallied me very pleasantly, wishing I would send a
|
||
couple of Struldbruggs to my own Country, to arm our People against the
|
||
Fear of Death; but this it seems is forbidden by the fundamental Laws of
|
||
the Kingdom, or else I should have been well content with the Trouble and
|
||
Expense of transporting them.
|
||
|
||
I could not but agree that the Laws of this Kingdom relating to the
|
||
Struldbruggs, were founded upon the strongest Reasons, and such as any
|
||
other Country would be under the Necessity of enacting in the like
|
||
Circumstances. Otherwise, as Avarice is the necessary Consequent of old
|
||
Age, those Immortals would in Time become Proprietors of the whole
|
||
Nation, and engross the Civil Power, which, for want of Abilities to
|
||
manage, must End in the Ruin of the Publick.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XI.
|
||
|
||
The Author leaves Luggnagg, and sails to Japan. From thence he returns in
|
||
a Dutch Ship to Amsterdam, and from Amsterdam to England.
|
||
|
||
I THOUGHT THIS Account of the Struldbruggs might be some
|
||
Entertainment to the Reader, because it seems to be a little out of the
|
||
common Way, at least, I do not remember to have met the like in any Book
|
||
of Travels that has come to my Hands: And if I am deceived, my Excuse
|
||
must be, that it is necessary for Travellers, who describe the same Country,
|
||
very often to agree in dwelling on the same Particulars, without deserving
|
||
the Censure of having borrowed or transcribed from those who wrote
|
||
before them.
|
||
|
||
There is indeed a perpetual Commerce between this Kingdom and the great
|
||
Empire of Japan, and it is very probable that the JapaneseAuthors may
|
||
have given some Account of the Struldbruggs; but my Stay in Japan was so
|
||
short, and I was so entirely a Stranger to that Language, that I was not
|
||
qualified to make any Enquiries. But I hope the Dutch, upon this Notice
|
||
will be curious and able enough to supply my Defects.
|
||
|
||
His Majesty having often pressed me to accept some Employment in his
|
||
Court, and finding me absolutely determined to return to my Native
|
||
Country, was pleased to give me his Licence to depart, and honoured me
|
||
with a Letter of Recommendation under his own Hand to the Emperor of
|
||
Japan. He likewise presented me with four hundred and forty four large
|
||
Pieces of Gold (this Nation delighting in even Numbers) and a red
|
||
Diamond, which I sold in England for eleven hundred Pounds.
|
||
|
||
On the sixth Day of May, 1709, I took a solemn Leave of his Majesty, and
|
||
all my Friends. This Prince was so gracious, as to order a Guard to
|
||
conduct me Glanguenstald, which is a Royal Port to the South-West Part of
|
||
the Island. In six Days I found a Vessel ready to carry me to Japan, and
|
||
spent fifteen Days in the Voyage. We landed at a small Port-Town called
|
||
Xamoschi, situated on the South-East Part of Japan; the Town lies on the
|
||
Western Point, where there is a narrow streight, leading Northward into a
|
||
long Arm of the Sea, upon the North-West Part of which Yedo, the
|
||
Metropolis stands. At Landing, I shewed the Custom-house Officers my
|
||
Letter from the King of Luggnagg to his Imperial Majesty. They knew the
|
||
Seal perfectly well; it was as broad as the Palm of my Hand. The
|
||
Impression was, A King lifting up a Lame Beggar from the Earth. The
|
||
Magistrates of the Town hearing of my Letter, received me as a Publick
|
||
Minister; they provided me with Carriages and Servants, and bore my
|
||
Charges to Yedo, where I was admitted to an Audience, and delivered my
|
||
Letter, which was opened with great Ceremony, and explained to the
|
||
Emperor by an Interpreter, who then gave me Notice by his Majesty's
|
||
Order, that I should signify my Request, and, whatever it were, it should
|
||
be granted for the sake of his Royal Brother of Luggnagg. This Interpreter
|
||
was a Person employed to transact Affairs with the Hollanders; he soon
|
||
conjectured by my Countenance that I was a European, and therefore
|
||
repeated his Majesty's Commands in Low-Dutch, which he spoke perfectly
|
||
well. I answered, (as I had before determined,) that I was a Dutch
|
||
Merchant, shipwrecked in a very remote Country, from whence I travelled
|
||
by Sea and Land to Luggnagg, and then took Shipping for Japan, where I
|
||
knew my Countrymen often traded, and with some of these I hoped to get
|
||
an Opportunity of returning into Europe: I therefore most humbly
|
||
entreated his Royal Favour, to give Order, that I should be conducted in
|
||
Safety to Nangasac. To this I added another Petition, that for the sake of
|
||
my Patron the King of Luggnagg, his Majesty would condescend to excuse
|
||
my performing the Ceremony imposed on my Countrymen of trampling
|
||
upon the Crucifix, because I had been thrown into his Kingdom by my
|
||
Misfortunes, without any Intention of Trading. When this latter Petition
|
||
was interpreted to the Emperor, he seemed a little surprized, and said, he
|
||
believed I was the first of my Countrymen who ever made any Scruple in
|
||
this Point, and that he began to doubt whether I was a real Hollander, or
|
||
no, but rather suspected I must be a CHRISTIAN. However, for the
|
||
Reasons I had offered, but chiefly to gratify the King of Luggnagg, by an
|
||
uncommon Mark of his Favour, he would comply with the Singularity of
|
||
my Humour; but the Affair must be managed with Dexterity, and his
|
||
Officers should be commanded to let me pass, as it were, by Forgetfulness.
|
||
For he assured me, that if the Secret should be discovered by my
|
||
Countrymen, the Dutch, they would cut my Throat in the Voyage. I
|
||
returned my Thanks by the Interpreter, for so unusual a Favour, and some
|
||
Troops being at that Time on their March to Nangasac, the Commanding
|
||
Officer had Orders to convey me safe thither, with particular Instructions
|
||
about the Business of the Crucifix.
|
||
|
||
On the 9th Day of June, 1709, I arrived at Nangasac, after a very long and
|
||
troublesome Journey. I soon fell into the Company of some Dutch Sailors
|
||
belonging to the Amboyna of Amsterdam, a stout Ship of 450 Tons. I had
|
||
lived long in Holland, pursuing my studies at Leyden, and I spoke Dutch
|
||
well. The Seamen soon knew from whence I came last: they were curious
|
||
to enquire into my Voyages and Course of Life. I made up a Story as short
|
||
and probable as I could, but concealed the greatest Part. I knew many
|
||
Persons in Holland; I was able to invent Names for my Parents, whom I
|
||
pretended to be obscure People in the Province of Gelderland. I would
|
||
have given the Captain (one Theodorus Vangrult) what he pleased to ask
|
||
for my Voyage to Holland; but understanding I was a Surgeon, he was
|
||
contented to take half the usual Rate, on Condition that I would serve him
|
||
in the way of my Calling. Before we took Shipping, I was often asked by
|
||
some of the Crew, whether I had performed the Ceremony above-
|
||
mentioned: I evaded the Question by general Answers, that I had satisfied
|
||
the Emperor and Court in all Particulars. However, a malicious Rogue of a
|
||
Skipper went to an Officer, and pointing to me, told him I had not yet
|
||
trampled on the Crucifix: But the other, who had received Instructions to
|
||
let me pass, gave the Rascal twenty Strokes on the Shoulders with a
|
||
Bamboo, after which I was no more troubled with such Questions.
|
||
|
||
Nothing happened worth mentioning in this Voyage. We sailed with a fair
|
||
Wind to the Cape of Good Hope, where we stayed only to take in fresh
|
||
Water. On the 16th of April we arrived safe at Amsterdam, having lost
|
||
only three Men by Sickness in the Voyage, and a fourth who fell from the
|
||
Fore-mast into the Sea, not far from the Coast of Guinea. From
|
||
Amsterdam I soon after set sail for England, in a small Vessel belonging to
|
||
that City.
|
||
|
||
On the 10th of April, 1710, we put in at the Downs. I landed the next
|
||
Morning, and saw once more my native Country, after an Absence of five
|
||
Years and six Months compleat. I went strait to Redriff, where I arrived
|
||
the same Day at Two in the Afternoon, and found my Wife and Family in
|
||
good Health.
|
||
|
||
THE END OF THE THIRD PART.
|
||
|
||
PART IV. A VOYAGE TO THE COUNTRY OF THE HOUYHNHNMS.
|
||
|
||
[Plate 4: Houyhnhnms Land]
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The Author sets out as a Captain of a Ship. His Men conspire against him,
|
||
confine him a long time to his Cabbin, set him on shore in an unknown
|
||
Land. He Travels up in the Country. The Yahoos a strange Sort of Animal
|
||
described. The Author meets two Houyhnhnms.
|
||
|
||
I CONTINUED at home with my Wife and Children about five Months in
|
||
a very happy Condition, if I could have learned the Lesson of knowing
|
||
when I was well. I left my poor Wife big with Child, and accepted an
|
||
advantagious Offer made me to be Captain of the Adventure, a stout
|
||
Merchant-Man of 350 Tuns: For I understood Navigation well, and being
|
||
grown weary of a Surgeon's Employment at Sea, which however I could
|
||
exercise upon occasion, I took a skillful young Man of that Calling, one
|
||
Robert Purefoy, into my Ship. We set sail from Portsmouth upon the
|
||
second Day of August, 1710; on the Fourteenth, we met with Captain
|
||
Pocock of Bristol, at Tenariff, who was going to the Bay of Campechy, to
|
||
cut Logwood. On the Sixteenth, he was parted from us by a Storm; I heard
|
||
since my Return that his Ship foundered, and none escaped but one Cabbin-
|
||
Boy. He was an honest Man, and a good Sailor, but a little too positive in
|
||
his own Opinions, which was the Cause of his Destruction, as it has been of
|
||
several others. For if he had followed my Advice, he might have been safe
|
||
at home with his Family at this Time, as well as myself.
|
||
|
||
I had several Men die in my Ship of Calentures, so that I was forced to get
|
||
Recruits out of Barbadoes, and the Leeward Islands, where I touched by
|
||
the Direction of the Merchants who employed me, which I had soon too
|
||
much Cause to repent; for I found afterwards that most of them had been
|
||
Buccaneers. I had Fifty Hands on board, and my Orders were, that I should
|
||
trade with the Indians, in the South-Sea, and make what Discoveries I
|
||
could. These Rogues whom I had picked up debauched my other Men, and
|
||
they all formed a Conspiracy to seize the Ship and secure me; which they
|
||
did one Morning, rushing into my Cabbin, and binding me Hand and Foot,
|
||
threatening to throw me over-board, if I offered to stir. I told them, I was
|
||
their Prisoner, and would submit. This they made me swear to do, and then
|
||
they unbound me, only fastening one of my Legs with a Chain near my
|
||
Bed, and placed a Centry at my Door, with his Piece charged, who was
|
||
commanded to shoot me dead, if I attempted my Liberty. They sent me
|
||
down Victuals and Drink, and took the Government of the Ship to
|
||
themselves. Their Design was to turn Pyrates, and plunder the Spaniards,
|
||
which they could not do, till they got more Men. But first they resolved to
|
||
sell the Goods in the Ship, and then go to Madagascar for Recruits, several
|
||
among them having died since my Confinement. They sailed many Weeks,
|
||
and traded with the Indians, but I knew not what Course they took, being
|
||
kept a close Prisoner in my Cabbin, and expecting nothing less than to be
|
||
murdered, as they often threatened me.
|
||
|
||
Upon the Ninth Day of May 1711, one James Welch came down to my
|
||
Cabbin; and said he had Orders from the Captain to set me a-shore. I
|
||
expostulated with him, but in vain; neither would he so much as tell me
|
||
who their new Captain was. They forced me into the Long-boat, letting me
|
||
put on my best Suit of Cloaths, which were as good as New, and a small
|
||
bundle of Linnen, but no Arms except my Hanger; and they were so civil
|
||
as not to search my Pockets, into which I conveyed what Money I had, with
|
||
some other little Necessaries. They rowed about a League, and then set me
|
||
down on a Strand. I desired them to tell me what Country it was. They all
|
||
swore they knew no more than myself, but said, that the Captain (as they
|
||
called him) was resolved, after they had sold the Lading, to get rid of me
|
||
in the first Place where they could discover Land. They pushed off
|
||
immediately, advising me to make haste, for Fear of being overtaken by
|
||
the Tide, and so bade me Farewell.
|
||
|
||
In this desolate Condition I advanced forward, and soon got upon Ground,
|
||
where I sate down on a Bank to rest my self, and consider what I had best
|
||
do. When I was a little refreshed I went up into the Country, resolving to
|
||
deliver my self to the first Savages I should meet, and purchase my Life
|
||
from them by some Bracelets, Glass-rings, and other Toys, which Sailors
|
||
usually provide themselves with in those Voyages, and whereof I had some
|
||
about me: The Land was divided by long Rows of Trees, not regularly
|
||
planted, but naturally growing; there was plenty of Grass, and several
|
||
Fields of Oats. I walked very circumspectly for Fear of being surprized, or
|
||
suddenly shot with an Arrow from behind or on either side. I fell into a
|
||
beaten Road, where I saw many Tracks of human Feet, and some of Cows,
|
||
but most of Horses. At last I beheld several Animals in a Field, and one or
|
||
two of the same kind sitting in Trees. Their Shape was very singular and
|
||
deformed, which a little discomposed me, so that I lay down behind a
|
||
Thicket to observe them better. Some of them coming forward near the
|
||
Place where I lay, gave me an Opportunity of distinctly marking their
|
||
Form. Their Heads and Breasts were covered with a thick Hair, some
|
||
frizzled and others lank; they had Beards like Goats, and a long ridge of
|
||
Hair down their Backs and the fore-parts of their Legs and Feet, but the
|
||
rest of their Bodies were bare, so that I might see their Skins, which were
|
||
of a brown buff Colour. They had no Tails, nor any Hair at all on their
|
||
Buttocks, except about the Anus; which, I presume, Nature had placed
|
||
there to defend them as they sate on the Ground; for this Posture they used,
|
||
as well as lying down, and often stood on their hind Feet. They climbed
|
||
high Trees, as nimbly as a Squirrel, for they had strong extended Claws
|
||
before and behind, terminating in sharp points, and hooked. They would
|
||
often spring, and bound, and leap with prodigious Agility. The Females
|
||
were not so large as the Males, they had long lank Hair on their Heads, but
|
||
none on their Faces, nor any thing more than a sort of Down on the rest of
|
||
their Bodies, except about the Anus, and Pudenda. Their Dugs hung
|
||
between their Fore-feet, and often reached almost to the Ground as they
|
||
walked. The Hair of both Sexes was of several Colours, brown, red, black
|
||
and yellow. Upon the whole, I never beheld in all my Travels so
|
||
disagreeable an Animal, nor one against which I naturally conceived so
|
||
strong an Antipathy. So that thinking I had seen enough, full of Contempt
|
||
and Aversion, I got up and pursued the beaten Road, hoping it might direct
|
||
me to the Cabbin of some Indian. I had not got far when I met one of these
|
||
Creatures full in my way, and coming up directly to me. The ugly
|
||
Monster, when he saw me, distorted several ways every Feature of his
|
||
Visage, and stared as at an Object he had never seen before; then
|
||
approaching nearer, lifted up his Fore-paw, whether out of Curiosity or
|
||
Mischief, I could not tell. But I drew my Hanger, and gave him a good
|
||
Blow with the flat Side of it, for I durst not strike him with the Edge,
|
||
fearing the Inhabitants might be provoked against me, if they should come
|
||
to know, that I had killed or maimed any of their Cattle. When the Beast
|
||
felt the smart, he drew back, and roared so loud, that a Herd of at least
|
||
forty came flocking about me from the next Field, houling and making
|
||
odious Faces; but I ran to the Body of a Tree, and leaning my Back against
|
||
it, kept them off, by waving my Hanger. Several of this cursed Brood
|
||
getting hold of the Branches behind, leaped up in the Tree, from whence
|
||
they began to discharge their Excrements on my Head: However, I escaped
|
||
pretty well, by sticking close to the Stem of the Tree, but was almost stifled
|
||
with the Filth, which fell about me on every side.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of this Distress, I observed them all to run away on a sudden
|
||
as fast as they could, at which I ventured to leave the Tree, and pursue the
|
||
Road, wondring what it was that could put them into this Fright. But
|
||
looking on my Left-hand, I saw a Horse walking softly in the Field: which
|
||
my Persecutors having sooner discovered, was the Cause of their Flight.
|
||
The Horse started a little when he came near me, but soon recovering
|
||
himself, looked full in my Face with manifest Tokens of Wonder: He
|
||
viewed my Hands and Feet, walking round me several times. I would have
|
||
pursued my Journey, but he placed himself directly in the way, yet looking
|
||
with a very mild Aspect, never offering the least Violence. We stood
|
||
gazing at each other for some time; at last I took the Boldness, to reach my
|
||
Hand towards his Neck, with a Design to stroak it using the common Style
|
||
and Whistle of Jockies when they are going to handle a strange Horse. But
|
||
this Animal seeming to receive my Civilities with Disdain, shook his Head,
|
||
and bent his Brows, softly raising up his right Fore-foot to remove my
|
||
Hand. Then he neighed three or four times, but in so different a Cadence,
|
||
that I almost began to think he was speaking to himself in some Language
|
||
of his own.
|
||
|
||
While he and I were thus employed, another Horse came up; who applying
|
||
himself to the first in a very formal Manner, they gently struck each
|
||
other's right Hoof before, neighing several times by turns, and varying the
|
||
Sound, which seemed to be almost articulate. They went some Paces off, as
|
||
if it were to confer together, walking Side by Side, backward and forward,
|
||
like Persons deliberating upon some Affair of Weight, but often turning
|
||
their Eyes towards me, as it were to watch that I might not escape. I was
|
||
amazed to see such Actions and Behaviours in brute Beasts, and concluded
|
||
with myself, that if the Inhabitants of this Country were endued with a
|
||
proportionable Degree of Reason, they must needs be the wisest People
|
||
upon Earth. This Thought gave me so much Comfort, that I resolved to go
|
||
forward until I could discover some House or Village, or meet with any of
|
||
the Natives, leaving the two Horses to discourse together as they pleased.
|
||
But the first, who was a Dapple-Gray, observing me to steal off, neighed
|
||
after me in so expressive a Tone, that I fancied myself to understand what
|
||
he meant; whereupon I turned back, and came near him, to expect his
|
||
farther Commands. But concealing my Fear as much as I could, for I began
|
||
to be in some Pain, how this Adventure might terminate; and the Reader
|
||
will easily believe I did not much like my present Situation.
|
||
|
||
The two Horses came up close to me, looking with great Earnestness upon
|
||
my Face and Hands. The gray Steed rubbed my Hat all round with his right
|
||
Fore-hoof, and discomposed it so much, that I was forced to adjust it
|
||
better, by taking it off, and settling it again; whereat both he and his
|
||
Companion (who was a brown bay) appeared to be much surprized, the
|
||
latter felt the Lappet of my Coat, and finding it to hang loose about me,
|
||
they both looked with new Signs of Wonder. He stroked my Right-hand,
|
||
seeming to admire the Softness, and Colour; but he squeezed it so hard
|
||
between his Hoof and his Pastern, that I was forced to roar; after which
|
||
they both touched me with all possible Tenderness. They were under great
|
||
Perplexity about my Shoes and Stockings, which they felt very often,
|
||
neighing to each other, and using various Gestures, not unlike those of a
|
||
Philosopher, when he would attempt to solve some new and difficult
|
||
Ph<EFBFBD>nomenon.
|
||
|
||
Upon the whole, the Behaviour of these Animals was so orderly and
|
||
rational, so acute and judicious, that I at last concluded, they must needs be
|
||
Magicians, who had thus metamorphosed themselves upon some design, and
|
||
seeing a Stranger in the way, were resolved to divert themselves with him;
|
||
or perhaps were really amazed at the sight of a Man so very different in
|
||
Habit, Feature, and Complection from those who might probably live so
|
||
remote a Climate. Upon the Strength of this Reasoning, I ventured to
|
||
address them in the following Manner: Gentlemen, if you be Conjurers, as
|
||
I have good Cause to believe, you can understand any Language; therefore
|
||
I make bold to let your Worships know that I am a poor distressed English
|
||
Man, driven by his Misfortunes upon your Coast, and I entreat one of you,
|
||
to let me ride upon his Back, as if he were a real Horse, to some House or
|
||
Village, where I can be relieved. In return of which Favour, I will make
|
||
you a Present of this Knife and Bracelet (taking them out of my Pocket).
|
||
The two Creatures stood silent while I spoke, seeming to listen with great
|
||
Attention; and when I had ended, they neighed frequently towards each
|
||
other, as if they were engaged in serious Conversation. I plainly observed,
|
||
that their Language expressed the Passions very well, and their Words
|
||
might with little Pains be resolved into an Alphabet more easily than the
|
||
Chinese.
|
||
|
||
I could frequently distinguish the Word Yahoo, which was repeated by
|
||
each of them several times; and altho' it was impossible for me to
|
||
conjecture what it meant; yet while the two Horses were busy in
|
||
Conversation, I endeavoured to practice this Word upon my Tongue; and
|
||
as soon as they were silent, I boldly pronounced Yahoo in a loud Voice,
|
||
imitating, at the same time, as near as I could, the Neighing of a Horse; at
|
||
which they were both visibly surprized, and the Gray repeated the same
|
||
Word twice, as if he meant to teach me the right Accent, wherein I spoke
|
||
after him as well as I could, and found myself perceivably to improve
|
||
every time, though very far from any Degree of Perfection. Then the Bay
|
||
tried me with a second Word, much harder to be pronounced; but reducing
|
||
it to the English Orthography, may be spelt thus, Houyhnhnm. I did not
|
||
succeed in this so well as the former, but after two or three farther Trials,
|
||
I had better Fortune; and they both appeared amazed at my Capacity.
|
||
|
||
After some further Discourse; which I then conjectured might relate to me,
|
||
the two Friends took their Leaves, with the same Compliment of striking
|
||
each other's Hoof; and the Gray made me Signs that I should walk before
|
||
him, wherein I thought it prudent to comply, till I could find a better
|
||
Director. When I offered to slacken my Pace, he would cry Hhuun, Hhuun;
|
||
I guessed his Meaning, and gave him to understand as well as I could, that I
|
||
was weary, and not able to walk faster; upon which he would stand a while
|
||
to let me rest.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The Author conducted by a Houyhnhnm to his House. The House described.
|
||
The Author's Reception. The Food of the Houyhnhnms. The Author in
|
||
Distress for Want of Meat, is at last relieved. His Manner of feeding in this
|
||
Country.
|
||
|
||
HAVING traveled about three Miles, we came to a long kind of Building,
|
||
made of Timber, stuck in the Ground, and wattled a-cross; the Roof was
|
||
low, and covered with Straw. I now began to be a little comforted, and
|
||
took out some Toys, which Travellers usually carry for Presents to the
|
||
Savage Indians of America and other Parts, in hopes the People of the
|
||
House would be thereby encouraged to receive me kindly. The Horse made
|
||
me a Sign to go in first; it was a large Room with a smooth Clay Floor, and
|
||
a Rack and Manger extending the whole Length on one side. There were
|
||
three Nags, and two Mares, not eating, but some of them sitting down upon
|
||
their Hams, which I very much wondered at; but wondered more to see the
|
||
rest employed in domestick Business. These seemed but ordinary Cattle,
|
||
however this confirmed my first Opinion, that a People who could so far
|
||
civilize brute Animals, must needs excel in Wisdom all the Nations of the
|
||
World. The Gray came in just after, and thereby prevented any ill
|
||
Treatment, which the others might have given me. He neighed to them
|
||
several times in a style of Authority, and received Answers.
|
||
|
||
Beyond this Room there were three others, reaching the Length of the
|
||
House, to which you passed through three Doors, opposite to each other, in
|
||
the manner of a Vista; we went through the second Room towards the
|
||
third, here the Gray walked in first, beckoning me to attend: I waited in the
|
||
second Room, and got ready my Presents, for the Master and Mistress of
|
||
the House: They were two Knives, three Bracelets of false Pearl, a small
|
||
Looking-glass and a Bead Necklace. The Horse neighed three or four
|
||
times, and I waited to hear some Answers in a human Voice, but I heard no
|
||
other Returns, than in the same Dialect, only one or two a little shriller
|
||
than his. I began to think that this House must belong to some Person of
|
||
great Note among them, because there appeared so much Ceremony before
|
||
I could gain Admittance. But, that a Man of Quality should be served all by
|
||
Horses, was beyond my Comprehension. I feared my Brain was disturbed
|
||
by my Sufferings and Misfortunes: I roused my self, and looked about me
|
||
in the Room where I was left alone; this was furnished like the first, only
|
||
after a more elegant Manner. I rubbed my Eyes often, but the same Objects
|
||
still occurred. I pinched my Arms and Sides to awake myself, hoping I
|
||
might be in a Dream. I then absolutely concluded, that all these
|
||
Appearances could be nothing else but Necromancy and Magick. But I had
|
||
no time to pursue these Reflections; for the Gray Horse came to the Door,
|
||
and made me a Sign to follow him into the third Room, where I saw a very
|
||
comely Mare, together with a Colt and Fole, sitting on their Haunches,
|
||
upon Matts of Straw, not unartfully made, and perfectly neat and clean.
|
||
|
||
The Mare soon after my Entrance, rose from her Matt, and coming up
|
||
close, after having nicely observed my Hands and Face, gave me a most
|
||
contemptuous Look; then turning to the Horse, I heard the Word Yahoo
|
||
often repeated betwixt them; the Meaning of which Word I could not then
|
||
comprehend, although it were the first I had learned to pronounce; but I
|
||
was soon better informed, to my everlasting Mortification: For the Horse
|
||
beckoning to me with his Head, and repeating the Word Hhuun, Hhuun, as
|
||
he did upon the Road, which I understood was to attend him, led me out
|
||
into a kind of Court, where was another Building at some Distance from
|
||
the House. Here we enter'd, and I saw three of these detestable Creatures,
|
||
whom I first met after my Landing, feeding upon Roots, and the Flesh of
|
||
some Animals, which I afterwards found to be that of Asses and Dogs, and
|
||
now and then a Cow dead by Accident or Disease. They were all tyed by
|
||
the Neck with strong Wyths fastened to a Beam; they held their Food
|
||
between the Claws of their Fore-feet, and tore it with their Teeth.
|
||
|
||
The Master Horse ordered a Sorrel Nag, one of his Servants, to untie the
|
||
largest of these Animals, and take him into the Yard. The Beast and I were
|
||
brought close together; and our Countenances diligently compared, both by
|
||
Master and Servant, who thereupon repeated several times the Word
|
||
Yahoo. My Horror and Astonishment are not to be described, when I
|
||
observed, in this abominable Animal, a perfect human Figure; the Face of
|
||
it indeed was flat and broad, the Nose depressed, the Lips large, and the
|
||
Mouth wide. But these Differences are common to all Savage Nations,
|
||
where the Lineaments of the Countenance are distorted by the Natives
|
||
suffering their Infants to lie groveling on the Earth, or by carrying them
|
||
on their Backs, nuzzling with their Face against the Mother's Shoulders.
|
||
The Fore- feet of the Yahoo differed from my Hands in nothing else, but
|
||
the Length of the Nails, the Coarseness and Brownness of the Palms, and
|
||
the Hairiness on the Backs. There was the same Resemblance between our
|
||
Feet, with the same Differences, which I knew very well, tho' the Horses
|
||
did not, because of my Shoes and Stockings; the same in every Part of our
|
||
Bodies, except as to Hairiness and Colour, which I have already described.
|
||
|
||
The great Difficulty that seemed to stick with the two Horses, was, to see
|
||
the rest of my Body so very different from that of a Yahoo, for which I
|
||
was obliged to my Cloaths whereof they had no Conception: The Sorrel
|
||
Nag offered me a Root, which he held (after their Manner, as we shall
|
||
describe in its proper Place) between his Hoof and Pastern; I took it in my
|
||
Hand, and having smelt it, returned it to him again as civilly as I could. He
|
||
brought out of the Yahoo's Kennel a Piece of Ass's Flesh, but it smelt so
|
||
offensively that I turned from it with loathing; he then threw it to the
|
||
Yahoo, by whom it was greedily devoured. He afterwards shewed me a
|
||
Whisp of Hay, and a Fetlock full of Oats; but I shook my Head, to signify
|
||
that neither of these were Food for me. And indeed, I now apprehended,
|
||
that I must absolutely starve, if I did not get to some of my own Species:
|
||
For as to those filthy Yahoos, although there were few greater Lovers of
|
||
Mankind, at that time, than myself; yet I confess I never saw any sensitive
|
||
Being so detestable on all Accounts; and the more I came near them, the
|
||
more hateful they grew, while I stayed in that Country. This the Master
|
||
Horse observed by my Behaviour, and therefore sent the Yahoo back to his
|
||
Kennel. He then put his Fore- hoof to his Mouth, at which I was much
|
||
surprized, although he did it with Ease, and with a Motion that appeared
|
||
perfectly natural, and made other Signs to know what I would eat; but I
|
||
could not return him such an Answer as he was able to apprehend; and if
|
||
he had understood me, I did not see how it was possible to contrive any
|
||
way for finding my self Nourishment. While we were thus engaged, I
|
||
observed a Cow passing by, whereupon I pointed to her, and expressed a
|
||
Desire to let me go and milk her. This had its Effect; for he led me back
|
||
into the House, and ordered a Mare-Servant to open a Room, where a good
|
||
store of Milk lay in Earthen and Wooden Vessels, after a very orderly and
|
||
cleanly Manner. She gave me a large Bowl full, of which I drank very
|
||
heartily, and found my self well refreshed.
|
||
|
||
About Noon I saw coming towards the House a kind of Vehicle, drawn like
|
||
a Sledge by Four Yahoos. There was in it an old Steed, who seemed to be
|
||
of Quality, he alighted with his Hind-feet forward, having by Accident got
|
||
a Hurt in his Left Fore-foot. He came to dine with our Horse, who received
|
||
him with great Civility. They dined in the best Room, and had Oats boiled
|
||
in Milk for the second Course, which the old Horse ate warm, but the rest
|
||
cold. Their Mangers were placed circular in the middle of the Room, and
|
||
divided into several Partitions, round which they sate on their Haunches
|
||
upon Bosses of Straw. In the Middle was a large Rack with Angles
|
||
answering to every Partition of the Manger. So that each Horse and Mare
|
||
eat their own Hay, and their own Mash of Oats and Milk, with much
|
||
Decency and Regularity. The Behaviour of the young Colt and Fole
|
||
appeared very modest, and that of the Master and Mistress extremely
|
||
cheerful and complaisant to their Guest. The Grey ordered me to stand by
|
||
him, and much Discourse passed between him and his Friend concerning
|
||
me, as I found by the Stranger's often looking on me, and the frequent
|
||
Repetition of the Word Yahoo.
|
||
|
||
I happened to wear my Gloves, which the Master-Gray observing, seemed
|
||
perplexed, discovering Signs of Wonder what I had done to my Fore- feet;
|
||
he put his Hoof three or four times to them, as if he would signify, that I
|
||
should reduce them to their former Shape, which I presently did, pulling
|
||
off both my Gloves, and putting them into my Pocket. This occasioned
|
||
farther Talk, and I saw the Company was pleased with my Behaviour,
|
||
whereof I soon found the good Effects. I was ordered to speak the few
|
||
Words I understood, and while they were at Dinner, the Master taught me
|
||
the Names for Oats, Milk, Fire, Water, and some others; which I could
|
||
readily pronounce after him, having from my Youth a great Facility in
|
||
learning Languages.
|
||
|
||
When Dinner was done, the Master Horse took me aside, and by Signs and
|
||
Words made me understand the Concern that he was in, that I had nothing
|
||
to eat. Oats in their Tongue are called hlunnh. This Word I pronounced
|
||
two or three times; for although I had refused them at first, yet upon
|
||
second Thoughts I considered that I could contrive to make of them a kind
|
||
of Bread, which might be sufficient with Milk to keep me alive, till I could
|
||
make my Escape to some other Country, and to Creatures of my own
|
||
Species. The Horse immediately ordered a White Mare-servant of his
|
||
Family to bring me a good Quantity of Oats in a sort of Wooden Tray.
|
||
These I heated before the Fire as well as I could, and rubbed them till the
|
||
Husks came off, which I made a shift to winnow from the Grain; I ground
|
||
and beat them between two Stones, then took Water, and made them into a
|
||
Paste or Cake, which I toasted at the Fire, and eat warm with Milk. It was
|
||
at first a very insipid Diet, though common enough in many Parts of
|
||
Europe, but grew tolerable by Time; and having been often reduced to
|
||
hard Fare in my Life, this was not the first Experiment I had made how
|
||
easily Nature is satisfied. And I cannot but observe, that I never had one
|
||
Hour's Sickness, while I staid in this Island. 'Tis true, I sometimes made a
|
||
shift to catch a Rabbet, or Bird, by Springes made of Yahoos Hair, and I
|
||
often gathered wholesome Herbs, which I boiled, or eat as Salades with my
|
||
Bread, and now and then, for a Rarity, I made a little Butter, and drank the
|
||
Whey. I was at first at a great loss for Salt; but Custom soon reconciled the
|
||
Want of it; and I am confident that the frequent use of Salt among us is an
|
||
Effect of Luxury, and was first introduced only as a Provocative to Drink;
|
||
except where it is necessary for preserving of Flesh in long Voyages, or in
|
||
Places remote from great Markets. For we observe no Animal to be fond
|
||
of it but Man: And as to myself, when I left this Country, it was a great
|
||
while before I could endure the Taste of it in anything that I eat.
|
||
|
||
This is enough to say upon the Subject of my Dyet, wherewith other
|
||
Travellers fill their Books, as if the Readers were personally concerned,
|
||
whether we fared well or ill. However, it necessary to mention this Matter,
|
||
lest the World should think it impossible that I could find Sustenance for
|
||
three Years in such a Country, and among such Inhabitants.
|
||
|
||
When it grew towards Evening, the Master Horse ordered a Place for me
|
||
to lodge in: it was but Six Yards from the House, and separated from the
|
||
Stable of the Yahoos. Here I got some Straw, and covering myself with my
|
||
own Cloaths, slept very sound. But I was in a short time better
|
||
accommodated, as the Reader shall know hereafter, when I come to treat
|
||
more particularly about my way of living.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The Author studious to learn the Language, the Houyhnhnm, his Master
|
||
assists in teaching him. The Language described. Several Houyhnhnms of
|
||
Quality come out of Curiosity to see the Author. His gives his Master a
|
||
short Account of his Voyage.
|
||
|
||
MY PRINCIPAL Endeavour was to learn the Language, which my Master
|
||
(for so I shall henceforth call him) and his Children, and every Servant of
|
||
his House, were desirous to teach me. For they looked upon it as a Prodigy
|
||
that a brute Animal should discover such Marks of a rational Creature. I
|
||
pointed to every Thing and enquired the Name of it, which I wrote down
|
||
in my Journal Book when I was alone, and corrected my bad Accent by
|
||
desiring those of the Family to pronounce it often. In this Employment, a
|
||
Sorrel Nag, one of the under Servants, was ready to assist me.
|
||
|
||
In speaking, they pronounce through the Nose and Throat, and their
|
||
Language approaches nearest to the High-Dutch or German, of any I know
|
||
in Europe; but is much more graceful and significant. The Emperor
|
||
Charles V. made almost the same Observation, when he said, That if he
|
||
were to speak to his Horse, it should be in High Dutch.
|
||
|
||
The Curiosity and Impatience of my Master were so great, that he spent
|
||
many Hours of his Leisure to instruct me. He was convinced (as he
|
||
afterwards told me) that I must be a Yahoo, but my Teachableness,
|
||
Civility, and Cleanliness, astonished him; which were Qualities altogether
|
||
so opposite to those Animals, he was most perplexed about my Cloaths,
|
||
reasoning sometimes with himself whether they were a Part of my Body;
|
||
for I never pulled them off till the Family were asleep, and got them on
|
||
before they waked in the Morning. My Master was eager to learn from
|
||
where I came, how I acquired those Appearances of Reason, which I
|
||
discovered in all my Actions, and to know my Story from my own Mouth,
|
||
which he hoped he should soon do by the great Proficiency I made in
|
||
learning and pronouncing their Words and Sentences. To help my
|
||
Memory, I formed all I learned into the English Alphabet, and wrote the
|
||
Words down with the Translations. This last, after some time I ventured to
|
||
do in my Master's Presence. It cost me much Trouble to explain to him
|
||
what I was doing; for the Inhabitants have not the least idea of Books or
|
||
Literature.
|
||
|
||
In about Ten Weeks time I was able to understand most of his Questions,
|
||
and in three Months could give him some tolerable Answers. He was
|
||
extremely curious to know from what Part of the Country I came, and how
|
||
I was taught to imitate a rational Creature; because the Yahoos (whom he
|
||
saw I exactly resembled in my Head, Hands, and Face, that were only
|
||
visible,) with some Appearance of Cunning, and the strongest Disposition
|
||
to Mischief, were observed to be the most unteachable of all Brutes. I
|
||
answered, That I came over the Sea from a far Place, with many others of
|
||
my own Kind, in a great hollow Vessel made of the Bodies of Trees. That
|
||
my Companions forced me to land on this Coast, and then left me to shift
|
||
for myself. It was with some Difficulty, and by the help of many Signs,
|
||
that I brought him to understand me. He replied, That I must needs be
|
||
mistaken, or that I said the Thing which was not. For they have no Word in
|
||
their Language to express Lying or Falsehood. He knew it was impossible
|
||
that there could be a Country beyond the Sea, or that a parcel of Brutes
|
||
could move a Wooden Vessel whither they pleased upon Water. He was
|
||
sure no Houyhnhnm alive could make such a Vessel, nor would trust
|
||
Yahoos to manage it.
|
||
|
||
The Word Houyhnhnm, in their Tongue, signifies a Horse, and in its
|
||
Etymology, the Perfection of Nature. I told my Master, that I was at a loss
|
||
for Expression, but would improve as fast as I could; and hoped in a short
|
||
time I should be able to tell him Wonders: He was pleased to direct his own
|
||
Mare, his Colt and Fole, and the Servants of the Family to take all
|
||
Opportunities of instructing me, and every Day for two or three Hours, he
|
||
was at the same Pains himself: Several Horses and Mares of Quality in the
|
||
Neighbourhood came often to our House upon the Report spread of a
|
||
wonderful Yahoo, that could speak like a Houyhnhnm, and seemed in his
|
||
Words and Actions to discover some Glimmerings of Reason. These
|
||
delighted to converse with me; they put many Questions, and received such
|
||
Answers, as I was able to return. By all these Advantages, I made so great
|
||
a Progress, that in five Months from my arrival, I understood whatever
|
||
was spoke, and could express myself tolerably well.
|
||
|
||
The Houyhnhnms who came to visit my Master with the Design of seeing
|
||
and talking with me, could hardly believe me to be a right Yahoo, because
|
||
my Body had a different Covering from others of my Kind. They were
|
||
astonished to observe me without the usual Hair or Skin, except on my
|
||
Head, Face, and Hands; but I discovered that Secret to my Master, upon an
|
||
Accident, which happened about a Fortnight before.
|
||
|
||
I have already told the Reader, that every Night when the Family were
|
||
gone to Bed it was my Custom, to strip and cover my self with my Cloaths:
|
||
It happened one Morning early, that my Master sent for me, by the Sorrel
|
||
Nag, who was his Valet; when he came, I was fast asleep, my Cloaths fallen
|
||
off on one side, and my Shirt above my Waste. I awakened at the Noise he
|
||
made, and observed him to deliver his Message in some Disorder; after
|
||
which he went to my Master, and in a great Fright gave him a very
|
||
confused Account of what he had seen: This I presently discovered; for
|
||
going as soon as I was dressed, to pay my Attendance upon his Honour, he
|
||
asked me the Meaning of what his Servant had reported, that I was not the
|
||
same Thing when I slept as I appeared to be at other times; that his Valet
|
||
assured him, some Part of me was White, some Yellow, at least not so
|
||
White, and some Brown.
|
||
|
||
I had hitherto concealed the Secret of my Dress, in order to distinguish
|
||
myself as much as I could from that cursed Race of Yahoos; but now I
|
||
found it in vain to do so any longer. Besides, I considered that my Cloaths
|
||
and Shoes would soon wear out, which already were in a declining
|
||
Condition, and must be supplied by some Contrivance from the Hides of
|
||
Yahoos or other Brutes; whereby the whole Secret would be known. I
|
||
therefore told my Master, That in the Country from whence I came, those
|
||
of my kind always covered their Bodies with the Hairs of certain Animals
|
||
prepared by Art, as well for Decency, as to avoid the Inclemencies of Air
|
||
both Hot and Cold; of which, as to my own Person, I would give him
|
||
immediate Conviction, if he pleased to command me; only desiring his
|
||
Excuse, if I did not expose those Parts, that Nature taught us to conceal. He
|
||
said my Discourse was all very strange, but especially the last Part; for he
|
||
could not understand why Nature should teach us to conceal what Nature
|
||
had given. That neither himself nor Family were ashamed of any Parts of
|
||
their Bodies; but however I might do as I pleased. Whereupon, I first
|
||
unbuttoned my Coat and pulled it off. I did the same with my Waste-coat; I
|
||
drew off my Shoes, Stockings, and Breeches. I let my Shirt down to my
|
||
Waste, and drew up the Bottom, fastening it like a girdle about my Middle
|
||
to hide my Nakedness.
|
||
|
||
My Master observed the whole Performance with great Signs of Curiosity
|
||
and Admiration. He took up all my Cloaths in his Pastern, one Piece after
|
||
another, and examined them diligently; he then stroakd my Body very
|
||
gently, and looked round me several times, after which he said, it was plain
|
||
I must be a perfect Yahoo; but that I differed very much from the rest of
|
||
my Species, in the Softness and Whiteness and Smoothness of my Skin, my
|
||
Want of Hair in several Parts of my Body, the Shape and Shortness of my
|
||
Claws behind and before, and my affectation of walking continually on my
|
||
two Hinder-feet. He desired to see no more, and gave me Leave to put on
|
||
my Cloaths again, for I was shuddering with Cold.
|
||
|
||
I expressed my uneasiness at his giving me so often the Appellation of
|
||
Yahoo, an odious Animal, for which I had so utter an Hatred and
|
||
Contempt. I begged he would forbear applying that Word to me, and take
|
||
the same Order in his Family, and among his Friends whom he suffered to
|
||
see me. I requested likewise, that the Secret of my having a false Covering
|
||
to my Body might be known to none but Himself, at least as long as my
|
||
present Cloathing should last; for as to what the Sorrel Nag his Valet had
|
||
observed, his Honour might command him to conceal it.
|
||
|
||
All this my Master very graciously consented to, and thus the Secret was
|
||
kept till my Cloaths began to wear out, which I was forced to supply by
|
||
several Contrivances, that shall hereafter be mentioned. In the mean time,
|
||
he desired I would go on with my utmost Diligence to learn their
|
||
Language, because he was more astonished at my Capacity for Speech and
|
||
Reason, than at the Figure of my Body, whether it were covered or no;
|
||
adding that he waited with some Impatience to hear the Wonders which I
|
||
promised to tell him.
|
||
|
||
From thenceforward he doubled the Pains he had been at to instruct me; he
|
||
brought me into all Company, and made them treat me with Civility,
|
||
because, as he told them privately, this would put me into good Humour,
|
||
and make me more diverting.
|
||
|
||
Every Day when I waited on him, beside the Trouble he was at in teaching,
|
||
he would ask me several Questions concerning myself, which I answered as
|
||
well as I could; and by these Means he had already received some general
|
||
Ideas, though very imperfect. It would be tedious to relate the several
|
||
Steps, by which I advanced to a more regular Conversation: But the first
|
||
Account I gave of myself in any Order and Length, was to this Purpose:
|
||
|
||
That I came from a very far Country, as I already had attempted to tell
|
||
him with about Fifty more of my own Species; that we travelled upon the
|
||
Seas, in a great hollow Vessel made of Wood, and larger than his Honour's
|
||
House. I described the Ship to him in the best Terms I could, and explained
|
||
by the help of my Handkerchief displayed, how it was driven forward by
|
||
the Wind. That upon a Quarrel among us, I was set on Shoar on this Coast,
|
||
where I walked forward without knowing whither, till he delivered me
|
||
from the Persecution of those execrable Yahoos. He asked me, Who made
|
||
the Ship, and how it was possible that theHouyhnhnms of my Country
|
||
would leave it to the Management of Brutes? My Answer was, That I durst
|
||
proceed no further in my Relation, unless he would give me his Word and
|
||
Honour that he would not be offended, and then I would tell him the
|
||
Wonders I had so often promised. He agreed; and I went on by assuring
|
||
him, that the Ship was made by Creatures like myself, who in all the
|
||
Countries I had travelled, as well as in my own, were the only governing,
|
||
rational Animals; and that upon my Arrival hither, I was as much
|
||
astonished to see theHouyhnhnms act like rational beings, as he or his
|
||
Friends could be finding some Marks of Reason in a Creature he was
|
||
pleased to call a Yahoo, to which I owned my Resemblance in every Part,
|
||
but could not account for their degenerate and brutal Nature. I said farther,
|
||
That if good Fortune ever restored me to my native Country, to relate my
|
||
Travels hither, as I resolved to do, every body would believe that I said the
|
||
Thing which was not; that I invented the Story out of my own Head; and
|
||
with all possible respect to Himself, his Family, and Friends, and under his
|
||
Promise of not being offended, our Countrymen would hardly think it
|
||
probable, that a Houyhnhnm should be the presiding Creature of a Nation,
|
||
and a Yahoo the Brute.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The Houyhnhnm notion of Truth and Falsehood. The Author's Discourse
|
||
disapproved by his Master. The Author gives a more particular Account of
|
||
himself, and the Accidents of his Voyage.
|
||
|
||
MY MASTER heard me with great Appearances of Uneasiness in his
|
||
Countenance, because Doubting, or not believing, are so little known in this
|
||
Country, that the Inhabitants cannot tell how to behave themselves under
|
||
such Circumstances. And I remember in frequent Discourses with my
|
||
Master concerning the Nature of Manhood, in other Parts of the World,
|
||
having occasion to talk of Lying, and false Representation, it was with
|
||
much Difficulty that he comprehended what I meant, although he had
|
||
otherwise a most acute Judgment. For he argued thus: That the Use of
|
||
Speech was to make us understand one another, and to receive Information
|
||
of Facts; now if anyone said the Thing which was not, these Ends were
|
||
Defeated; because I cannot properly be said to understand him; and I am so
|
||
far from receiving Information, that he leaves me worse than in Ignorance,
|
||
for I am led to believe a Thing Black when it is White, and Short when it is
|
||
Long. And these were all the Notions he had concerning that Faculty of
|
||
Lying, so perfectly well understood among human Creatures.
|
||
|
||
To return from this Digression; when I asserted that the Yahoos were the
|
||
only governing Animals in my Country, which my Master said was
|
||
altogether past his Conception, he desired to know whether we had
|
||
Houyhnhnms among us, and what was their Employment: I told him we
|
||
had great Numbers, that in Summer they grazed in the Fields, and in
|
||
Winter were kept in Houses, with Hay and Oats, when Yahoo-Servants
|
||
were employed to rub their Skins smooth, comb their Manes, pick their
|
||
Feet, serve them with Food, and make their Beds. I understand you well,
|
||
said my Master, it is now very plain, from all you have spoken, that
|
||
whatever share of Reason the Yahoos pretend to, the Houyhnhnms are your
|
||
Masters; I heartily wish our Yahoos would be so tractable. I begged his
|
||
Honour would please to excuse me from proceeding any farther, because I
|
||
was very certain that the Account he expected from me would be highly
|
||
displeasing. But he insisted in commanding me to let him know the best and
|
||
the worst: I told him, he should be obeyed. I owned, that
|
||
theHouyhnhnmsamong us, whom we called Horses, were the most generous
|
||
and comely Animal we had, that they excelled in Strength and Swiftness;
|
||
and when they belonged to Persons of Quality, employed in Travelling,
|
||
Racing, or drawing Chariots, they were treated with much Kindness and
|
||
Care, till they fell into Diseases or became foundred in the Feet; and then
|
||
they were sold, and used to all kind of Drudgery till they died; after which
|
||
their Skins were stripped and sold for what they were worth, and their
|
||
Bodies left to be devoured by Dogs and Birds of Prey. But the common
|
||
Race of Horses had not so good Fortune, being kept by Farmers and
|
||
Carriers and other mean People, who put them to greater Labor, and feed
|
||
them worse. I described as well as I could, our way of Riding, the Shape
|
||
and Use of a Bridle, a Saddle, a Spur, and a Whip, of Harness and Wheels.
|
||
I added, that we fastned Plates of a certain hard Substance called Iron at the
|
||
Bottom of their Feet, to preserve their Hoofs from being broken by the
|
||
Stony Ways on which we often travelled.
|
||
|
||
My Master, after some Expressions of great Indignation, wondered how we
|
||
dared to venture upon a Houyhnhnm's Back, for he was sure, that the
|
||
weakest Servant in his House would be able to shake off the strongest
|
||
Yahoo, or by lying down, and rolling on his Back, squeeze the Brute to
|
||
Death. I answered, That our Horses were trained up from three or four
|
||
Years old to the several uses we intended them for; That if any of them
|
||
proved intolerably vicious, they were employed for Carriages; that they
|
||
were severely beaten while they were young, for any mischievous Tricks:
|
||
That the Males, designed for common Use of Riding or Draught, were
|
||
generally castrated about two Years after their Birth, to take down their
|
||
Spirits, and make them more tame and gentle; that they were indeed
|
||
sensible of Rewards and Punishments; but his Honour would please to
|
||
consider, that they had not the least Tincture of Reason any more than the
|
||
Yahoos in this Country.
|
||
|
||
It put me to the pains of many Circumlocutions to give my Master a right
|
||
Idea of what I spoke; for their Language doth not abound in variety of
|
||
Words, because their Wants and Passions are fewer than among us. But it is
|
||
impossible to repeat his noble Resentment at our savage Treatment of the
|
||
Houyhnhnm Race, particularly after I had explained the Manner and use of
|
||
castrating Horses among us, to hinder them from propagating their Kind,
|
||
and to render them more servile. He said. if it were possible there could be
|
||
any Country where Yahoos alone were endued with Reason, they certainly
|
||
must be the governing Animal, because Reason will in time always prevail
|
||
against Brutal Strength. But, considering the Frame of our Bodies, and
|
||
especially of mine, he thought no Creature of equal Bulk was so ill
|
||
contrived, for employing that Reason in the common Office of Life;
|
||
whereupon he desired to know whether those among whom I lived,
|
||
resembled me or the Yahoos of his Country. I assured him, that I was as
|
||
well shaped as most of my Age; but the younger and the Females were
|
||
much more soft and tender, and the Skins of the latter generally as White
|
||
as Milk. He said, I differed indeed from other Yahoos, being much more
|
||
cleanly, and not altogether so deformed, but in point of real Advantage, he
|
||
thought I differed for the worse. That my Nails were of no Use either to
|
||
my Fore or Hinder-Feet: As to my Fore-Feet he could not properly call
|
||
them by that Name, for he never observed me to walk upon them; that they
|
||
were too soft to bear the Ground; that I generally went with them
|
||
uncovered, neither was the Covering I sometimes wore on them, of the
|
||
same Shape, or so strong as that on my Feet behind. That I could not walk
|
||
with any Security, for if either of my Hinder-Feet slipped, I must
|
||
inevitably fall. He then began to find Fault with other Parts of my Body,
|
||
the Flatness of my Face, the Prominence of my Nose, my Eyes placed
|
||
directly in the Front, so that I could not look on either Side without turning
|
||
my Head: That I was not able to feed myself, without lifting one of my
|
||
Fore-Feet to my Mouth: And therefore Nature had placed those Joints to
|
||
Answer that Necessity. He knew not what could be the Use of those several
|
||
Clefts and Divisions in my Feet behind, that these were too soft to bear the
|
||
Hardness and Sharpness of Stones without a Covering made from the Skin
|
||
of some other Brute; that my whole Body wanted a Fence against Heat
|
||
Cold, which I was forced to put on and off every Day with Tediousness and
|
||
Trouble. And lastly, that he observed every Animal in this Country
|
||
naturally to abhor the Yahoos, whom the Weaker avoided, and the
|
||
Stronger drove from them. So that supposing us to have the Gift of Reason,
|
||
he could not see how it were possible to cure that natural Antipathy which
|
||
every Creature discovered against us; nor consequently, how we could
|
||
tame and render them serviceable. However, he would (as he said) debate
|
||
the Matter no farther, because he was more desirous to know my own
|
||
Story, the Country where I was born, and the several Actions and Events
|
||
of my Life before I came hither.
|
||
|
||
I assured him how extremely desirous I was that he should be satisfied in
|
||
every Point; but I doubted much, whether it would be possible for me to
|
||
explain myself on several Subjects whereof his Honour could have no
|
||
Conception, because I saw nothing in his Country to which I could
|
||
resemble them. That however, I would do my best, and strive to express
|
||
myself by Similitudes, humbly desiring his Assistance when I wanted
|
||
proper Words; which he was pleased to promise me.
|
||
|
||
I said, my Birth was of honest Parents in an Island called England, which
|
||
was remote from this Country, as many Days' Journey as the strongest of
|
||
his Honour's Servants could travel in the Annual Course of the Sun. That I
|
||
was bred a Surgeon, whose trade it is to cure Wounds and Hurts in the
|
||
Body, got by Accident or Violence; that my Country was governed by a
|
||
Female Man, whom we called a Queen. That I left it to get Riches, whereby
|
||
I might maintain myself and Family when I should return. That in my last
|
||
Voyage I was Commander of the Ship, and had about fifty Yahoos under
|
||
me, many of which died at Sea, and I was forced to supply them by others
|
||
picked out from several Nations. That our Ship was twice in Danger of
|
||
being sunk; the first time by a great Storm, and the second, by striking
|
||
against a Rock. Here my Master interposed, by asking me, how I could
|
||
persuade Strangers out of different Countries to venture with me, after the
|
||
Losses I had sustained, and the Hazards I had run. I said, they were Fellows
|
||
of desperate Fortunes forced to fly from the Places of their Birth, on
|
||
account of their Poverty or their Crimes. Some were undone by lawsuits;
|
||
others spent all they had in Drinking, Whoring, and Gaming; others fled
|
||
for Treason; many for Murder, Theft, Poysoning, Robbery, Perjury,
|
||
Forgery, Coining false Money, for committing Rapes or Sodomy, for
|
||
flying from their Colours, or deserting to the Enemy, and most of them
|
||
had broken Prison; none of these durst return to their Native Countries for
|
||
Fear of being hanged, or of starving in a Jail; and therefore were under a
|
||
Necessity of seeking a Livelihood in other Places.
|
||
|
||
During this Discourse, my Master was pleased to interrupt me several
|
||
Times; I had made use of many Circumlocutions in describing to him the
|
||
Nature of the several Crimes, for which most of our Crew had been forced
|
||
to fly their Country. This Labour took up several Days Conversation
|
||
before he was able to comprehend me. He was wholly at a Loss to know
|
||
what could be the Use or Necessity of practicing those Vices. To clear up
|
||
which I endeavoured to give some Ideas of the Desire of Power and Riches,
|
||
of the terrible Effects of Lust, Intemperance, Malice and Envy. All this I
|
||
was forced to define and describe by putting of Cases, and making of
|
||
Suppositions. After which, like one whose Imagination was struck with
|
||
something never seen or heard of before, he would lift up his Eyes with
|
||
Amazement and Indignation. Power, Government, War, Law, Punishment,
|
||
and a Thousand other Things had no Terms wherein that Language could
|
||
express them, which made the Difficulty almost insuperable to give my
|
||
Master any Conception of what I meant. But being of an excellent
|
||
Understanding, much improved by Contemplation and Converse, he at last
|
||
arrived at a competent Knowledge of what Human Nature in our Parts of
|
||
the World is capable to perform, and desired I would give him some
|
||
particular Account of that Land, which we call Europe, but especially of
|
||
my own Country.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The Author at his Master's Commands informs him of the State of
|
||
England. The Causes of War among the Princes of Europe. The Author
|
||
begins to explain the English Constitiution.
|
||
|
||
THE READER may please to observe, that the following Extract of many
|
||
Conversations I had with my Master, contains a Summary of the most
|
||
material Points, which were discoursed at several times for above two
|
||
Years; his Honour often desiring fuller Satisfaction as I farther improved
|
||
in the Houyhnhnm Tongue. I laid before him, as well as I could, the whole
|
||
State of Europe; I Discoursed of Trade and Manufactures, of Arts and
|
||
Sciences; and the Answers I gave to all the Questions he made, as they
|
||
arose upon several Subjects, were a Fund of Conversation not to be
|
||
exhausted. But I shall here only set down the Substance of what passed
|
||
between us concerning my own Country, reducing it into Order as well as I
|
||
can, without any Regard to Time or other Circumstances, while I strictly
|
||
adhere to Truth. My only Concern is, that I shall hardly be able to do
|
||
Justice to my Master's Arguments and Expressions, which must needs
|
||
suffer by my want of Capacity, as well as by a Translation into our
|
||
barbarous English.
|
||
|
||
In Obedience therefore to his Honour's Commands, I related to him the
|
||
Revolution under the Prince of Orange; the long War with France entered
|
||
into by the said Prince, and renewed by his Successor the present Queen;
|
||
wherein the greatest Powers of Christendom were engaged, and which still
|
||
continued: I computed at his Request, that about a Million of Yahoos might
|
||
have been killed in the whole Progress of it, and perhaps a Hundred or
|
||
more Cities taken, and thrice as many Ships burnt or sunk.
|
||
|
||
He asked me what were the usual Causes or Motives that made one Country
|
||
go to War with another. I answered they were innumerable, but I should
|
||
only mention a few of the chief. Sometimes the Ambition of Princes, who
|
||
never think they have Land or People enough to govern: Sometimes the
|
||
Corruption of Ministers, who engage their Master in a War in order to
|
||
stifle or divert the Clamour of the Subjects against their Evil
|
||
Administration. Difference in Opinions hath cost many Millions of Lives:
|
||
For instance, whether Flesh be Bread, or Bread be Flesh; whether the Juice
|
||
of a certain Berry be Blood or Wine; whether Whistling be Vice or a
|
||
Virtue; whether it be better to kiss a post, or throw it into the Fire; what is
|
||
the best Colour for a Coat, whether Black, White, Red, or Gray; and
|
||
whether it should be long or short, narrow or wide, dirty or clean; with
|
||
many more. Neither are any Wars so furious and Bloody, or of so long
|
||
Continuance, as those occasioned by Difference in Opinion, especially if it
|
||
be in Things indifferent.
|
||
|
||
Sometimes the Quarrel between two Princes is to which of them shall
|
||
dispossess a third of his Dominions, where neither of them pretend to any
|
||
Right. Sometimes one Prince quarreleth with another, for Fear the other
|
||
should quarrel with him. Sometimes a War is entered upon, because the
|
||
Enemy is too strong, and sometimes because he is too weak. Sometimes our
|
||
Neighbours want the Things which we have, or have the Things which we
|
||
want; and we both fight, till they take ours or give us theirs. It is a very
|
||
justifiable Cause of War to invade a Country after the People have been
|
||
wasted by Famine, destroyed by Pestilence, or embroiled by Factions
|
||
among themselves. It is justifiable to enter into War against our nearest
|
||
Ally, when one of his Towns lies convenient for us, or a Territory of
|
||
Land, that would render our Dominions round and compleat. If a Prince
|
||
sends Forces into a Nation where the People are poor and ignorant, he may
|
||
lawfully put half of them to Death, and make Slaves of the rest, in order to
|
||
civilize and reduce them from their barbarous Way of Living. It is a very
|
||
kingly, honourable, and frequent Practice, when one Prince desires the
|
||
Assistance of another to secure him against an Invasion, that the Assistant,
|
||
when he hath driven out the Invader, should seize on the Dominions
|
||
himself, and kill, imprison or banish the Prince he came to relieve.
|
||
Alliance by Blood or Marriage, is a frequent Cause of War between
|
||
Princes; and the nearer the Kindred is, the greater is their Disposition to
|
||
quarrel: Poor Nations are hungry, and rich Nations are proud; and Pride
|
||
and Hunger will ever be at variance. For those Reasons, the Trade of a
|
||
Soldier is held the most honourable of all others: Because a Soldier is a
|
||
Yahoo hired to kill in cold Blood as many of his own Species, who have
|
||
never offended him, as possibly he can.
|
||
|
||
There is likewise a Kind of beggarly Princes in Europe, not able to make
|
||
War by themselves, who hire out their Troops to richer Nations, for so
|
||
much a Day to each Man; of which they keep three fourths to themselves,
|
||
and it is the best Part of their Maintenance; such are those in many
|
||
Northern Parts of Europe.
|
||
|
||
What you have told me, (said my Master) upon the Subject of War, does
|
||
indeed discover most admirably the Effects of that Reason you pretend to:
|
||
However, it is happy that the Shame is greater than the Danger; and that
|
||
Nature has left you utterly uncapable of doing much Mischief.
|
||
|
||
For your Mouths lying flat with your Faces, you can hardly bite each other
|
||
to any Purpose, unless by Consent. Then as to the Claws upon your Feet
|
||
before and behind, they are so short and tender that one of our Yahoos
|
||
would drive a Dozen of yours before him. And therefore in recounting the
|
||
Numbers of those who have been killed in Battle, I cannot but think that
|
||
you have said the Thing which is not.
|
||
|
||
I could not forbear shaking my Head and smiling a little at his Ignorance.
|
||
And being no Stranger to the Art of War, I gave him a Description of
|
||
Cannons, culverins, Muskets, Carabines, Pistols, Bullets, Powder, Swords,
|
||
Bayonets, Battles, Sieges, Retreats, Attacks, Undermines, Countermines,
|
||
Bombardments, Sea-fights; Ships sunk with a Thousand Men, Twenty
|
||
thousand killed on each Side; dying Groans, Limbs flying in the Air,
|
||
Smoak, Noise, Confusion, trampling to Death under Horses Feet; Flight,
|
||
Pursuit, Victory; Fields strewed with Carcases left for Food to Dogs, and
|
||
Wolves, and Birds of Prey; Plundering, Stripping, Ravishing, Burning, and
|
||
Destroying. And to set forth the Valor of my own dear Countrymen, I
|
||
assured him, that I had seen them blow up a Hundred Enemies at once in a
|
||
Siege, and as many in a Ship, and beheld the dead Bodies come down in
|
||
pieces from the Clouds, to the great Diversion of the Spectators.
|
||
|
||
I was going on to more Particulars, when my Master commanded me
|
||
Silence. He said, Whoever understood the Nature of Yahoos might easily
|
||
believe it possible for so vile an Animal to be capable of every Action I had
|
||
named, if their Strength and Cunning equalled their Malice. But as my
|
||
Discourse had increased his Abhorrence of the whole Species, so he found
|
||
it gave him a Disturbance in his Mind, to which he was wholly a Stranger
|
||
before. He thought his Ears being used to such abominable Words, might
|
||
by Degrees admit them with less Detestation. That although he hated the
|
||
Yahoos of this Country, yet he no more blamed them for their odious
|
||
Qualities, than he did a Gnnayh (a Bird of Prey) for its Cruelty, or a sharp
|
||
Stone for cutting his Hoof. But when a Creature pretending to Reason,
|
||
could be capable of such Enormities, he dreaded lest the Corruption of that
|
||
Faculty might be worse than Brutality itself. He seemed therefore
|
||
confident, that instead of Reason, we were only possessed of some Quality
|
||
fitted to increase our natural Vices; as the Reflection from a troubled
|
||
Stream returns the Image of an ill-shapen Body, not only larger, but more
|
||
distorted.
|
||
|
||
He added, That he had heard too much upon the Subject of War, both in
|
||
this, and some former Discourses. There was another Point which a little
|
||
perplexed him at Present. I had informed him, that some of our Crew left
|
||
their Country on account of being ruined by Law; that I had already
|
||
explained the Meaning of the Word; but he was at a Loss how it should
|
||
come to pass, that the Law which was intended for every Man's
|
||
Preservation, should be any Man's Ruin. Therefore he desired to be further
|
||
satisfied what I meant by Law, and what sort of Dispensers thereof it could
|
||
be by whose Practices the Property of any Person could be lost, instead of
|
||
being preserved. He added, he saw not what great Occasion there could for
|
||
this thing called Law, since all the Intentions and Purposes of it may be
|
||
fully answered by following the Dictates of Nature and Reason, which are
|
||
sufficient Guides for a Reasonable Animal, as we pretended to be, in
|
||
shewing us what we ought to do, and what to avoid.
|
||
|
||
I assured his Honour, that Law was a Science wherein I had not much
|
||
conversed, further than by employing Advocates, in vain, upon some
|
||
Injustices that had been done me: however, I would give him all the
|
||
Satisfaction I was able.
|
||
|
||
I said there was a Society of Men among us, bred up from their Youth in
|
||
the Art of proving by Words multiplied for the Pleasure, that White is
|
||
Black, and Black is White, according as they are paid. To this Society all
|
||
the rest of the People are Slaves.
|
||
|
||
For Example, if my Neighbour hath a Mind to my Cow, he hires a Lawyer
|
||
to prove that he ought to have my Cow from me. I must then hire another
|
||
to defend my Right, it being against all Rules of Law that any Man should
|
||
be allowed to speak for himself. Now in this Case, I who am the right
|
||
Owner lie under two great Disadvantages. First, my Lawyer being
|
||
practiced almost from his Cradle in defending Falshood; is quite out of his
|
||
Element when he would be an Advocate for Justice, which as an Office
|
||
unnatural, he always attempts with great Awkwardness if not with Ill-will.
|
||
The second Disadvantage is, that my Lawyer must proceed with great
|
||
Caution: Or else he will be reprimanded by the Judges, and abhorred by his
|
||
Brethren, as one that would lessen the Practice of the Law. And therefore I
|
||
have but two Methods to preserve my Cow. The first is, to gain over my
|
||
Adversary's Lawyer with a double Fee; who will then betray his Client by
|
||
insinuating that he hath Justice on his Side. The second way is for my
|
||
Lawyer to make my Cause appear as unjust as he can; by the Cow to belong
|
||
to my Adversary; and this, if it be skilfully done, will certainly bespeak the
|
||
Favour of the Bench.
|
||
|
||
Now, your Honour is to know that these Judges are Persons appointed to
|
||
decide all Controversies of Property, as well as for the Tryal of Criminals;
|
||
and picked out from the most dextrous Lawyers who are grown old or
|
||
lazy: And having been byassed all their Lives against Truth and Equity, are
|
||
under such a fatal Necessity of favouring Fraud, Perjury, and Oppression;
|
||
that I have known some of them refuse a large Bribe from the Side where
|
||
Justice lay, rather than injure the Faculty, by doing any thing unbecoming
|
||
their Nature or their Office.
|
||
|
||
It is a Maxim among these Lawyers, that whatever hath been done before,
|
||
may legally be done again: And therefore they take special Care to record
|
||
all the Decisions formerly made against common Justice and the general
|
||
Reason of Mankind. These, under the Name of Precedents, they produce as
|
||
Authorities to justify the most iniquitous Opinions; and the Judges never
|
||
fail of decreeing accordingly.
|
||
|
||
In pleading, they studiously avoid entering into the Merits of the Cause; but
|
||
are loud, violent, and tedious in dwelling upon all Circumstances which are
|
||
not to the Purpose. For Instance, in the Case already mentioned: They
|
||
never desire to know what Claim or Title my Adversary hath to my Cow;
|
||
but whether the said Cow were Red or Black; her Horns long or short;
|
||
whether the Field I graze her in be round or square; whether she was
|
||
milked at home or abroad; what Diseases she is subject to, and the like.
|
||
After which they consult Precedents, adjourn the Cause from Time to
|
||
Time, and in Ten, Twenty, or Thirty Years, come to an Issue.
|
||
|
||
It is likewise to be observed, that this Society has a peculiar Cant and
|
||
Jargon of their own, that no other Mortal can understand, and wherein all
|
||
their Laws are written, which they take special Care to multiply; whereby
|
||
they have gone near to confound the very Essence of Truth and Falsehood,
|
||
of Right and Wrong; so that it may take Thirty Years to decide whether the
|
||
Field, left me by my Ancestors for Six Generations, belongs to me, or to a
|
||
Stranger three hundred Miles off.
|
||
|
||
In the Tryal of Persons accused for Crimes against the State the Method is
|
||
much more short and commendable: The Judge first sends to sound the
|
||
Disposition of those in Power; after which he can easily hang or save the
|
||
Criminal, strictly preserving all due Forms of Law.
|
||
|
||
Here my Master interposing, said it was a Pity that Creatures endowed with
|
||
such prodigious Abilities of Mind as these Lawyers, by the Description I
|
||
gave of them, must certainly be, were not rather encouraged to be
|
||
Instructors of others in Wisdom and Knowledge. In Answer to which, I
|
||
assured his Honour, that in all Points out of their own Trade, they were
|
||
usually the most Ignorant and stupid Generation among us, the most
|
||
despicable in common Conversation, avowed Enemies to all Knowledge
|
||
and Learning; and equally to pervert the general Reason of Mankind in
|
||
every other Subject of Discourse, as in that of their own Profession.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
A Continuation of the State of England. The Character of a first Minister.
|
||
|
||
MY MASTER was yet wholly at a Loss to understand what Motives could
|
||
incite this Race of Lawyers to perplex, disquiet, and weary themselves, and
|
||
engage in a Confederacy of Injustice, merely for the Sake of injuring their
|
||
Fellow-Animals; neither could he comprehend what I meant in saying they
|
||
did it for Hire. Whereupon I was at much Pains to describe to him the Use
|
||
of Money, the Materials it was made of, and the Value of the Metals, that
|
||
when a Yahoo had got a great Store of this precious Substance, he was able
|
||
to purchase whatever he had a Mind to; the finest Cloathing, the noblest
|
||
Houses, great Tracts of Land, the most costly Meats and Drinks, and have
|
||
his choice of the most beautiful Females. Therefore since Money alone, was
|
||
able to perform all these Feats, our Yahoos thought, they could never have
|
||
enough of it to spend or save, as they found themselves inclined from their
|
||
natural Bent either to Profusion or Avarice. That the Rich Man enjoyed the
|
||
Fruit of the Poor Man's Labour, and the Latter were a thousand to one in
|
||
Proportion to the Former. That the Bulk of our People were forced to live
|
||
miserably, by labouring every Day for small Wages to make a few live
|
||
plentifully. I enlarged myself much on these and many other Particulars to
|
||
the same Purpose: But his Honour was still to seek: For he went upon a
|
||
Supposition that all Animals had a Title to their share in the Productions of
|
||
the Earth, and especially those who presided over the rest. Therefore he
|
||
desired I would let him know, what these costly Meats were, and how any
|
||
of us happened to want them. Whereupon I enumerated as many sorts as
|
||
came into my Head, with the various Methods of dressing them, which
|
||
could not be done without sending Vessels by Sea to every Part of the
|
||
World, as well for Liquors to Drink, as for Sauces, and innumerable other
|
||
Conveniences. I assured him, that this whole Globe of Earth must be at
|
||
least three times gone round, before one of our better Female Yahoos
|
||
could get her Breakfast or a Cup to put it in. He said, That must needs be a
|
||
miserable Country which cannot furnish Food for its own Inhabitants. But
|
||
what he chiefly wondered at was how such vast Tracts of Grounds as I
|
||
described should be wholly without Fresh-water, and the People put to the
|
||
Necessity of sending over the Sea for Drink. I replied, that England (the
|
||
dear Place of my Nativity) was computed to produce three times the
|
||
Quantity of Food, more than its Inhabitants are able to consume, as well as
|
||
Liquors extracted from Grain, or pressed out of the Fruit of certain Trees,
|
||
which made excellent Drink, and the same Proportion in every other
|
||
Convenience of Life. But in order to feed the Luxury and Intemperance of
|
||
the Males, and the Vanity of the Females, we sent away the greatest Part of
|
||
our necessary Things to other Countries, from whence in return we
|
||
brought the Materials of Diseases, Folly, and Vice, to spend among
|
||
ourselves. Hence it follows of Necessity, that vast Numbers of our People
|
||
are compelled to seek their Livelihood by Begging, Robbing, Stealing,
|
||
Cheating, Pimping, Forswearing, Flattering, Suborning, Forging, Gaming,
|
||
Lying, Fawning, Hectoring, Voting, Scribbling, Stargazing, Poysoning,
|
||
Whoring, Canting, Libelling, Free-thinking, and the like Occupations:
|
||
Every one of which Terms, I was at much Pains to make him understand.
|
||
|
||
That Wine was not imported among us from foreign Countries, to supply
|
||
the want of Water or other Drinks, but because it was a sort of Liquid
|
||
which made us merry, by putting us out of our Senses; diverted all
|
||
melancholy Thoughts, begat wild extravagant Imaginations in the Brain,
|
||
raised our Hopes, and banished our Fears, suspended every Office of
|
||
Reason for a time, and deprived us of the use of our Limbs, till we fell into
|
||
a profound Sleep; although it must be confessed, that we always awoke sick
|
||
and dispirited, and that the use of this Liquor filled us with Diseases, which
|
||
made our Lives uncomfortable and short.
|
||
|
||
But beside all this, the Bulk of our People supported themselves by
|
||
furnishing the Necessities and Conveniences of Life to the Rich, and to each
|
||
other. For Instance, when I am at home and dressed as I ought to be, I
|
||
carry on my Body the Workmanship of an Hundred Tradesmen; the
|
||
Building and Furniture of my House employ as many more, and five times
|
||
the Number to adorn my Wife.
|
||
|
||
I was going on to tell him of another sort of People, who get their
|
||
Livelihood by attending the Sick, having upon some Occasions informed
|
||
his Honour that many of my Crew had died of Diseases. But here it was
|
||
with the utmost Difficulty, that I brought him to apprehend what I meant.
|
||
He could easily conceive, that a Houyhnhnm grew weak and heavy a few
|
||
Days before his Death, or by some Accident might hurt a Limb. But that
|
||
Nature, who works all Things to Perfection, should suffer any Pains to
|
||
breed in our Bodies, he thought impossible, and desired to know the
|
||
Reason of so unaccountable an Evil. I told him, we fed on a thousand
|
||
Things which operated contrary to each other; that we ate when we were
|
||
not hungry, and drank without the Provocation of Thirst; That we sate
|
||
whole Nights drinking strong Liquors without eating a Bit, which disposed
|
||
us to Sloth, inflamed our Bodies, and precipitated or prevented Digestion.
|
||
That prostitute Female Yahoos acquired a certain Malady, which bred
|
||
Rottenness in the Bones of those, who fell into their Embraces; That this
|
||
and many other Diseases, were propagated from Father to Son, so that
|
||
great Numbers come into the World with complicated Maladies upon them;
|
||
that it would be endless to give him a Catalogue of all Diseases incident to
|
||
human Bodies; for they could not be fewer than five or six hundred, spread
|
||
over every Limb and Joynt; in short, every Part, external and intestine,
|
||
having Diseases appropriated to them. To remedy which, there was a sort
|
||
of People bred up among us, in the Profession or Pretense of curing the
|
||
Sick. And because I had some Skill in the Faculty, I would in Gratitude to
|
||
his Honour, let him know the whole Mystery and Method by which they
|
||
proceed.
|
||
|
||
Their Fundamental is, That all Diseases arise from Repletion, from which
|
||
they conclude, that a great Evacuation of the Body is necessary, either
|
||
through the natural Passage, or upwards at the Mouth. Their next Business
|
||
is, from Herbs, Minerals, Gums, Oils, Shells, Salts, Juices, Seaweed,
|
||
Excrements, Barks of Trees, Serpents, Toads, Frogs, Spiders, dead Men's
|
||
Flesh and Bones, Birds, Beasts and Fishes, to form a Composition for
|
||
Smell and Taste the most abominable, nauseous and detestable, they can
|
||
possibly contrive, which the Stomach immediately rejects with loathing;
|
||
and this they call a Vomit; or else from the same Storehouse, with some
|
||
other Poysonous Additions, they command us to take in at the Orifice
|
||
above or below, (just as the Physician then happens to be disposed) a
|
||
Medicine equally annoying and disgustful to the Bowels; which relaxing the
|
||
Belly, drives down all before it, and this they call a Purge or a Glyster.
|
||
For Nature (as the Physicians alledge) having intended the superior
|
||
anterior Orifice only for the intromission of Solids and Liquids, and the
|
||
inferior for Ejection, these Artists ingeniously considering that in all
|
||
Diseases Nature is forced out of her Seat; therefore to replace her in it, the
|
||
Body must be treated in a Manner directly contrary, by interchanging the
|
||
Use of each Orifice, forcing Solids and Liquids in at the Anus, and making
|
||
Evacuations at the Mouth.
|
||
|
||
But, besides real Diseases, we are subject to many that are only imaginary,
|
||
for which the Physicians have invented imaginary Cures; these have their
|
||
several Names, and so have the Drugs that are proper for them, and with
|
||
these our Female Yahoos are always infested.
|
||
|
||
One great Excellency in this Tribe is their Skill at Prognostics, wherein
|
||
they seldom fail; their Predictions in real Diseases, when they rise to any
|
||
Degree of Malignity, generally portending Death, which is always in their
|
||
Power when Recovery is not: And therefore, upon any unexpected Signs of
|
||
Amendment, after they have pronounced their Sentence, rather than be
|
||
accused as false Prophets, they know how to approve their Sagacity to the
|
||
World by a seasonable Dose.
|
||
|
||
They are likewise of special Use to Husbands and Wives, who are grown
|
||
weary of their Mates, to eldest Sons, to great Ministers of State, and often
|
||
to Princes.
|
||
|
||
I had formerly upon Occasion discoursed with my Master upon the Nature
|
||
of Government in general, and particularly of our own excellent
|
||
Constitution, deservedly the Wonder and Envy of the whole World. But
|
||
having here Accidentally mentioned a Minister of State; he commanded me
|
||
some time after to inform him, what Species of Yahoo I particularly meant
|
||
by that Application.
|
||
|
||
I told him, that a First or Chief Minister of State, whom I intended to
|
||
describe, was a Creature wholly exempt from Joy and Grief, Love and
|
||
Hatred, Pity and Anger; at least made use of no other Passions but a violent
|
||
Desire of Wealth, Power, and Titles: That he applies his Words to all Uses,
|
||
except to the Indication of his Mind; That he never tells a Truth, but with
|
||
an Intent that you should take it for a Lye; nor a Lye, but with a Design
|
||
that you should take it for a Truth; That those he speaks worst of behind
|
||
their Backs, are in the surest way of Preferment; and whenever he begins
|
||
to praise you to others or to your self, you are from that Day forlorn. The
|
||
worst Mark you can receive is a Promise, especially when it is confirmed
|
||
with an Oath; after which every wise Man retires, and gives over all Hopes.
|
||
|
||
There are three Methods by which a Man may rise to be Chief Minister:
|
||
The first is by knowing how with Prudence to dispose of a Wife, a
|
||
Daughter, or a Sister: The second, by betraying or undermining his
|
||
Predecessor: And the third is, by a furious Zeal in publick Assemblies
|
||
against the Corruptions of the Court. But a wise Prince would rather chuse
|
||
to employ those who practice the last of these Methods; because such
|
||
Zealots prove always the most obsequious and subservient to the Will and
|
||
Passions of their Master. That, these Ministers having all Employments at
|
||
their Disposal, preserve themselves in Power by bribing the Majority of a
|
||
Senate or great Council; and at last by an Expedient called an Act of
|
||
Indemnity (whereof I described the Nature to him) they secure themselves
|
||
from After-reckonings, and retire from the Publick, laden with the Spoils
|
||
of the Nation.
|
||
|
||
The Palace of a Chief Minister, is a Seminary to breed up others in his own
|
||
Trade: The Pages, Lacquies, and Porter, by imitating their Master, become
|
||
Ministers of State in their several Districts, and learn to excel in the three
|
||
principal Ingredients, of Insolence, Lying, and Bribery. Accordingly, they
|
||
have a Subaltern Court paid to them by Persons of the best Rank; and
|
||
sometimes by the Force of Dexterity and Impudence, arrive through
|
||
several Gradations to be Successors to their Lord.
|
||
|
||
He is usually governed by a decayed Wench or favourite Footman, who are
|
||
the Tunnels through which all Graces are conveyed, and may properly be
|
||
called, in the last Resort, the Governors of the Kingdom.
|
||
|
||
One Day in Discourse my Master, having heard me mention the Nobility of
|
||
my Country, was pleased to make me a Compliment which I could not
|
||
pretend to deserve: That he was sure, I must have been born of some Noble
|
||
Family, because I far exceeded in Shape, Colour, and Cleanliness, all the
|
||
Yahoos of his Nation, although I seemed to fail in Strength and Agility,
|
||
which must be imputed to my different Way of Living from those other
|
||
Brutes; and besides, I was not only endowed with the Faculty of Speech,
|
||
but likewise with some Rudiments of Reason, to a Degree that with all his
|
||
Acquaintance I passed for a Prodigy.
|
||
|
||
He made me observe, that among the Houyhnhnms, the White, the Sorrel,
|
||
and the Iron-grey were not so exactly shaped as the Bay, the Dapple-grey,
|
||
and the Black; nor born with equal Talents of the Mind, or a Capacity to
|
||
improve them; and therefore continued always in the Condition of
|
||
Servants, without ever aspiring to match out of their own Race, which in
|
||
that Country would be reckoned monstrous and unnatural.
|
||
|
||
I made his Honour my most humble Acknowledgments for the good
|
||
Opinion he was pleased to conceive of me; but assured him at the same
|
||
time, that my Birth was of the lower Sort, having been born of plain honest
|
||
Parents, who were just able to give me a tolerable Education: That Nobility
|
||
among us was altogether a different Thing from the Idea he had of it; That
|
||
our young Noblemen are bred from their Childhood in Idleness and
|
||
Luxury; that as soon as Years will permit, they consume their Vigour, and
|
||
contract odious Diseases among lewd Females; and when their Fortunes are
|
||
almost ruined, they marry some woman of mean Birth, disagreeable
|
||
Person, and unsound Constitution, merely for the Sake of Money, whom
|
||
they hate and despise. That the Productions of such Marriages are generally
|
||
scrophulous, ricketty, or deformed Children; by which Means the Family
|
||
seldom continues above Three Generations, unless the Wife takes Care to
|
||
provide a healthy Father among her Neighbours, or Domesticks, in order
|
||
to improve and continue the Breed. That a weak diseased Body, a meager
|
||
Countenance, and sallow Complexion, are no uncommon Marks of a Great
|
||
Man; and a healthy robust Appearance is so far disgraceful in a Man of
|
||
Quality, that the World is apt to conclude his real Father to have been one
|
||
of the Inferiors of the Family, especially when it is seen that the
|
||
Imperfections of his Mind run parallel with those of his Body; and are little
|
||
else than a Composition of Spleen, Dullness, Ignorance, Caprice,
|
||
Sensuality, and Pride.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The Author's great Love of his Native Country. His Master's Observations
|
||
upon the Constitution and Administration of England, as described by the
|
||
Author, with parallel Cases and Comparisons. His Master's Observations
|
||
upon human Nature.
|
||
|
||
THE READER may be disposed to wonder how I could prevail on myself
|
||
to give so free a Representation of my own Species, among a Race of
|
||
Mortals who were already too apt to conceive the vilest Opinion of human
|
||
Kind from that entire Congruity betwixt me and their Yahoos. But I must
|
||
freely confess, that the many Virtues of those excellent Quadrupeds placed
|
||
in opposite View to human Corruptions, had so far opened my Eyes and
|
||
enlightened my Understanding, that I began to view the Actions and
|
||
Passions of Man in a very different Light, and to think the Honour of my
|
||
own Kind not worth managing; which, besides, it was impossible for me to
|
||
do before a Person of so acute a Judgment as my Master, who daily
|
||
convinced me of a thousand Faults in myself, whereof I had not the least
|
||
Perception before, and which among us would never be numbered even
|
||
among human Infirmities, I had likewise learned from his Example an
|
||
utter Detestation of all Falsehood or Disguise; and Truth appeared so
|
||
amiable to me, that I determined upon sacrificing every thing to it.
|
||
|
||
Let me deal so candidly with the Reader, as to confess, that there was yet a
|
||
much stronger Motive for the Freedom I took in my Representation of
|
||
Things. I had not been a Year in this Country, before I contracted such a
|
||
Love and Veneration for the Inhabitants, that I entered on a firm
|
||
Resolution, never to return to human Kind, but to pass the rest of my Life
|
||
among these admirableHouyhnhnmsin the Contemplation and Practice of
|
||
every Virtue; where I could have no Example or Incitement to Vice. But it
|
||
was decreed by Fortune, my perpetual Enemy, that so great a Felicity
|
||
should not fall to my Share. However, it is now some Comfort to reflect,
|
||
that in what I said of my Countrymen, I extenuated their Faults as much as
|
||
I durst before so strict an Examiner, and upon every Article, gave as
|
||
favourable a Turn as the Matter would bear. For, indeed, who is there
|
||
alive that will not be swayed by his Byass and Partiality to the Place of his
|
||
Birth?
|
||
|
||
I have related the Substance of several Conversations I had with my
|
||
Master, during the greatest part of the Time I had the Honour to be in his
|
||
Service, but have indeed for Brevity sake omitted much more than is here
|
||
set down.
|
||
|
||
When I had answered all his Questions, and his Curiosity seemed to be
|
||
fully satisfied; he sent for me one Morning early, and commanded me to sit
|
||
down at some Distance, (an Honour which he had never before conferred
|
||
upon me) he said, He had been very seriously considering my whole Story,
|
||
as far as it related both to myself and my Country: That he looked upon us
|
||
as sort of Animals to whose Share, by what Accident he could not
|
||
conjecture, some small Pittance of Reason had fallen, whereof we made no
|
||
other Use than by its Assistance to aggravate our natural Corruptions, and
|
||
to acquire new ones which Nature had not given us: That we disarmed
|
||
ourselves of the few Abilities she had bestowed, had been very successful in
|
||
multiplying our original Wants, and seemed to spend our whole Lives in
|
||
vain Endeavours to supply them by our own Inventions. That as to myself,
|
||
it was manifest I had neither the Strength or Agility of a common Yahoo,
|
||
that I walked infirmly on my hinder Feet, had found out a Contrivance to
|
||
make my Claws of no Use or Defence, and to remove the Hair from my
|
||
Chin, which was intended as a shelter from the Sun and the Weather.
|
||
Lastly, That I could neither run with Speed, nor climb Trees like my
|
||
Brethren (as he called them) the Yahoos in this Country.
|
||
|
||
That our Institutions of Government and Law were plainly owing to our
|
||
gross Defects in Reason, and by Consequence, in Vertue; because Reason
|
||
alone is sufficient to govern a Rational Creature; which was therefore a
|
||
Character we had no Pretense to challenge, even from the Account I had
|
||
given of my own People, although he manifestly perceived, that in order to
|
||
favour them, I had concealed many Particulars, and often said the Thing
|
||
which was not.
|
||
|
||
He was the more confirmed in this Opinion, because he observed, that as I
|
||
agreed in every Feature of my Body with other Yahoos, except where it
|
||
was to my real Disadvantage in point of Strength, Speed and Activity, the
|
||
shortness of my Claws, and some other Particulars where Nature had no
|
||
Part; so from the Representation I had given him of our Lives, our
|
||
Manners, and our Actions, he found as near a Resemblance in the
|
||
Disposition of our Minds. He said the Yahoos were known to hate one
|
||
another more than they did any different Species of Animals; and the
|
||
Reason usually assigned, was the Odiousness of their own Shapes, which all
|
||
could see in the rest, but not in themselves. He had therefore begun to think
|
||
it not unwise in us to cover our Bodies, and by that Invention, conceal
|
||
many of our own Deformities from each other, which would else be hardly
|
||
supportable. But, he now found he had been mistaken, and that the
|
||
Dissensions of those Brutes in his Country were owing to the same Cause
|
||
with ours, as I had described them. For, if (said he) you throw among Five
|
||
Yahoos as much Food as would be sufficient for Fifty, they will, instead of
|
||
eating peaceably, fall together by the Ears, each single one impatient to
|
||
have all to itself; and therefore a Servant was usually employed to stand by
|
||
while they were feeding abroad, and those kept at home were tied at a
|
||
Distance from each other: that if a Cow died of Age or Accident, before a
|
||
Houyhnhnm could secure it for his own Yahoos, those in the
|
||
Neighbourhood would come in Herds to seize it, and then would ensue such
|
||
a Battle as I had described, with terrible Wounds made by their Claws on
|
||
both Sides, although they seldom were able to kill one another, for want of
|
||
such convenient Instruments of Death as we had invented. At other times
|
||
the like Battles have been fought between the Yahoos of several
|
||
Neighbourhoods without any visible Cause: Those of one District watching
|
||
all Opportunities to surprize the next before they are prepared. But if they
|
||
find their Project hath miscarried, they return home, and for want of
|
||
Enemies, engage in what I call a Civil War among themselves.
|
||
|
||
That in some Fields of his Country there are certain shining Stones of
|
||
several Colours, whereof the Yahoos are violently fond, and when part of
|
||
these Stones is fixed in the Earth, as it sometimes happeneth, they will dig
|
||
with their Claws for whole Days to get them out, then carry them away,
|
||
and hide them by Heaps in their Kennels; but still looking round with great
|
||
Caution, for Fear their Comrades should find out their Treasure. My
|
||
Master said, he could never discover the Reason of this unnatural Appetite,
|
||
or how these Stones could be of any Use to a Yahoo; but now he believed it
|
||
might proceed from the same Principle of Avarice which I had ascribed to
|
||
Mankind: that he had once, by way of Experiment, privately removed a
|
||
Heap of these Stones from the Place where one of his Yahoos had buried it:
|
||
Whereupon, the sordid Animal missing his Treasure, by his loud lamenting
|
||
brought the whole Herd to the Place, there miserably howled, then fell to
|
||
biting and tearing the rest, began to pine away, would neither eat, nor
|
||
sleep, nor work, till he ordered a Servant privately to convey the Stones
|
||
into the same Hole, and hide them as before; which when his Yahoo had
|
||
found, he presently recovered his Spirits and good Humour, but took good
|
||
Care to remove them to a better hiding-place, and hath ever since been a
|
||
very serviceable Brute.
|
||
|
||
My Master farther assured me, which I also observed myself, that in the
|
||
Fields where the shining Stones abound, the fiercest and most frequent
|
||
Battles are fought, occasioned by perpetual inroads of the neighbouring
|
||
Yahoos.
|
||
|
||
He said, it was common when two Yahoos discovered such a Stone in a
|
||
Field, and were contending which of them should be the Proprietor, a third
|
||
would take the Advantage, and carry it away from them both; which my
|
||
Master would needs contend to have some kind of Resemblance with our
|
||
Suits at Law; wherein I thought it for our Credit not to undeceive him;
|
||
since the Decision he mentioned was much more equitable than many
|
||
Decrees among us: Because the Plaintiff and Defendant there lost nothing
|
||
beside the Stone they contended for, whereas our Courts of Equity, would
|
||
never have dismissed the Cause while either of them had any thing left.
|
||
|
||
My Master, continuing his Discourse, said, There was nothing that
|
||
rendered the Yahoos more odious, than their undistinguishing Appetite to
|
||
devour every Thing that came in their way, whether Herbs, Roots, Berries,
|
||
the corrupted Flesh of Animals, or all mingled together: And it was
|
||
peculiar in their Temper, that they were fonder of what they could get by
|
||
Rapine or Stealth at a greater Distance, than much better Food provided
|
||
for them at home. If their Prey held out, they would eat till they were
|
||
ready to burst, after which Nature had pointed out to them a certain Root
|
||
that gave them a general Evacuation.
|
||
|
||
There was also another kind of Root very juicy, but somewhat rare and
|
||
difficult to be found, which the Yahoos sought for with much Eagerness,
|
||
and would suck it with great Delight; and it produced in them the same
|
||
Effects that Wine hath upon us. It would make them sometimes hug,
|
||
sometimes tear one another, they would howl and grin, and chatter, and
|
||
tumble, and then fall asleep in the Dirt.
|
||
|
||
I did indeed observe, that the Yahoos were the only Animals in this
|
||
Country subject to any Diseases; which however, were much fewer than
|
||
Horses have among us, and contracted not by any ill Treatment they meet
|
||
with, but by the Nastiness, and Greediness of that sordid Brute. Neither has
|
||
their Language any more than a general Appellation for those Maladies,
|
||
which is borrowed from the Name of the Beast, and called Hnea-Yahoo, or
|
||
the Yahoo's Evil, and the Cure prescribed is a mixture of their own Dung
|
||
and Urine forcibly put down the Yahoo's Throat. This I have since often
|
||
taken myself, and do freely recommend it to my Countrymen, for the
|
||
publick Good, as an admirable Specifick against all Diseases produced by
|
||
Repletion.
|
||
|
||
As to Learning, Government, Arts, Manufactures, and the like, my Master
|
||
confessed he could find little or no Resemblance between the Yahoos of
|
||
that Country and those in ours. For, he only meant to observe what Parity
|
||
there was in our Natures. He had heard indeed some curious Houyhnhnms
|
||
observe, that in most Herds there was a sort of ruling Yahoo (as among us
|
||
there is generally some leading or principal Stag in a park), who was
|
||
always more deformed in Body and mischievous in Disposition, than any of
|
||
the rest. That this Leader had usually a Favourite as like himself as he
|
||
could get, whose Employment was to lick his Master's Feet and Posteriors,
|
||
and drive the Female Yahoos to his Kennel; for which he was now and then
|
||
rewarded with a piece of Ass's Flesh. This Favourite is hated by the whole
|
||
Herd, and therefore to protect himself, keeps always near the Person of his
|
||
Leader. He usually continues in Office till worse can be found; but the very
|
||
Moment he is discarded, his Successor at the Head of all the Yahoos in that
|
||
District, Young and Old, Male and Female, come in a Body, and discharge
|
||
their Excrements upon him from Head to Foot. But how far this might be
|
||
applicable to our Courts and Favourites, and Ministers of State, my Master
|
||
said I could best determine.
|
||
|
||
I dared make no Return to this malicious Insinuation, which debased human
|
||
Understanding below the Sagacity of a common Hound, who has Judgment
|
||
enough to distinguish and follow the Cry of the ablest Dog in the Pack,
|
||
without being ever mistaken.
|
||
|
||
My Master told me, there were some Qualities remarkable in the Yahoos,
|
||
which he had not observed me to mention, or at least very slightly, in the
|
||
Accounts I had given him of human kind; he said, Those Animals, like
|
||
other Brutes, had their Females in common; but in this they differed, that
|
||
the She-Yahoo would admit the Male, while she was pregnant; and that the
|
||
Hees would quarrel and fight with Females as fiercely as with each other.
|
||
Both which Practices were such Degrees of Brutality, that no other
|
||
sensitive Creature ever arrived at.
|
||
|
||
Another thing he wondered at in the Yahoos, was their strange Disposition
|
||
to Nastiness and Dirt, whereas there appears to be a natural Love of
|
||
Cleanliness in all other Animals. As to the two former Accusations, I was
|
||
glad to let them pass without any Reply, because I had not a Word to offer
|
||
upon it in Defence of my Species, which otherwise I certainly had done
|
||
from my own Inclinations. But I could have easily vindicated Human Kind
|
||
from the Imputation of Singularity upon Article, if there had been any
|
||
Swine in that Country (as unluckily for me there were not) which although
|
||
it may be a sweeter Quadruped than a Yahoo, cannot I humbly conceive in
|
||
Justice pretend to more Cleanliness; and so his Honour himself must have
|
||
owned, if he had seen their filthy way of feeding, and their Custom of
|
||
wallowing and sleeping in the Mud.
|
||
|
||
My Master likewise mentioned another Quality which his Servants had
|
||
discovered in several Yahoos, and to him was wholly unaccountable. He
|
||
said, a Fancy would sometimes take a Yahoo, to retire into a Corner, to lie
|
||
down and howl, and groan, and spurn away all that came near him,
|
||
although he were young and fat, wanted neither Food nor Water; nor could
|
||
the Servants imagine what could possibly ail him. And the only Remedy
|
||
they found was to set him to hard Work, after which he would infallibly
|
||
come to himself. To this I was silent out of Partiality to my own Kind; yet
|
||
here I could plainly discover the true seeds of Spleen, which only seize on
|
||
the Lazy, the Luxurious, and the Rich; who, if they were forced to undergo
|
||
the same Regimen, I would undertake for the Cure.
|
||
|
||
His Honour had further observed, that a Female-Yahoo would often stand
|
||
behind a Bank or a Bush, to gaze on the young Males passing by, and then
|
||
appear, and hide, using many antick Gestures and Grimaces, at which time
|
||
it was observed, that she had a most offensive Smell; and when any of the
|
||
Males advanced, would slowly retire, looking often back, and with a
|
||
counterfeit shew of Fear; run off into some convenient Place where she
|
||
knew the Male would follow her.
|
||
|
||
At other times if a Female Stranger came among them, Three or Four of
|
||
her own Sex would get about her, and stare and chatter, and grin, and
|
||
smell her all over; and then turn off with Gestures that seemed to express
|
||
Contempt and Disdain.
|
||
|
||
Perhaps my Master might refine a little in these Speculations, which he had
|
||
drawn from what he observed himself, or had been told him by others:
|
||
However, I could not reflect without some Amazement, and much Sorrow,
|
||
that the Rudiments of Lewdness, Coquetry, Censure, and Scandal, should
|
||
have place by Instinct in Womankind.
|
||
|
||
I expected every Moment that my Master would accuse the Yahoos of those
|
||
unnatural Appetites in both Sexes, so common among us. But Nature, it
|
||
seems, has not been so Expert a School-mistress; and these politer Pleasures
|
||
are entirely the Productions of Art and Reason, on our Side of the Globe.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The Author relates several Particulars of the Yahoos. The great Virtues of
|
||
the Houyhnhnms. The Education and Exercise of their Youth. Their
|
||
general Assembly.
|
||
|
||
AS I OUGHT to have understood Human Nature much better than I
|
||
supposed it possible for my Master to do, so it was easy to apply the
|
||
Character he gave of the Yahoos to myself and my Countrymen, and I
|
||
believed I could yet make farther Discoveries from my own Observation. I
|
||
therefore often begged his Favour to let me go among the Herds of Yahoos
|
||
in the Neighbourhood, to which he always very graciously consented, being
|
||
perfectly convinced that the Hatred I bore those Brutes, would never suffer
|
||
me to be corrupted by them; and his Honour ordered one of his Servants, a
|
||
strong Sorrel Nag, very honest and good-Natured, to be my Guard,
|
||
without whose Protection I durst not undertake such Adventures. For I
|
||
have already told the Reader how much I was pestered by those odious
|
||
Animals upon my first Arrival. And I afterwards failed three or four times
|
||
of very narrowly of falling into their Clutches, when I happened to stray at
|
||
any Distance without my Hanger. And I have Reason to believe they had
|
||
some Imagination that I was of their own Species, which I often assisted
|
||
myself, by stripping up my sleeves, and shewing my naked Arms, and
|
||
Breast in their sight, when my Protector was with me. At which times they
|
||
would approach as near as they durst, and imitate my Actions, after the
|
||
manner of Monkeys, but ever with great Signs of Hatred; as a tame Jack-
|
||
Daw with Cap and Stockings, is always persecuted by the wild ones, when
|
||
he happens to get among them.
|
||
|
||
They are prodigiously nimble from their Infancy; however, I once caught a
|
||
young Male of three Years old, and endeavoured by all Marks of
|
||
Tenderness to make it quiet; but the little Imp fell a squalling, and
|
||
scratching, and biting with such Violence, that I was forced to let it go; and
|
||
it was high time, for a whole Troop of old ones came about us at the Noise,
|
||
but finding the Cub was safe, (for away it ran) and my Sorrel Nag being
|
||
by, they durst not venture near us. I observed the young Animal's Flesh to
|
||
smell very rank, and the stink was somewhat between a Weasel and a Fox,
|
||
but much more disagreeable. I forgot another Circumstance (and perhaps I
|
||
might have the Reader's pardon if it were wholly omitted), that while I
|
||
held the odious Vermin in my Hands, it voided its filthy Excrements of a
|
||
Yellow liquid Substance, all over my Cloaths; but by good Fortune there
|
||
was a small Brook hard by, where I washed myself as clean as I could,
|
||
although I durst not come into my Master's Presence, until I were
|
||
sufficiently aired.
|
||
|
||
By what I could discover, the Yahoos appear to be the most unteachable of
|
||
all Animals, their Capacities never reaching higher than to draw or carry
|
||
Burthens. Yet I am of Opinion this Defect ariseth chiefly from a perverse,
|
||
restive Disposition. For they are cunning, malicious, treacherous and
|
||
revengeful. They are strong and hardy, but of a cowardly Spirit, and by
|
||
consequence, insolent, abject, and cruel. It is observed that the Red-haired
|
||
of both Sexes are more libidinous and mischievous than the rest, whom yet
|
||
they much exceed in Strength and Activity.
|
||
|
||
TheHouyhnhnms keep the Yahoos for present use in Huts not far from the
|
||
House; but the rest are sent abroad to certain Fields, where they dig up
|
||
Roots, eat several kinds of Herbs, and scratch about for Carrion, or
|
||
sometimes catch Weasels and Luhimuhs (a sort of wild Rat) which they
|
||
greedily devour. Nature hath taught them to dig deep Holes with their Nails
|
||
on the Side of a rising Ground, wherein they lie by themselves, only the
|
||
Kennels of the Females are larger, sufficient to hold two or three Cubs.
|
||
|
||
They swim from their Infancy like Frogs, and are able to continue long
|
||
under Water, where they often take Fish, which the Females carry home to
|
||
their Young. And upon this Occasion, I hope the Reader will pardon my
|
||
relating an odd Adventure.
|
||
|
||
Being one Day abroad with my Protector, the Sorrel Nag, and the Weather
|
||
exceeding hot, I entreated him to let me bathe in a River that was near. He
|
||
consented, and I immediately stripped myself stark naked, and went down
|
||
softly into the Stream. It happened that a young Female Yahoo standing
|
||
behind a Bank, saw the whole Proceeding, and enflamed by Desire, as the
|
||
Nag and I conjectured, came running with all Speed, and leaped into the
|
||
Water, within five Yards of the Place where I bathed. I was never in my
|
||
Life so terribly frighted; the Nag was grazing at some Distance, not
|
||
suspecting any Harm. She embraced me after a most fulsome Manner; I
|
||
roared as loud as I could, and the Nag came galloping towards me,
|
||
whereupon she quitted her Grasp, with the utmost Reluctancy, and leaped
|
||
upon the opposite Bank, where she stood gazing and howling all the time I
|
||
was putting on my Cloaths.
|
||
|
||
This was matter of Diversion to my Master and his Family, as well as of
|
||
Mortification to myself. For now I could no longer deny, that I was a real
|
||
Yahoo, in every Limb and Feature, since the Females had a natural
|
||
Prophensity to me as one of their own Species. Neither was the Hair of this
|
||
Brute of a Red Colour (which might have been some Excuse for an
|
||
Appetite a little irregular), but Black as a Sloe, and her Countenance did
|
||
not make an Appearance altogether so hideous as the rest of the Kind; for,
|
||
I think, she could not be above eleven Years old.
|
||
|
||
Having already lived three Years in this Country, the Reader I suppose will
|
||
expect that I should, like other Travellers, give him some Account of the
|
||
Manners and customs of its Inhabitants, which it was indeed my principal
|
||
Study to learn.
|
||
|
||
As these Noble Houyhnhnms are endowed by Nature with a general
|
||
Disposition to all Virtues, and have no Conceptions or Ideas of what is Evil
|
||
in a rational Creature, so their grand Maxim is, to cultivate Reason, and to
|
||
be wholly governed by it. Neither is Reason among them a Point
|
||
problematical as with us, where Men can argue with Plausibility on both
|
||
sides of the Question; but strikes you with immediate Conviction; as it must
|
||
needs do where it is not mingled, obscured, or discoloured by Passion and
|
||
Interest. I remember it was with extreme Difficulty that I could bring my
|
||
Master to understand the Meaning of the Word Opinion, or how a Point
|
||
could be disputable; because Reason taught us to affirm or deny only where
|
||
we are certain, and beyond our Knowledge we cannot do either. So that
|
||
Controversies, Wranglings, Disputes, and Positiveness in false or dubious
|
||
Propositions are Evils unknown among the Houyhnhnms. In the like
|
||
Manner when I used to explain to him our several Systems of Natural
|
||
Philosophy, he would laugh that a Creature pretending to Reason should
|
||
value itself upon the Knowledge of other Peoples Conjectures, and in
|
||
Things, where that Knowledge, if it were certain, could be of no Use.
|
||
Wherein he agreed entirely with the Sentiments of Socrates, as Plato
|
||
delivers them; which I mention as the highest Honour I can do that Prince
|
||
of Philosophers. I have often since reflected what Destruction such a
|
||
Doctrine would make in the Libraries of Europe, and how many Paths to
|
||
Fame would be then shut up in the Learned World.
|
||
|
||
Friendship and Benevolence are the two principal Virtues among the
|
||
Houyhnhnms, and these not confined to particular Objects, but universal to
|
||
the whole Race. For a Stranger from the remotest Part is equally treated
|
||
with the nearest Neighbour, and wherever he goes, looks upon himself as at
|
||
home. They preserve Decency and Civility in the highest Degrees, but are
|
||
altogether ignorant of Ceremony. They have no Fondness for their Colts or
|
||
Foles, but the Care they take in educating them proceeds entirely from the
|
||
Dictates of Reason. And I observed my Master to shew the same Affection
|
||
to his Neighbour's Issue that he had for his own. They will have it that
|
||
Nature teaches them to love the whole Species, and it is Reason only that
|
||
maketh a Distinction of Persons, where there is a superior Degree of
|
||
Virtue.
|
||
|
||
When the matronHouyhnhnms have produced one of each Sex, they no
|
||
longer accompany with their Consorts, except they lose one of their Issue
|
||
by some Casualty, which very seldom happens: But in such a Case they
|
||
meet again; or when the like Accident befalls a Person whose Wife is past
|
||
bearing, some other Couple bestow on him one of their own Colts, and
|
||
then go together again till the Mother is pregnant. This Caution is
|
||
necessary to prevent the Country from being overburthened with Numbers.
|
||
But the Race of inferiorHouyhnhnms bred up to be Servants is not so
|
||
strictly limited upon this Article; These are allowed to produce three of
|
||
each Sex, to be Domesticks in the Noble Families.
|
||
|
||
In their Marriages they are exactly careful to choose such Colours as will
|
||
not make any disagreeable Mixture in the Breed. Strength is chiefly valued
|
||
in the Male, and Comeliness in the Female, not upon the account of Love,
|
||
but to preserve the Race from degenerating; for where a Female happens to
|
||
excell in Strength, a Consort is chosen with regard to Comeliness.
|
||
Courtship, Love, Presents, Joyntures, Settlements, have no place in their
|
||
Thoughts, or Terms whereby to express them in their Language. The
|
||
young Couple meet and are joyned, merely because it is the Determination
|
||
of their Parents and Friends: It is what they see done every Day, and they
|
||
look upon it as one of the necessary Actions of a Rational Being. But the
|
||
Violation of Marriage, or any other Unchastity, was never heard of: And
|
||
the married Pair pass their Lives with the same Friendship, and mutual
|
||
Benevolence that they bear to all others of the same Species, who come in
|
||
their way; without Jealousy, Fondness, Quarrelling, or Discontent.
|
||
|
||
In educating the Youth of both Sexes, their Method is admirable, and
|
||
highly deserves our Imitation. These are not suffered to Taste a Grain of
|
||
Oats, except upon certain Days, till Eighteen Years old; nor Milk, but very
|
||
rarely; and in Summer they graze two Hours in the Morning, and as long
|
||
in the Evening, which their Parents likewise observe, but the Servants are
|
||
not allowed above half that time, and a great Part of their Grass is brought
|
||
home, which they eat at the most convenient Hours, when they can be best
|
||
spared from work.
|
||
|
||
Temperance, Industry, Exercise and Cleanliness, are the Lessons equally
|
||
enjoyned to the young ones of both Sexes: And my Master thought it
|
||
monstrous in us to give the Females a different kind of Education from the
|
||
Males, except in some Articles of Domestick Management; whereby, as he
|
||
truly observed, one half of our Natives were good for nothing but bringing
|
||
Children into the World: And to trust the Care of our Children to such
|
||
useless Animals, he said, was yet a greater Instance of Brutality.
|
||
|
||
But theHouyhnhnms train up their Youth to Strength, Speed, and
|
||
Hardiness, by exercising them in running Races up and down steep Hills,
|
||
and over hard and stony Grounds, and when they are all in a Sweat, they
|
||
are ordered to leap over Head and Ears, into a Pond or a River. Four times
|
||
a Year the Youth of a certain District meet to shew their Proficiency in
|
||
Running, and Leaping, and other Feats of Strength and Agility; where the
|
||
Victor is rewarded, with a Song made in his or her Praise. On this Festival
|
||
the Servants drive a Herd of Yahoos into the Field, laden with Hay, and
|
||
Oats, and Milk, for a repast to the Houyhnhnms; after which these Brutes
|
||
are immediately driven back again, for Fear of being noisome to the
|
||
Assembly.
|
||
|
||
Every fourth Year, at the Vernal Equinox, there is a Representative
|
||
Council of the whole Nation, which meets in a Plain about twenty Miles
|
||
from our House, and continues about five or six Days. Here they enquire
|
||
into the State and Condition of the several Districts, Whether they abound
|
||
or be deficient in Hay or Oats, or Cows or Yahoos? and wherever there is
|
||
any Want (which is seldom) it is immediately supplied by unanimous
|
||
Consent and Contribution. Here likewise the Regulation of Children is
|
||
settled: As for instance, if a Houyhnhnm hath two Males, he changeth one
|
||
of them with another that hath two Females: And when a Child hath been
|
||
lost by any Casualty, where the Mother is past Breeding, it is determined
|
||
what Family in the District shall breed another to supply the Loss.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IX.
|
||
|
||
A grand Debate at the General Assembly of the Houyhnhnms, and how it
|
||
was determined. The Learning of the Houyhnhnms. Their Buildings. Their
|
||
manner of Burials. The defectiveness of their Language.
|
||
|
||
ONE OF THESE Grand Assemblies was held in my time, about three
|
||
Months before my Departure, whither my Master went as the
|
||
Representative of our District. In this Council was resumed their old
|
||
Debate, and indeed, the only Debate which ever happened in that Country;
|
||
whereof my Master after his Return gave me a very particular Account.
|
||
|
||
The Question to be debated was whether the Yahoos should be
|
||
exterminated from the Face of the Earth? One of the Members for the
|
||
Affirmative offered several Arguments of great Strength, and Weight,
|
||
alledging That as the Yahoos were the most filthy, noisome, and deformed
|
||
Animal which Nature ever produced, so they were the most restive and
|
||
indocile, mischievous and malicious: They would privately suck the Teats
|
||
of the Houyhnhnms Cows, kill and devour their Cats, trample down their
|
||
Oats and Grass, if they were not continually watched, and commit a
|
||
thousand other Extravagancies. He took notice of a general Tradition, That
|
||
Yahoos had not been always in that Country: But, that many Ages ago, two
|
||
of these Brutes appeared together upon a Mountain, whether produced by
|
||
the Heat of the Sun upon corrupted Mud and Slime, or from the Ooze or
|
||
Froth of the Sea, was never known. That these Yahoos engendered, and
|
||
their Brood in a short time grew so numerous as to over run and infest the
|
||
whole Nation. That theHouyhnhnms to get rid of this Evil, made a general
|
||
Hunting, and at last enclosed the whole Herd; and destroying the old Ones,
|
||
every Houyhnhnm kept two young Ones in a Kennel, and brought them to
|
||
such a degree of Tameness, as an Animal so savage by Nature can be
|
||
capable of acquiring; using them for Draught and Carriage. That there
|
||
seemed to be much Truth in this Tradition, and that those Creatures could
|
||
not be Ylnhniamshy (or Aborigines of the Land), because of the violent
|
||
Hatred the Houyhnhnms, as well as all other Animals, bore them; which
|
||
although their evil Disposition sufficiently deserved, could never have
|
||
arrived at so high a Degree, if they had been Aborigines, or else they
|
||
would have long since been rooted out. That the Inhabitants taking a Fancy
|
||
to use the Service of the Yahoos, had very imprudently neglected to
|
||
cultivate the Breed of Asses, which were a comely Animal, easily kept,
|
||
more tame and orderly, without any offensive Smell, strong enough for
|
||
Labour, although they yield to the other in Agility of Body; and if their
|
||
Braying be no agreeable Sound, it is far preferable to the horrible
|
||
Howlings of the Yahoos.
|
||
|
||
Several others declared their Sentiments to the same Purpose, when my
|
||
Master proposed an Expedient to the Assembly, whereof he had indeed
|
||
borrowed the Hint from me. He approved of the Tradition, mentioned by
|
||
the Honourable Member, who spoke before, and affirmed, that the Two
|
||
Yahoos said to be first seen among them had been driven thither over the
|
||
Sea; that coming to Land, and being forsaken by their Companions, they
|
||
retired to the Mountains, and degenerating by Degrees, became in process
|
||
of time, much more savage than those of their own Species in the Country
|
||
from where these two Originals came. The Reason of his assertion was that
|
||
he had now in his Possession a certain wonderful Yahoo, (meaning myself)
|
||
which most of them had heard of, and many of them had seen. He then
|
||
related to them, how he first found me; that my Body was all covered with
|
||
an artificial Composure of the Skins and Hairs of other Animals: That I had
|
||
a Language of my own, and had thoroughly learned theirs: That I had
|
||
related to him the Accidents which brought me thither: That when he saw
|
||
me without my Covering, I was an exact Yahoo in every Part, only of a
|
||
whiter Colour, less hairy, and with shorter Claws. He added, how I had
|
||
endeavoured to persuade him, that in my own and other Countries, the
|
||
Yahoos acted as the governing, Rational Animal, and held theHouyhnhnms
|
||
in Servitude: That he observed in me all the Qualities of a Yahoo, only a
|
||
little more civilized by some Tincture of Reason, which however was in a
|
||
degree as far inferior to the Houyhnhnm Race, as the Yahoos of their
|
||
Country were to me: That among other things, I mentioned a Custom we
|
||
had of CastratingHouyhnhnms when they were young, in order to render
|
||
them tame: That the Operation was easy and safe; that it was no Shame to
|
||
learn Wisdom from Brutes, as Industry is taught by the Ant, and Building
|
||
by the Swallow. (For so I translate the Word Lyhannh, although it be a
|
||
much larger Fowl.) That this Invention might be practiced upon the
|
||
younger Yahoos here, which, besides rendering them tractable and fitter
|
||
for Use, would in an Age put an End to the whole Species without
|
||
destroying Life. That, in the mean time the Houyhnhnms should be
|
||
exhorted to cultivate the Breed of Asses, which as they are in all respects
|
||
more valuable Brutes, so they have this Advantage, to be fit for Service at
|
||
Five Years old, which the others are not till twelve.
|
||
|
||
This was all my Master thought fit to tell me at that time, of what passed in
|
||
the Grand Council. But he was pleased to conceal one Particular, which
|
||
related Personally to myself, whereof I soon felt the unhappy Effect, as the
|
||
Reader will know in its proper Place, and from which I date all the
|
||
succeeding Misfortunes of my Life.
|
||
|
||
The Houyhnhnms have no Letters, and consequently their Knowledge is all
|
||
Traditional. But there happening few Events of any Moment among a
|
||
People so well united, naturally disposed to every Virtue, wholly governed
|
||
by Reason, and cut off from all Commerce with other Nations, the
|
||
Historical Part is easily preserved without burthening their Memory. I have
|
||
already observed, that they are subject to no Diseases, and therefore can
|
||
have no need of Physicians. However, they have excellent Medicines
|
||
composed of Herbs, to cure accidental Bruises and Cuts in the Pastern or
|
||
Frog of the Foot by sharp Stones, as well as other Maims and Hurts in the
|
||
several Parts of the Body.
|
||
|
||
They calculate the Year by the Revolution of the Sun and the Moon, but use
|
||
no subdivisions into Weeks. They are well enough acquainted with the
|
||
Motions of those two luminaries, and understand the Nature of Eclipses;
|
||
and this is the utmost Progress of their Astronomy.
|
||
|
||
In Poetry they must be allowed to excell all other Mortals; wherein the
|
||
Justness of their Similes, and the Minuteness, as well as Exactness of their
|
||
Descriptions, are indeed inimitable. Their Verses abound very much in
|
||
both of these, and usually contain either some exalted Notions of
|
||
Friendship and Benevolence, or the Praises of those who were Victors in
|
||
Races, and other bodily Exercises. Their Buildings, although very rude and
|
||
simple, are not inconvenient, but well contrived to defend them from all
|
||
Injuries of Cold and Heat. They have a kind of Tree which at Forty Years
|
||
old loosens in the Root, and falls with the first Storm; they grow very
|
||
strait, and being pointed like stakes with a sharp Stone, (for
|
||
theHouyhnhnms know not the use of Iron) they stick them erect in the
|
||
Ground about ten Inches asunder, and then weave in Oat-straw, or
|
||
sometimes Wattles betwixt them. The Roof is made after the same Manner,
|
||
and so are the Doors.
|
||
|
||
TheHouyhnhnms use the hollow Part between the Pastern and the Hoof of
|
||
their Fore-feet, as we do our Hands, and this with greater Dexterity, than I
|
||
could at first imagine. I have seen a White Mare of our Family thread a
|
||
Needle (which I lent her on purpose) with that Joynt. They milk their
|
||
Cows, reap their Oats, and do all the Work which requires Hands, in the
|
||
same manner. They have a kind of hard Flints, which by grinding against
|
||
other Stones, they form into Instruments, that serve instead of Wedges,
|
||
Axes, and Hammers. With Tools made of these Flints, they likewise cut
|
||
their Hay, and reap their Oats, which there groweth naturally in several
|
||
Fields: The Yahoos draw home the Sheaves in Carriages, and the Servants
|
||
tread them in several covered Huts, to get out the Grain, which is kept in
|
||
Stores. They make a rude kind of earthen and wooden Vessels, and bake
|
||
the former in the Sun.
|
||
|
||
If they can avoid Casualties, they die only of Old-Age, and are buried in
|
||
the obscurest Places that can be found, their Friends and Relations
|
||
expressing neither Joy nor Grief at their Departure; nor does the dying
|
||
Person discover the least Regret that he is leaving the World, any more
|
||
than if he were upon returning home from a Visit to one of his
|
||
Neighbours. I remember my Master having once made an appointment
|
||
with a Friend and his Family to come to his House upon some Affair of
|
||
Importance, on the Day fixed, the Mistress and her two Children came
|
||
very late; she made two Excuses, first for her Husband, who, as she said,
|
||
happened that very Morning to Shnuwnh. The Word is strongly expressive
|
||
in their Language, but not easily rendered into English; it signifies, to
|
||
retire to his first Mother. Her Excuse for not coming sooner, was, that her
|
||
Husband dying late in the Morning, she was a good while consulting her
|
||
Servants about a convenient Place where his Body should be laid; and I
|
||
observed she behaved herself at our House, as chearfully as the rest, and
|
||
died about three Months after.
|
||
|
||
They live generally to Seventy or Seventy-five Years, very seldom to
|
||
Fourscore: Some Weeks before their Death they feel a gradual Decay, but
|
||
without Pain. During this time they are much visited by their Friends,
|
||
because they cannot go abroad, with their usual Ease and Satisfaction.
|
||
However, about ten Days before their Death, which they seldom fail in
|
||
computing, they return the Visits that have been made them by those who
|
||
are nearest in the Neighbourhood, being carried in a convenient Sledge
|
||
drawn by Yahoos, which Vehicle they use, not only upon this Occasion, but
|
||
when they grow old upon long Journeys, or when they are lamed by any
|
||
Accident. And therefore when the dying Houyhnhnms return those Visits,
|
||
they take a solemn Leave of their Friends, as if they were going to some
|
||
remote Part of the Country, where they designed to pass the rest of their
|
||
Lives.
|
||
|
||
I know not whether it may be worth observing, that the Houyhnhnms have
|
||
no Word in their Language to express any thing that is Evil, except what
|
||
they borrow from the Deformities or ill Qualities of the Yahoos. Thus they
|
||
denote the Folly of a Servant, an Omission of a Child, a Stone that cut their
|
||
Feet, a continuance of foul or unseasonable Weather, and the like, by
|
||
adding to each the Epithet of Yahoo. For Instance, hhnm Yahoo,
|
||
Whnaholm Yahoo, Ynlhmndwihlma Yahoo, and an ill-contrived House,
|
||
Ynholmhnmrohlnw Yahoo.
|
||
|
||
I could with great Pleasure enlarge further upon the Manners and Virtues
|
||
of this excellent People; but intending in a short time to publish a Volume
|
||
by itself expressly upon that Subject, I refer the Reader thither. And in the
|
||
mean time, proceed to relate my own sad Catastrophe.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER X.
|
||
|
||
The Author's Oeconomy and happy Life among the Houyhnhnms. His great
|
||
Improvement in Virtue, by conversing with them. Their Conversations.
|
||
The Author has notice given him by his Master that he must depart from
|
||
the Country. He falls into a Swoon for Grief, but submits. He contrives and
|
||
finishes a Canoo, by the help of a Fellow-Servant, and puts to Sea at a
|
||
venture.
|
||
|
||
I HAD settled my little Oeconomy to my own Heart's content. My Master
|
||
had ordered a Room to be made for me after their Manner, about six
|
||
Yards from the House, the Sides and Floors of which I plastered with Clay,
|
||
and covered with Rush-mats of my own contriving; I had beaten Hemp,
|
||
which there grows wild, and made of it a sort of Ticking: This I filled with
|
||
the Feathers of several Birds I had taken with Springes made of Yahoos
|
||
Hairs, and were excellent Food. I had worked two Chairs with my Knife,
|
||
the Sorrel Nag helping me in the grosser and more labourious Part. When
|
||
my Cloaths were worn to Rags, I made myself others with the Skins of
|
||
Rabbets, and of a certain beautiful Animal about the same size, called
|
||
Nnuhnoh, the Skin of which is covered with a fine Down. Of these I
|
||
likewise made very tolerable Stockings. I soled my Shoes with Wood,
|
||
which I cut from a Tree, and fitted to the upper Leather, and when this was
|
||
worn out, I supplied it with the Skins of Yahoos dried in the Sun. I often
|
||
got Honey out of hollow Trees, which I mingled with Water, or eat with
|
||
my Bread. No Man could more verify the Truth of these two Maxims, That
|
||
Nature is very easily satisfied; and That Necessity is the Mother of
|
||
Invention. I enjoyed perfect Health of Body and Tranquillity of Mind; I did
|
||
not feel the Treachery or Inconstancy of a Friend, nor the Injuries of a
|
||
secret or open Enemy. I had no occasion of bribing, flattering, or pimping,
|
||
to procure the Favour of any great Man or of his Minion. I wanted no
|
||
Fence against Fraud or Oppression; Here was neither Physician to destroy
|
||
my Body, nor Lawyer to ruin my Fortune; No Informer to watch my
|
||
Words, and Actions, or forge Accusations against me for hire: Here were
|
||
no Gibers, Censurers, Backbiters, Pick-pockets, Highwaymen,
|
||
Housebreakers, Attorneys, Bawds, Buffoons, Gamesters, Politicians, Wits,
|
||
Spleneticks, tedious Talkers, Controvertists, Ravishers, Murderers,
|
||
Robbers, Virtuosos; no Leaders or Followers of Party and Faction: No
|
||
encouragers to Vice, by Seducement or Examples: No Dungeon, Axes,
|
||
Gibbets, Whipping-posts, or Pillories: No cheating Shop-keepers or
|
||
Mechanicks: No Pride, Vanity: or Affectation; No Fops, Bullies,
|
||
Drunkards, strolling Whores, or Poxes: No ranting, lewd, expensive
|
||
Wives: No stupid, proud Pedants: No importunate, overbearing,
|
||
quarrelsome, noisy, roaring, empty, conceited, swearing Companions: No
|
||
Scoundrels, raised from the Dust for the Sake of their Vices, or Nobility
|
||
thrown into it on account of their Virtues: No Lords, Fidlers, Judges, or
|
||
Dancing-Masters.
|
||
|
||
I had the Favour of being admitted to several Houyhnhnms, who came to
|
||
visit or dine with my Master; where his Honour graciously suffered me to
|
||
wait in the Room, and listen to their Discourse. Both he and his Company
|
||
would often descend to ask me Questions, and receive my Answers. I had
|
||
also sometimes the Honour of attending my Master in his Visits to others. I
|
||
never presumed to speak, except in answer to a Question, and then I did it
|
||
with inward Regret, because it was a Loss of so much Time for improving
|
||
myself: But I was infinitely delighted with the Station of an humble
|
||
Auditor in such Conversations, where nothing passed but what was useful,
|
||
expressed in the fewest and most significant Words; where the greatest
|
||
Decency was observed, without the least Degree of Ceremony; where no
|
||
Person spoke without being pleased himself, and pleasing his Companions:
|
||
Where there was no Interruption, Tediousness, Heat, or Difference of
|
||
Sentiments. They have a Notion, That when People are met together, a
|
||
short Silence doth much improve Conversation: This I found to be true; for
|
||
during those little Intermissions of Talk, new Ideas would arise in their
|
||
Thoughts, which very much enlivened their Discourse. Their Subjects are
|
||
generally on Friendship and Benevolence, or Order and Oeconomy;
|
||
sometimes upon the visible Operations of Nature, or ancient Traditions,
|
||
upon the Bounds and Limits of Virtue, upon the unerring Rules of Reason,
|
||
or upon some Determinations, to be taken at the next great Assembly; and
|
||
often upon the various Excellencies of Poetry. I may add without Vanity,
|
||
that my Presence often gave them sufficient Matter for Discourse, because
|
||
it afforded my Master an Occasion of letting his Friends into the History of
|
||
me and my Country, upon which they were all pleased to descant in a
|
||
Manner not very advantageous to human Kind; and for that Reason I shall
|
||
not repeat what they said: Only I may be allowed to observe, That his
|
||
Honour, to my great Admiration, appeared to understand the Nature of
|
||
Yahoos in all Countries much better than myself. He went through all our
|
||
Vices and Follies, and discovered many which I had never mentioned to
|
||
him, by only supposing what Qualities a Yahoo of their Country, with a
|
||
small Proportion of Reason, might be capable of exerting; and concluded,
|
||
with too much Probability, how vile as well as miserable such a Creature
|
||
must be.
|
||
|
||
I freely confess, that all the little Knowledge I have of any Value, was
|
||
acquired by the Lectures I received from my Master, and from hearing the
|
||
Discourses of him and his Friends; to which I should be prouder to listen,
|
||
than to dictate to the greatest and wisest Assembly in Europe. I admired the
|
||
Strength, Comeliness, and Speed of the Inhabitants; and such a
|
||
Constellation of Virtues in such Amiable Persons produced in me the
|
||
highest Veneration. At first, indeed, I did not feel that natural Awe which
|
||
the Yahoos and all other Animals bear towards them, but it grew upon me
|
||
by Degrees, much sooner than I imagined, and was mingled with a
|
||
respectful Love and Gratitude, that they would condescend to distinguish
|
||
me from the rest of my Species.
|
||
|
||
When I thought of my Family, my Friends, my Countrymen, or Human
|
||
Race in general, I considered them as they really were, Yahoos in Shape
|
||
and Disposition, perhaps a little more civilized, and qualified with the Gift
|
||
of Speech, but making no other use of Reason, than to improve and
|
||
multiply those Vices whereof their Brethren in this Country had only the
|
||
Share that Nature allotted them. When I happened to behold the Reflection
|
||
of my own Form in a Lake or Fountain, I turned away my Face in Horror
|
||
and Detestation of myself, and could better endure the sight of a common
|
||
Yahoo, than of my own Person. By conversing with the Houyhnhnms, and
|
||
looking upon them with Delight, I fell to imitate their Gait and Gesture,
|
||
which is now grown into an Habit, and my Friends often tell me in a blunt
|
||
way, that I trot like a Horse; which, however, I take for a great
|
||
Compliment: Neither shall I disown, that in speaking I am apt to fall into
|
||
the Voice and Manner of the Houyhnhnms, and hear myself ridiculed on
|
||
that Account without the least Mortification.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of all this Happiness, and when I looked upon myself to be
|
||
fully settled for Life, my Master sent for me one Morning a little earlier
|
||
than his usual Hour. I observed by his Countenance that he was in some
|
||
Perplexity, and at a Loss how to begin what he had to speak. After a short
|
||
Silence, He told me he did not know how I would take what he was going
|
||
to say; that in the last general Assembly, when the Affair of the Yahoos
|
||
was entered upon, the Representatives had taken offence at his keeping a
|
||
Yahoo (meaning myself) in his Family more like a Houyhnhnm, than a
|
||
Brute Animal. That he was known frequently to converse with me, as if he
|
||
could receive some Advantage or Pleasure in my Company: That such a
|
||
Practice was not agreeable to Reason or Nature, nor a Thing ever heard of
|
||
before among them. The Assembly did therefore exhort him, either to
|
||
employ me like the rest of my Species, or command me to swim back to
|
||
the Place from where I came. That the first of these Expedients was utterly
|
||
rejected by all theHouyhnhnms, who had ever seen me at his House or their
|
||
own: For they alledged, That because I had some Rudiments of Reason,
|
||
added to the natural Pravity of those Animals, it was to be feared, I might
|
||
be able to seduce them into the woody and mountainous Parts of the
|
||
Country, and bring them in Troops by Night to destroy the Houyhnhnms
|
||
Cattle, as being naturally of the ravenous Kind, and averse from Labour.
|
||
|
||
My Master added, That he was daily pressed by theHouyhnhnms of the
|
||
Neighbourhood to have the Assembly's Exhortation executed, which he
|
||
could not put off much longer. He doubted it would be impossible for me
|
||
to swim to another Country, and therefore wished I would contrive some
|
||
sort of Vehicle resembling those I had described to him, that might carry
|
||
me on the Sea; in which Work I should have the Assistance of his own
|
||
Servants, as well as those of his Neighbours. He concluded, That for his
|
||
own Part he could have been content to keep me in his Service as long as I
|
||
lived, because he found I had cured myself of some bad Habits and
|
||
Dispositions, by endeavouring, as far as my inferior Nature was capable, to
|
||
imitate the Houyhnhnms.
|
||
|
||
I should here observe to the Reader, That a Decree of the general
|
||
Assembly in this Country, is expressed by the Word Hnhloayn, which
|
||
signifies an Exhortation; as near as I can render it: For they have no
|
||
Conception how a rational Creature can be compelled, but only advised or
|
||
exhorted, because no Person can disobey Reason, without giving up his
|
||
Claim to be a rational Creature.
|
||
|
||
I was struck with the utmost Grief and Despair at my Master's Discourse,
|
||
and being unable to support the Agonies I was under, I fell into a Swoon at
|
||
his Feet; when I came to myself, he told me that he concluded I had been
|
||
dead. (For these People are subject to no such Imbecilities of Nature). I
|
||
answered, in a faint Voice, That Death would have been too great a
|
||
Happiness; that although I could not blame the Assembly's Exhortation, or
|
||
the Urgency of his Friends; yet, in my weak and corrupt Judgment, I
|
||
thought it might consist with Reason to have been less rigorous. That I
|
||
could not swim a League, and probably the nearest Land to theirs might be
|
||
distant above an hundred: That many Materials, necessary for making a
|
||
small Vessel to carry me off, were wholly wanting in this Country, which,
|
||
however, I would attempt in Obedience and Gratitude to his Honour,
|
||
although I concluded the Thing to be impossible, and therefore looked on
|
||
my self as already devoted to Destruction. That the certain Prospect of
|
||
unnatural Death, was the least of my Evils: For, supposing I should escape
|
||
with Life by some strange Adventure, how could I think with Temper, of
|
||
passing my Days among Yahoos, and relapsing into my old Corruptions,
|
||
for want of Examples to lead and keep me within the Paths of Virtue. That
|
||
I knew too well upon what solid Reasons all the Determinations of the wise
|
||
Houyhnhnms were founded, not to be shaken by Arguments of mine, a
|
||
miserable Yahoo; and therefore after presenting him with my humble
|
||
Thanks for the Offer of his Servants Assistance in making a Vessel, and
|
||
desiring a Reasonable Time for so difficult a Work, I told him I would
|
||
endeavour to preserve a wretched Being; and if ever I returned to England,
|
||
was not without Hopes of being useful to my own Species, by celebrating
|
||
the Praises of the renowned Houyhnhnms, and proposing their Virtues to
|
||
the Imitation of Mankind.
|
||
|
||
My Master in a few Words made me a very gracious Reply, and allowed
|
||
me the space of two Months to finish my Boat; and ordered the Sorrel Nag,
|
||
my Fellow-Servant, (for so at this Distance I may presume to call him) to
|
||
follow my Instructions, because I told my Master that his Help would be
|
||
sufficient, and I knew he had a Tenderness for me.
|
||
|
||
In his Company, my first Business was to go to that Part of the Coast,
|
||
where my rebellious Crew had ordered me to be set on Shore. I got upon a
|
||
Height, and looking on every side into the Sea, fancied I saw a small Island,
|
||
towards the North-East: I took out my Pocket-glass, and could then clearly
|
||
distinguish it about five Leagues off, as I computed; but it appeared to the
|
||
Sorrel Nag to be only a blue Cloud: For, as he had no Conception of any
|
||
Country beside his own, so he could not be as Expert in distinguishing
|
||
remote Objects at Sea, as we who so much converse in that Element.
|
||
|
||
After I had discovered this Island, I considered no farther; but resolved, it
|
||
should, if possible, be the first Place of my Banishment, leaving the
|
||
Consequence to Fortune.
|
||
|
||
I returned Home, and consulting with the Sorrel Nag, we went into a Copse
|
||
at some Distance, where I with my Knife, and he with a sharp Flint
|
||
fastened very artificially, after their Manner, to a wooden Handle, cut
|
||
down several Oak Wattles about the Thickness of a Walking-staff, and
|
||
some larger Pieces. But I shall not trouble the Reader with a particular
|
||
Description of my own Mechanicks; let it suffice to say, that in six Weeks
|
||
time, with the Help of the Sorrel Nag, who performed the Parts that
|
||
required most Labour, I finished a sort of Indian Canoo, but much larger,
|
||
covering it with the Skins of Yahoos well stitched together, with hempen
|
||
Threads of my own making. My Sail was likewise composed of the Skins of
|
||
the same Animal; but I made use of the youngest I could get, the older
|
||
being too tough and thick, and I likewise provided myself with four
|
||
Paddles. I laid in a Stock of boiled Flesh, of Rabbets and Fowls, and took
|
||
with me two Vessels, one filled with Milk and the other with Water.
|
||
|
||
I tried my Canoo in a large Pond near my Master's House, and then
|
||
corrected in it what was amiss; stopping all the Chinks with Yahoos
|
||
Tallow, till I found it stanch, and able to bear me, and my Freight. And
|
||
when it was as compleat as I could possibly make it, I had it drawn on a
|
||
Carriage very gently by Yahoos, to the Seaside, under the Conduct of the
|
||
Sorrel Nag, and another Servant.
|
||
|
||
When all was ready, and the Day came for my Departure, I took Leave of
|
||
my Master and Lady, and the whole Family, mine Eyes flowing with
|
||
Tears, and my Heart quite sunk with Grief. But his Honour, out of
|
||
Curiosity, and perhaps (if I may speak it without Vanity) partly out of
|
||
Kindness, was determined to see me in my Canoo, and got several of his
|
||
neighbouring Friends to accompany him. I was forced to wait above an
|
||
Hour for the Tide, and then observing the Wind very fortunately bearing
|
||
towards the Island, to which I intended to steer my Course, I took a second
|
||
Leave of my Master: But as I was going to prostrate myself to kiss his
|
||
Hoof, he did me the Honour to raise it gently to my Mouth. I am not
|
||
ignorant how much I have been censured for mentioning this last
|
||
Particular. For my Detractors are pleased to think it improbable, that so
|
||
Illustrious a Person should descend to give so great a Mark of Distinction
|
||
to a Creature so inferior as I. Neither have I forgot, how apt some
|
||
Travellers are to boast of extraordinary Favours they have received. But if
|
||
these Censurers were better acquainted with the noble and courteous
|
||
Disposition of the Houyhnhnms, they would soon change their Opinion.
|
||
|
||
I paid my respects to the rest of theHouyhnhnms in his Honour's Company;
|
||
then getting into my Canoo, I pushed off from Shore.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XI.
|
||
|
||
The Author's dangerous Voyage. He arrives at Hew-Holland, hoping to
|
||
settle there. Is wounded with an Arrow by one the Natives. Is seized by
|
||
Force into a Portugueze Ship. The great Civilities of the Captain. The
|
||
Author arrives at England.
|
||
|
||
I BEGAN this desperate Voyage on February 15, 1714/5, at 9 o'Clock in
|
||
the Morning. The Wind was very favourable; however, I made use at first
|
||
only of my Paddles; but considering I should soon be weary, and that the
|
||
Wind might chop about, I ventured set up my little Sail; and thus with the
|
||
help of the Tide, I went at the rate of a League and a half an Hour, as near
|
||
as I could guess. My Master and his Friends continued on the Shoar, till I
|
||
was almost out of sight; and I often heard the Sorrel Nag (who always
|
||
loved me) crying out, Hnuy illa nyha majah Yahoo, Take care of thyself,
|
||
gentle Yahoo.
|
||
|
||
My Design was, if possible, to discover some small Island uninhabited, yet
|
||
sufficient by my Labour to furnish me with the Necessaries of Life, which
|
||
I would have thought a greater Happiness than to be first Minister in the
|
||
politest Court of Europe; so horrible was the Idea I conceived of returning
|
||
to live in the Society and under the Government of Yahoos. For in such a
|
||
Solitude as I desired, I could at least enjoy my own Thoughts, and reflect
|
||
with Delight on the Virtues of those inimitable Houyhnhnms, without any
|
||
Opportunity of degenerating into the Vices and Corruptions of my own
|
||
Species.
|
||
|
||
The Reader may remember what I related when my Crew conspired
|
||
against me, and confined me to my Cabbin. How I continued there several
|
||
Weeks, without knowing what Course we took, and when I was put a Shoar
|
||
in the Long-boat, how the Sailors told me with Oaths, whether true or
|
||
false, that not in what Part of the World we were. However, I did then
|
||
believe us to be about ten Degrees Southward of the Cape of Good Hope,
|
||
or about 45 Degrees Southern Latitude, as I gathered from some general
|
||
Words I over-heard among them, being I supposed to the South-East in
|
||
their intended Voyage to Madagascar. And although this were but little
|
||
better than Conjecture, yet I resolved to steer my Course Eastward, hoping
|
||
to reach the South-West Coast of New Holland, and perhaps some such
|
||
Island as I desired, lying Westward of it. The Wind was full West, and by
|
||
six in the Evening I computed I had gone Eastward at least eighteen
|
||
Leagues, when I spied a very small Island about half a League off, which I
|
||
soon reached. It was nothing but a Rock with one Creek, naturally arched
|
||
by the Force of Tempests. Here I put in my Canoo, and climbing up a part
|
||
of the Rock, I could plainly discover Land to the East, extending from
|
||
South to North. I lay all Night in my Canoo, and repeating my Voyage
|
||
early in the Morning, I arrived in seven Hours to the South East Point of
|
||
New Holland. This confirmed me in the Opinion I have long entertained,
|
||
that the Maps and Charts place this Country at least three Degrees more to
|
||
the East than it really is; which thought I communicated many Years ago to
|
||
my worthy Friend Mr. Herman Moll, and gave him my Reasons for it,
|
||
although he hath rather chosen to follow other Authors.
|
||
|
||
I saw no Inhabitants in the Place where I landed, and being unarmed, I was
|
||
afraid of venturing far into the Country. I found some Shell-fish on the
|
||
Shore, and eat them raw, not daring to kindle a Fire, for Fear of being
|
||
discovered by the Natives. I continued three Days feeding on Oysters and
|
||
Limpits, to save my own Provisions; and I fortunately found a Brook of
|
||
excellent Water, which gave me great Relief.
|
||
|
||
On the fourth Day, venturing out early a little too far, I saw twenty or
|
||
thirty Natives upon a Height, not above five hundred Yards from me. They
|
||
were stark naked, Men, Women, and Children round a Fire, as I could
|
||
discover by the Smoak. One of them spied me, and gave notice to the rest;
|
||
five of them advanced towards me leaving the Women and Children at the
|
||
Fire. I made what haste I could to the Shore, and getting into my Canoo,
|
||
shoved off: The Savages observing me retreat, ran after me; and before I
|
||
could get far enough into the Sea, discharged an Arrow, which wounded
|
||
me deeply on the inside of my left Knee (I shall carry the Mark to my
|
||
Grave). I apprehended the Arrow might be poisoned, and paddling out of
|
||
the reach of their Darts (being a calm Day) I made a shift to suck the
|
||
Wound, and dress it as well as I could.
|
||
|
||
I was at a Loss what to do, for I durst not return to the same Landing-
|
||
place, but stood to the North, and was forced to paddle; for the Wind
|
||
though very gentle, was against me, blowing North-West. As I was looking
|
||
about for a secure Landing-place, I saw a Sail to the North-North-East,
|
||
which appearing every Minute more visible, I was in some Doubt whether
|
||
I should wait for them, or no; but at last my Detestation of the Yahoo Race
|
||
prevailed, and turning my Canoo, I sailed and paddled together to the
|
||
South, and got into the same Creek from whence I set out in the Morning,
|
||
choosing rather to trust myself among these Barbarians, than live with
|
||
European Yahoos. I drew up my Canoo as close as I could to the Shore,
|
||
and hid myself behind a Stone by the little Brook, which, as I have already
|
||
said, was excellent Water.
|
||
|
||
The Ship came within half a League of this Creek, and sent out her Long-
|
||
Boat with Vessels to take in fresh Water (for the Place it seems was very
|
||
well known) but I did not observe it till the Boat was almost on Shore, and
|
||
it was too late to seek another Hiding-place. The Seamen at their landing
|
||
observed my Canoo, and rummaging it all over, easily conjectured that the
|
||
Owner could not be far off. Four of them well-armed searched every
|
||
Cranny and Lurking-hole, till at last they found me flat on my Face behind
|
||
the Stone. They gazed a while in Admiration at my strange uncouth Dress,
|
||
my Coat made of Skins, my wooden-soled Shoes, and my furred Stockings;
|
||
from whence, however, they concluded I was not a Native of the Place,
|
||
who all go naked. One of the Seamen in Portugueze bid me rise, and asked
|
||
who I was. I understood that Language very well, and getting upon my
|
||
Feet, said I was a poor Yahoo, banished from the Houyhnhnms, and desired
|
||
they would please to let me depart. They admired to hear me answer them
|
||
in their own Tongue, and saw by my Complextion I must be an European;
|
||
but were at a Loss to know what I meant by Yahoos and Houyhnhnms, and
|
||
at the same time fell a laughing at my strange Tone in speaking, which
|
||
resembled the Neighing of a Horse. I trembled all the while betwixt Fear
|
||
and Hatred: I again desired Leave to depart, and was gently moving to my
|
||
Canoo; but they laid hold on me, desiring to know what Country I was of?
|
||
whence I came? with many other Questions. I told them I was born in
|
||
England, from whence I came about five Years ago, and then their Country
|
||
and ours were at Peace. I therefore hoped they would not treat me as an
|
||
Enemy, since I meant them no Harm, but was a poor Yahoo, seeking some
|
||
desolate Place where to pass the remainder of his unfortunate Life.
|
||
|
||
When they began to talk, I thought I never heard or saw any thing so
|
||
unnatural; for it appeared to me as Dog or a Cow should speak in England,
|
||
or a Yahoo in Houyhnhnm-land The honest Portugueze were equally
|
||
amazed at my strange Dress, and the odd Manner of delivering my Words,
|
||
which however they understood very well. They spoke to me with great
|
||
Humanity, and said they were sure the Captain would carry me gratis to
|
||
Lisbon, from whence I might return to my own Country; that two of the
|
||
Seamen would go back to the Ship, inform the Captain of what they had
|
||
seen, and receive his Orders; in the mean time, unless I would give my
|
||
solemn Oath not to fly, they would secure me by Force. I thought it best to
|
||
comply with their Proposal. They were very curious to know my Story,
|
||
but I gave them very little Satisfaction; and they all conjectured my
|
||
Misfortunes had impaired my Reason. In two Hours the Boat, which went
|
||
loaden with Vessels of Water, returned with the Captain's Command to
|
||
fetch me on Board. I fell on my Knees to preserve my Liberty; but all was
|
||
in vain, and the Men having tied me with Cords, heaved me into the Boat,
|
||
from whence I was taken into the Ship, and from thence into the Captain's
|
||
Cabbin.
|
||
|
||
His Name was Pedro de Mendez, he was a very courteous and generous
|
||
Person; he entreated me to give some Account of myself, and desired to
|
||
know what I would eat or drink; said I should be used as well as himself,
|
||
and spoke so many obliging things, that I wondered to find such Civilities
|
||
from a Yahoo. However, I remained silent and sullen; I was ready to faint
|
||
at the very Smell of him and his Men. At last I desired something to eat out
|
||
of my own Canoo; but he ordered me a Chicken and some excellent Wine,
|
||
and then directed that I should be put to Bed in a very clean Cabbin. I
|
||
would not undress myself, but lay on the Bed-cloaths, and in half an Hour
|
||
stole out, when I thought the Crew was at Dinner, and getting to the side of
|
||
the Ship was going to leap into the Sea, and swim for my Life, rather than
|
||
continue among Yahoos. But one of the Seamen prevented me, and having
|
||
informed the Captain, I was chained to my Cabbin.
|
||
|
||
After Dinner Don Pedro came to me, and desired to know my Reason for
|
||
so desperate an Attempt; assured me he only meant to do me all the Service
|
||
he was able, and spoke so very movingly, that at last I descended to treat
|
||
him like an Animal which had some little portion of Reason. I gave him a
|
||
very short Relation of my Voyage, of the Conspiracy against me by own
|
||
Men, of the Country where they set me on Shore, and of my three Years
|
||
Residence there. All which he looked upon as if it were a Dream or a
|
||
Vision; whereat I took great Offence; for I had quite forgotten the Faculty
|
||
of Lying, so peculiar to Yahoos in all Countries where they preside, and,
|
||
consequently the Disposition of suspecting Truth in others of their own
|
||
Species. I asked him, Whether it were the Custom in his Country to say the
|
||
Thing that was not? I assured him I had almost forgotten what he meant by
|
||
Falsehood, and if I had lived a thousand Years in Houyhnhnm-land, I
|
||
should never have heard a Lye from the meanest Servant; that I was
|
||
altogether indifferent whether he believed me or no; but however, in
|
||
Return for his Favours, I would give so much Allowance to the Corruption
|
||
of his Nature, as to answer any Objection he would please to make, and
|
||
then he might easily discover the Truth.
|
||
|
||
The Captain, a wise Man, after many Endeavours to catch me tripping in
|
||
some Part of my Story, at last began to have a better Opinion of my
|
||
Veractiy, and the rather because he confessed, he met with a Dutch
|
||
Skipper, who pretended to have landed with Five others of his Crew upon a
|
||
certain Island or Continent South of New-Holland, where they went for
|
||
fresh Water, and observed a Horse driving before him several Animals
|
||
exactly resembling those I described under the Name of Yahoos, with some
|
||
other Particulars, which the Captain said he had forgotten; because he then
|
||
concluded them all to be Lies. But he added, that since I professed so
|
||
inviolable an Attachment to Truth, I must give him my Word of Honour to
|
||
bear him company in this Voyage, without attempting any thing against my
|
||
Life, or else he would continue me a Prisoner till we arrived at Lisbon. I
|
||
gave him the Promise he required; but at the same time protested that I
|
||
would suffer the greatest Hardships rather than return to live among
|
||
Yahoos.
|
||
|
||
Our Voyage passed without any considerable Accident. In Gratitude to the
|
||
Captain I sometimes sate with him at his earnest Request, and strove to
|
||
conceal my Antipathy to human Kind, although it often broke out, which
|
||
he suffered to pass without Observation. But the greatest Part of the Day I
|
||
confined myself to my Cabbin, to avoid seeing any of the Crew. The
|
||
Captain had often entreated me to strip myself of my savage Dress, and
|
||
offered to lend me the best Suit of Cloaths he had. This I would not be
|
||
prevailed on to accept, abhorring to cover myself with any thing that had
|
||
been on the Back of a Yahoo. I only desired he would lend me two clean
|
||
shirts, which having been washed since he wore them, I believed would not
|
||
so much defile me. These I changed every second Day, and washed them
|
||
myself.
|
||
|
||
We arrived at Lisbon, Nov. 5, 1715. At our landing the Captain forced me
|
||
to cover myself with his Cloak, to prevent the Rabble from crouding about
|
||
me. I was conveyed to his own House, and at my earnest Request, he led me
|
||
up to the highest Room backwards. I conjured him to conceal from all
|
||
Persons what I had told him of the Houyhnhnms, because the least Hint of
|
||
such a Story would not only draw Numbers of People to see me, but
|
||
probably, put me in Danger of being imprisoned, or burned by the
|
||
Inquisition. The Captain persuaded me to accept a Suit of Cloaths newly
|
||
made; but I would not suffer the Taylor to take my Measure; however,
|
||
Don Pedro being almost of my Size, they fitted me well enough. He
|
||
accoutred me with other Necessaries all new, which I aired for twenty-four
|
||
Hours before I would use them.
|
||
|
||
The Captain had no Wife, nor above three Servants, none of which were
|
||
suffered to attend at Meals, and his whole deportment was so obliging,
|
||
added to very good human Understanding, that I really began to tolerate
|
||
his Company. He gained so far upon me, that I ventured to look out of the
|
||
back Window. By Degrees I was brought into another Room, from whence
|
||
I peeped into the Street, but drew my Head back in a Fright. In a Week's
|
||
time he seduced me down to the Door. I found my Terror gradually
|
||
lessened, but my Hatred and Contempt seemed to encrease. I was at last
|
||
bold enough to walk the Street in his Company, but kept my Nose well
|
||
stopped with Rue, or sometimes with Tobacco.
|
||
|
||
In ten Days Don Pedro, to whom I had given some Account of my
|
||
Domestick Affairs, put it upon me as a Matter of Honour and Conscience,
|
||
that I ought to return to my native Country, and live at Home with my
|
||
Wife and Children. He told me, there was an English Ship in Port just
|
||
ready to sail, and he would furnish me with all things necessary. It would
|
||
be tedious to repeat his Arguments, and my Contradictions. He said it was
|
||
altogether impossible to find such a solitary Island as I had desired to live
|
||
in; but I might command in my own House, and pass my time in a Manner
|
||
as recluse as I pleased.
|
||
|
||
I complied at last, finding I could not do better. I left Lisbon the 24th Day
|
||
of November, in an English Merchant-Man, but who was the Master I
|
||
never enquired. Don Pedro accompanied me to the Ship, and lent me
|
||
Twenty Pounds. He took kind Leave of me, and embraced me at parting,
|
||
which I bore as well as I could. During the last Voyage I had no Commerce
|
||
with the Master or any of his Men; but pretending I was sick, kept close in
|
||
my Cabbin. On the Fifth of December, 1715, we cast Anchor in the Downs
|
||
about Nine in the Morning, and at Three in the Afternoon I got safe to my
|
||
House at Rotherhith.
|
||
|
||
My Wife and Family received me with great Surprise and Joy, because they
|
||
concluded me certainly dead; but I must freely confess the sight of them
|
||
filled me only with Hatred, Disgust, and Contempt, and the more by
|
||
reflecting on the near Alliance I had to them. For, although since my
|
||
unfortunate Exile from the Houyhnhnm Country, I had compelled myself
|
||
to tolerate the Sight of Yahoos, and to converse with Don Pedro de
|
||
Mendez; yet my Memory and Imagination were perpetually filled with the
|
||
Virtues and Ideas of those exalted Houyhnhnms. And when I began to
|
||
consider, that by copulating with one of the Yahoo Species I had become a
|
||
Parent of more, it struck me with the utmost Shame, Confusion, and
|
||
Horror.
|
||
|
||
As soon as I entered the House, my Wife took me in her Arms, and kissed
|
||
me, at which, having not been used to the Touch of that odious Animal for
|
||
so many Years, I fell in a Swoon for almost an Hour. At the time I am
|
||
writing it is Five Years since my last Return to England: During the first
|
||
Year I could not endure my Wife or Children in my Presence, the very
|
||
Smell of them was intolerable, much less could I suffer them to eat in the
|
||
same Room. To this Hour they dare not presume to touch my Bread, or
|
||
drink out of the same Cup, neither was I ever able to let one of them take
|
||
me by the Hand. The first Money I laid out was to buy two young Stone-
|
||
Horses, which I keep in a good Stable, and next to them the Groom is my
|
||
greatest Favourite; for I feel my Spirits revived by the Smell he contracts
|
||
in the Stable. My Horses understand me tolerably well; I converse with
|
||
them at least four Hours every Day. They are Strangers to Bridle or
|
||
Saddle; they live in great Amity with me, and Friendship to each other.
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XII.
|
||
|
||
The Author's Veracity. His Design in publishing this Work. His Censure of
|
||
those Travellers who swerve from the Truth. The Author clears himself of
|
||
any sinister Ends in writing. An Objection Answered. The Method of
|
||
planting Colonies. His Native Country commended. The Right of the
|
||
Crown to those Countries described by the Author is justified. the
|
||
Difficulty of conquering them. The Author takes his last leave of the
|
||
Reader: proposeth his Manner of Living for the future, gives good Advice,
|
||
and concludes.
|
||
|
||
THUS, GENTLE READER, I have given thee a faithful History of my
|
||
Travels for Sixteen Years, and above Seven Months; wherein I have not
|
||
been so studious of Ornament as Truth. I could perhaps like others have
|
||
astonished you with strange improbable Tales; but I rather chose to relate
|
||
plain Matter of Fact in the simplest Manner and Style, because my principal
|
||
Design was to Inform, and not to amuse thee.
|
||
|
||
It is easy for us who travel into remote Countries, which are seldom visited
|
||
by Englishmen or other Europeans, to form Descriptions of wonderful
|
||
Animals both at Sea and Land. Whereas a Traveller's chief Aim should be
|
||
to make Men wiser and better, and to improve their Minds by the bad as
|
||
well as good Example of what they deliver concerning foreign Places.
|
||
|
||
I could heartily wish a Law was enacted, that every Traveller before he
|
||
were permitted to publish his Voyages, should be obliged to make Oath
|
||
before the Lord High Chancellor that all he intended to print was
|
||
absolutely true to the best of his Knowledge; for then the World would no
|
||
longer be deceived as it usually is, while some Writers, to make their
|
||
Works pass the better upon the Publick, impose the grossest Falsities on the
|
||
unwary Reader. I have perused several Books of Travels with great Delight
|
||
in my younger Days; but having since gone over most Parts of the Globe,
|
||
and been able to contradict many fabulous Accounts from my own
|
||
Observation, it hath given me a great Disgust against this Part of Reading,
|
||
and some Indignation to see the Credulity of Mankind so impudently
|
||
abused. Therefore since my Acquaintances were pleased to think my poor
|
||
Endeavours might not be unacceptable to my Country, I imposed on myself
|
||
as a Maxim, never to be swerved from, that I would strictly adhere to
|
||
Truth; neither indeed can I be ever under the least temptation to vary from
|
||
it, while I retain in my Mind the Lectures and Example of my Noble
|
||
Master, and the other Illustrious Houyhnhnms, of whom I had so long the
|
||
Honour to be a humble Bearer.
|
||
|
||
---Nec si miserum Fortuna Sinonem Finxit, vanum etiam,
|
||
mendacemque improba finget.
|
||
|
||
I know very well how little Reputation is to be got by Writings which
|
||
require neither Genius nor Learning, nor indeed any other Talent, except a
|
||
good Memory, or an exact Journal. I know likewise, the Writers of
|
||
Travels, like Dictionary-Makers, are sunk into Oblivion by the Weight and
|
||
Bulk of those who come after, and therefor lie uppermost. And it is highly
|
||
probable, that such Travellers who shall hereafter visit the Countries
|
||
described in this Work of mine, may, by detecting my Errors, (if there be
|
||
any) and adding many new Discoveries of their own, justle me out of
|
||
Vogue, and stand in my Place, making the World forget that I was ever an
|
||
Author. This indeed would be too great a Mortification if I wrote for
|
||
Fame: But, as my sole Intention was the PUBLICK GOOD, I cannot be
|
||
altogether disappointed. For who can read of the Virtues I have mentioned
|
||
in the Glorious Houyhnhnms, without being ashamed of his own Vices,
|
||
when he considers himself as the reasoning, governing Animal of his
|
||
Country? I shall say nothing of those remote Nations where Yahoos preside
|
||
amongst which the least corrupted are the Brobdingnagians, whose wise
|
||
Maxims in Morality and Government, it would be our Happiness to
|
||
observe. But I forbear descanting farther, and rather leave the Judicious
|
||
Reader to his own Remarks and Applications.
|
||
|
||
I am not a little pleased that this work of mine can possibly meet with no
|
||
Censurers: For what Objections can be made against a Writer who relates
|
||
only plain Facts that happened in such distant Countries, where we have not
|
||
the least Interest with respect either to Trade or Negotiations? I have
|
||
carefully avoided every Fault with which common Writers of Travels are
|
||
often too justly charged. Besides, I meddle not with any Party, but write
|
||
without Passion, Prejudice, or Ill-will against any Man or number of Men
|
||
whatsoever. I write for the noblest End, to inform and instruct Mankind,
|
||
over whom I may, without Breach of Modesty, pretend to some
|
||
Superiority from the Advantages I received by conversing so long among
|
||
the most accomplished Houyhnhnms. I write without any View towards
|
||
Profit or Praise. I never suffer a Word to pass that may look like
|
||
Reflection, or possibly give the least Offence even to those who are most
|
||
ready to take it. So that I hope I may with Justice pronounce myself an
|
||
Author perfectly blameless, against whom the Tribes of Answerers,
|
||
Considerers, Observers, Reflecters, Detecters, Remarkers will never be
|
||
able to find matter for exercising their Talents.
|
||
|
||
I confess, it was whispered to me, that I was bound in Duty as a Subject of
|
||
England, to have given in a Memorial to a Secretary of State at my first
|
||
coming over; because whatever Lands are discovered by a Subject, belong
|
||
to the Crown. But I doubt whether our Conquests in the Countries I treat
|
||
of, would be as easy as those of Ferdinando Cortez over the naked
|
||
Americans. The Lilliputians I think are hardly worth the Charge of a Fleet
|
||
and Army to reduce them, and I question whether it might be prudent or
|
||
safe to attempt the Brobdingnagians. Or whether an English Army would
|
||
be much at their Ease with the Flying Island over their Heads. The
|
||
Houyhnhnms, indeed, appear not to be so well prepared for War, a Science
|
||
to which they are perfect Strangers, and especially against missive
|
||
weapons. However, supposing myself to be a Minister of State, I could
|
||
never give my Advice for invading them. Their Prudence, Unanimity,
|
||
Unacquaintedness with Fear, and their Love of their Country would amply
|
||
supply all Defects in the Military Art. Imagine Twenty thousand of them
|
||
breaking into the midst of an European Army, confounding the Ranks,
|
||
overturning the Carriages, battering the Warriors' Faces into Mummy, by
|
||
terrible Yerks from their hinder Hoofs. For they would well deserve the
|
||
Character given to Augustus; Recalcitrat undique tutus. But instead of
|
||
Proposals for conquering that magnanimous Nation, I rather wish they
|
||
were in a Capacity or Disposition to send a sufficient Number of their
|
||
Inhabitants for civilizing Europe, by teaching us the first Principles of
|
||
Honour, Truth, Temperance, Publick Spirit, Fortitude, Chastity,
|
||
Benevolence, and Fidelity. The Names of all which Virtues are still
|
||
retained among us in Languages, and are to be met with in modern as well
|
||
as ancient Authors, which I am able to assert from my own small Reading.
|
||
|
||
But I had another Reason which made me less forward to enlarge his
|
||
Majesty's Dominions by my Discovery. To say the Truth, I had conceived a
|
||
few Scruples with Relation to the Distributive Justice of Princes upon those
|
||
Occasions. For instance, A Crew of Pyrates are driven by a Storm they
|
||
know not whither, at length a boy discovers Land from the Top-mast, they
|
||
go on Shore to Rob and Plunder; they see an harmless People, are
|
||
entertained with Kindness, they give the Country a new Name, they take
|
||
formal Possession of it for their King, they set up a rotten Plank or a Stone
|
||
for a Memorial, they murder two or three Dozen of the Natives, bring
|
||
away a couple more by Force for a Sample, return Home, and get their
|
||
Pardon. Here commences a new Dominion acquired with a Title by Divine
|
||
Right. Ships are sent with the first Opportunity, the Natives driven out or
|
||
destroyed, their Princes tortured to discover their Gold; a free Licence
|
||
given to all Acts of Inhumanity and Lust, the Earth reeking with the Blood
|
||
of its Inhabitants: And this execrable Crew of Butchers employed in so
|
||
pious an Expedition, is a modern Colony sent to convert and civilize an
|
||
idolatrous and barbarous People.
|
||
|
||
But this Description, I confess, doth by no Means affect the British Nation,
|
||
who may be an Example to the whole World for their Wisdom, Care, and
|
||
Justice in Planting Colonies; their liberal Endowments for the
|
||
Advancement of Religion and Learning; their Choice of devout and able
|
||
Pastors to propagate Christianity, their Caution in stocking their Provinces
|
||
with People of sober Lives and Conversations from this the Mother
|
||
Kingdom; their strict regard to the Distribution of Justice in supplying the
|
||
Civil Administration through all their Colonies with Officers of the
|
||
greatest Abilities, utter Strangers to Corruption; and to crown all, by
|
||
sending the most Vigilant and Virtuous Governors, who have no other
|
||
Views than the Happiness of the People over whom they preside, and the
|
||
Honour of the King their Master.
|
||
|
||
But, as those Countries which I have described do not appear to have any
|
||
Desire of being conquered, and enslaved, murdered or driven out by
|
||
Colonies, nor abound either in Gold, Silver, Sugar, or Tobacco; I did
|
||
humbly conceive they were by no Means proper Objects of our Zeal, our
|
||
Valour, or our Interest. However, if those whom it may concern, think fit
|
||
to be of another Opinion, I am ready to depose, when I shall be lawfully
|
||
called, That no European did ever visit these Countries before me. I mean,
|
||
if the Inhabitants ought to be believed; unless a dispute may arise about the
|
||
two Yahoos, said to have been seen many Ages ago on a Mountain in
|
||
Houyhnhnm-land, from whence the Opinion is, that the Race of those
|
||
Brutes hath descended; and these, for anything I know, may have been
|
||
English, which indeed I was apt to suspect from the Lineaments of their
|
||
Posterity's Countenances, although very much defaced. But, how far that
|
||
will go to make out a Title, I leave to the Learned in Colony-Law.
|
||
|
||
But as to the Formality of taking Possession in my Sovereign's Name, it
|
||
never came once into my Thoughts; and if it had, yet as my Affairs then
|
||
stood, I should perhaps in point of Prudence and Self-preservation have put
|
||
it off to a better Opportunity.
|
||
|
||
Having thus answered the only Objection that can ever be raised against me
|
||
as a Traveller, I here take a final Leave of all my Courteous Readers, and
|
||
return to enjoy my own Speculations in my little Garden at Redriff, to
|
||
apply those excellent Lessons of Virtue which I learned among the
|
||
Houyhnhnms, to instruct the Yahoos of my own Family as far as I shall
|
||
find them docile Animals; to behold my Figure often in a Glass, and thus if
|
||
possible habituate myself by time to tolerate the sight of a human Creature:
|
||
To lament the Brutality of Houyhnhnms in my own Country, but always
|
||
treat their Persons with respect, for the sake of my noble Master, his
|
||
Family, his Friends, and the whole Houyhnhnm Race, whom these ours
|
||
have the Honour to resemble in all their Lineaments, however their
|
||
Intellectuals came to degenerate.
|
||
|
||
I began last Week to permit my Wife to sit at Dinner with me, at the
|
||
farthest End of a long Table, and to answer (but with the utmost Brevity)
|
||
the few Questions I ask'd her. Yet the Smell of a Yahoo continuing very
|
||
offensive, I always keep my Nose well stopt with Rue, Lavender, or
|
||
Tobacco-leaves. And although it be hard for a Man late in Life to remove
|
||
old Habits, I am not altogether out of Hopes in some time to suffer a
|
||
Neighbour Yahoo in my Company without the Apprehensions I am yet
|
||
under of his Teeth or his Claws.
|
||
|
||
My Reconcilement to the Yahoo-kind in general might not be so difficult if
|
||
they would be content with those Vices and Follies only, which Nature has
|
||
entitled them to. I am not in the least provoked at the Sight of a Lawyer, a
|
||
Pick-pocket, a Colonel, a Fool, a Lord, a Gamester, a Politician, a Whore-
|
||
Master, a Physician, an Evidence, a Suborner, an Attorney, a Traitor, or
|
||
the like: This is all according to the due Course of Things: But when I
|
||
behold a Lump of Deformity, and Diseases both in Body and Mind, smitten
|
||
with Pride, it immediately breaks all the Measures of my Patience; neither
|
||
shall I be ever able to comprehend how such an Animal and such a Vice
|
||
could tally together. The wise and virtuous Houyhnhnms, who abound in
|
||
all Excellencies that can adorn a Rational Creature, have no Name for this
|
||
Vice in their Language, which has no Terms to express anything that is
|
||
Evil, except those whereby they describe the detestable Qualities of their
|
||
Yahoos, among which they were not able to distinguish this of Pride, for
|
||
want of thoroughly understanding Human Nature, as it sheweth itself in
|
||
other Countries, where that Animal presides. But I, who had more
|
||
Experience, could plainly observe some Rudiments of it among the wild
|
||
Yahoos.
|
||
|
||
But the Houyhnhnms, who live under the Government of Reason, are no
|
||
more proud of the good Qualities they possess, than I should be for not
|
||
wanting a Leg or an Arm, which no Man in his Wits would boast of,
|
||
although he must be miserable without them. I dwell the longer upon this
|
||
Subject from the Desire I have to make the Society of an English Yahoo by
|
||
any Means not insupportable, and therefore I here entreat those who have
|
||
any Tincture of this absurd Vice, that they will not presume to come in my
|
||
sight.
|
||
|
||
FINIS.
|